Skip to main content

Full text of "From empire to republic : the story of the struggle for constitutional government in Mexico"

See other formats


^^1     ^^^CD  1 

iCD 


=C0 


^•^^ 


Presented  to  the 

LIBRARIES  of  the 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO 

from 

the  Library  of 

Jean-Jacques  Kean 


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Archive 

in  2007  with  funding  from 

IVIicrosoft  Corporation 


http://www.archive.org/details/fromempiretorepuOOnolluoft 


FROM   EMPIRE   TO   REPUBLIC 


By  Arthur  Howard  Noll 


A  SHORT  HISTORY 
OF  MEXICO 

i6mo    .    .   75  cents  net 

FROM  EMPIRE  TO 
REPUBLIC 

8vo     .     .     .     $1.40  net 


A.  C.  McCLURG  &  CO. 

Publishers 


BENITO    JUAREZ 


PORFIRIO    DIAZ 


FROM 

EMPIRE   TO   REPUBLIC 


THE    STORY    OF 

THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  CONSTITUTIONAL 
GOVERNMENT 

IN    MEXICO 

BY 

ARTHUR   HOWARD   NOLL 

AUTHOR  OF    "  A  SHORT  HISTORY  OF  MEXICO,"  "  TENOCHTITLAN," 
ETC. 

With  Map  and  Portraits 


CHICAGO 

A.  C.  McCLURG    &    CO. 

1903 


Copyright 

A.  C.  McClurg  &  Co. 

1903 

Published  October   lo,   1903 


UNrVEKSlTY  FBESS      •     JOHN  WILSON 
AND   SON      .      CAMBRIDGE,  U.S.A. 


TO  THE  MEMORY 

OF 

FRANCIS   K.  HOWELL,  Esq., 

Late  of  the  New  Jersey  Bab, 

THIS    BOOK    IS    REVERENTLY   AND    AFFECTIONATELY 
DEDICATED 


Preface 


IN  the  preparation  of  the  following  chapters,  the 
result  of  a  careful  study  of  that  most  interest- 
ing phase  of  Mexican  history  which  relates  to  the 
struggles  for  Constitutional  Government,  the  writer 
takes  pleasure  in  acknowledging  the  very  kind  assist- 
ance rendered  by  his  friend,  Mr.  W.  W.  Blake,  of  the 
City  of  Mexico,  an  authority  on  all  Mexican  subjects, 
who  has  reviewed  the  manuscript  of  the  book  and 
suggested  some  corrections  which  have  been  cheer- 
fully made ;  whose  aid  in  the  preparation  of  the 
accompanying  Bibliography  has  been  invaluable  ;  and 
whose  approval  of  the  work  as  it  now  stands  the 
author  regards  as  the  best  guarantee  that  can  be 
offered  of  its  historical  accuracy.  The  author's  best 
thanks  are  also  due  to  Mr.  Francis  Fisher  Browne,  of 
Chicago,  whose  interest  in  the  book  has  been  shown 
by  his  offers  of  wise  suggestions  that  have  been  fol- 
lowed by  happy  results. 

A.  H.  N. 

University  of  the  South, 

Sewanee,  Tennessee, 

September,  1903. 


Contents 


Page 
Chapter  I.    Mexico  under  Spanish  Eule  ...        1 

Chapter  II.    The  Beginning  of  the  Struggle  for 

Independence   24 

Chapter  III.    The  Continuance  of  the  Struggle 

for  Independence 52 

Chapter  IV.    The  "  Plan  de  Iguala,"  the  Treaty 

OF  Cordoba,  and  the  First  Mexican  Empire  .       74 

Chapter  V.    The  Fall  op  the  P^mpire,  the  Eise  of 

THE  EePUBLIC,  and  THE  CONSTITUTION  OF  1824  .  91 

Chapter  VI.  Santa  Anna  and  Centralism  .  .  109 
Chapter  VII.    Centralism  under  the  "Bases  Or- 

GANICAS"  OF  1843 136 

Chapter  VIII.    War   with   the   United    States, 

AND  its  Consequences 155 

Chapter  IX.  The  "Plan  de  Ayotla"  .  .  .  .  169 
Chapter  X.  The  Constitution  of  1857  .  .  .  187 
Chapter  XI.    Benito   Juarez    and    the  War    of 

the  Eeform 204 

Chapter  XII.    Foreign  Intervention,  French  In- 
vasion, AND  THE  Second  Empire 232 


X  CONTENTS 

Page 
Chapter  XIII.    The  Conflict  between   the  Re- 
public  AND   THE   EjIPIRE 259 

Chapter  XIV.    The  Restored  Republic  and  the 

Death  of  Juarez 284 

Chapter  XV.  Constitutional  Government  bear- 
ing Fruits 292 

Appendix  A.  —  Chronological  Summary  of  Prin- 
cipal Events  related  to  Mexican  History      305 

Appendix  B.  —  Bibliography 313 

Appendix  C.  —  Notes  on  the  Historical  Geog- 
raphy op  Mexico 325 

Index 327 


■foj^Jii 


^ 


,T2ev 


ex 


yr^" 


/<to  5y^ 


XT" 


FROM 

EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

CHAPTER   I 
MEXICO  UNDER  SPANISH  RULE 

IN  the  early  years  of  the  sixteenth  century,  the 
territory  to  which  the  name  "  Mexico "  has 
since  been  given,  was  occupied,  to  an  extent 
now  unknown,  by  various  Indian  tribes.  Of  these, 
the  farthest  advanced  tov/ard  civilization,  and  the 
most  powerful,  was  that  known  as  the  Aztec  tribe. 
It  occupied  the  pueblo  of  Tenochtitlan,  upon  an 
island  in  the  borders  of  Lake  Texcoco,  in  the  centre 
of  the  Valley  of  Mexico.  In  the  previous  century 
this  tribe  had  confederated  with  certain  neighbor- 
ing tribes  for  purposes  of  war,  and  had  thereby  be- 
come elevated  to  a  position  whence  it  could  inspire 
mth  fear  and  dread  other  tribes  far  and  near. 

In  the  year  1519,  Europeans  appeared  upon  the 
coast  of  Mexico  and  advanced  inland  to  the  pueblo 
of  Tenochtitlan.  The  capture  and  destruction  of 
this  pueblo  by  the  Spaniards  under  Hernando  Cortes 
in  1521,  and  the  subsequent  subjugation  of  the 
Indians  of  the  surrounding  countr}^,  comprise  a  series 
of  events  embalmed  in  history  under  the  fascinating 
but  misleading  title  of  "  The  Conquest  of  Mexico." 
These  events  are  too  generally  known  to  require  re- 
1  1 


2  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

counting  here.  With  San  Hipolito's  Day  (August  13), 
1521,  when  Cortes  accepted  the  surrender  of  the  last 
Aztec  war-chief  and  formally  took  possession  of  the 
pueblo's  site,  begins  the  history  of  the  territory  as 
a  province  of  Spain,  —  or,  perhaps  more  properly 
speaking,  as  a  kingdom  of  the  vast  Spanish  Empire. 
Officially,  it  bore  the  name  of  Nueva  Espana,  or  New 
Spain ;  though  it  continued  to  be  popularly  known  as 
Mexico. 

Exploration  of  this  territory  soon  revealed  the 
fact  that  it  was  by  far  the  most  beautiful,  as  well 
as  the  richest,  of  all  the  possessions  ever  gained 
by  Spain  in  the  New  World.  It  possessed  every 
feature  of  picturesque  scenery,  reaching  in  many 
places  to  unimaginable  grandeur.  Nature  had  fur- 
thermore been  peculiarly  lavish  of  her  wealth ;  she 
had  provided  the  mountain  chains  with  some  of  the 
richest  mines  in  the  world,  and  had  furnished  the 
valleys  with  regions  of  the  greatest  fertility,  capable 
of  producing  every  vegetable  growth  of  every  chme, 
in  sufficient  quantities  to  support  a  population  of  one 
hundred  and  fifty  millions. 

The  history  of  the  Spanish  Domination  in  Mexico 
extends  over  three  centuries.  It  took  a  considerable 
time  for  Spain  to  devise  and  put  into  operation  a 
system  of  government  for  her  newly  acqun-ed  pos- 
sessions in  the  We^tfern  Hemisphere.  The  Consejo 
de  las  India s  (Council  of  the  Indies)  and  the  Casa 
de  Contratacion  (answering  in  Spain  very  nearly  to 
the  EngUsh  India  House)  were  already  in  existence 
in  anticipation  of  the  establishment  of  colonies  in  the 
New  World ;  but  neither  of  these  agencies  was  pre- 
pared at  once  to  arrange  for  the  government  of  the 
vast  country  brought   suddenly  within   its  jurisdic- 


MEXICO   UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  3 

tion  by  the  almost  incredible  exploits  of  Cortes.  For 
several  years  the  Conquistadores  assumed  charge  of 
the  country  as  Military  Governors  ;  though  the  Ayun- 
tamiento  (the  Spanish  form  of  municipal  government) 
was  established,  first  in  Vera  Cruz  and  afterwards  in 
the  City  of  Mexico.  This  provisional  form  of  govern- 
ment was  subsequently  more  widely  adopted  for  the 
organization  of  cities,  the  division  of  land  among 
colonists,  and  tlie  greater  secmity  of  the  inhabitants 
of  the  Province.  At  the  same  time,  the  districts  into 
which  the  Province  was  early  divided  were  superin- 
tended by  Cabildos  controlled  by  a  central  government 
in  the  City  of  Mexico.  But  to  a  great  extent,  the 
ordinances  and  rules  of  the  Ai/untamiento  of  Mexico 
have  been  in  force  in  the  country  from  1522  up  to 
very  recent  times. 

Los  Oficiales  Reales  (the  Royal  Officers),  appointed 
to  govern  the  country  in  the  absence  of  Cortes,  were 
early  added  to  the  governing  machinery  of  the  new 
country ;  and  Los  Visitadores  y  Jueces  de  Residencia 
(Visitors  and  Resident  Judges),  who  were  at  first 
sent  by  the  Crown  to  investigate  the  conduct  of  Cortes 
and  the  other  Military  Governors,  soon  superseded 
them  in  the  government  and  exercised  extraordinary 
powers. 

In  1528  a  body  of  men  styled  Audiencia  Real 
(Royal  Audience)  arrived  in  Mexico.  It  was  com- 
posed of  five  commissioners  known  as  Oidores  (Au- 
ditors), sent  out  by  the  King  of  Spain  to  impose  a 
furtlier  check  upon  Cortes.  The  Audiencia  super- 
seded the  Military  Governors,  Oficiales  Reales,  and 
Visitadores  y  Jueces  de  Residencia,  in  the  government 
of  New  Spain,  and  performed  for  a  while  all  the 
functions  relating  to  the  administration  of  justice. 


4  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Mexico,  however,  had  not  become  a  colony  in  the 
sense  in  which  that  term  would  be  used  in  England 
or  France.  It  was  governed,  in  common  with  the 
other  Spanish  possessions  in  the  Western  World,  by 
codes  of  laws  distinct  from  the  laws  of  Spain  and 
intended  to  suit  what  were  considered  the  special 
exigencies  of  the  trans-Atlantic  Provinces.  Mexico 
was,  in  fact,  a  separate  kingdom,  and  was  so  termed 
in  all  legislation  upon  the  subject;  and,  with  Peru, 
Buenos  Ayres,  Chili,  and  other  South  American 
countries,  contributed  to  form  that  vast  empire  whose 
sovereign  was  enabled  thereby  to  call  himself  "  King 
of  Spain  and  the  Indies." 

In  1535,  with  the  arrival  of  the  first  of  the  Spanish 
Viceroys,  the  scheme  of  government  finally  settled 
down  into  that  of  a  Vireinate  ;  and  this  system  con- 
tinued for  three  centuries,  until  the  Mexicans,  after 
^  long  struggle,  in  1821  threw  off  the  yoke  of  Spain, 
and,  as  an  independent  nation,  began  a  series  of 
experiments  in  self-government.  Throughout  this 
long  period,  however,  the  Royal  Audiences  were  con- 
tinued as  a  permanent  institution  to  v/hich  even  the 
Viceroys  were  subject  in  judicial  matters.  The  Audi- 
ences were  to  act  as  a  check  upon  the  Viceroys,  and 
had  the  privilege  of  placing  their  President  in  charge 
of  the  government  during  any  vacancy  that  might 
occur  in  the  Viceregal  office.  In  a  number  of  cases 
the  President  of  the  Audiencia  not  only  discharged 
the  functions  of  the  Viceregal  office,  but  took  the 
title  of  Viceroy.  All  this  was  in  accordance  with 
Spain's  usual  policy  with  her  possessions  beyond  the 
seas,  of  setting  one  part  of  a  government  to  watch 
the  other.  For  a  similar  purpose,  an  Intendente  was 
appointed  by  the  Crown,  charged  with  the  duty  of 


MEXICO    UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  5 

collecting  and  applying  the  taxes,  revenues,  and  im- 
posts, which  in  New  Spain  were  predestined  to  be 
many  and  exceedingly  vexatious. 

The  Viceroys  were  appointed  for  five  years,  by  the 
King,  at  the  instance  of  the  Consejo  de  las  Indicts. 
They  were  to  be  the  supreme  rulers  or  chiefs  of  New 
Spain,  representing  in  everything,  as  their  political 
title  implied,  the  King  of  Spain,  — with  their  authority 
limited  only  in  certain  cases  by  the  Audiencias  or  by 
the  Ayimtamientos.  They  were  wholly  without  re- 
sponsibility to  the  people  v/hom  they  were  sent  to 
govern.  All  the  powers  of  administration  were  con- 
centrated in  this  Viceregal  authority,  —  though  the 
holders  of  the  office  were  of  necessity  provided  with 
Fiscales,  or  Administrators  of  various  kinds,  whom, 
because  of  their  own  too  general  lack  of  familiarity 
with  the  administration  of  justice,  they  were  obliged 
to  consult  before  taking  any  important  step. 

The  Viceroys  were  for  the  most  part  Spanish  nobles 
and  courtiers  who  desired  the  position  for  their  own 
selfish  purposes,  for  repairing  their  dilapidated  for- 
tunes; and  they  generally  returned  to  Spain  with 
wealth  wrung  from  the  ]\lexicans,  after  maintaining  a 
court  in  Mexico  patterned  after  that  of  Madrid  and 
accompanied  by  all  the  pageantry  of  the  royal  admin- 
istration of  the  sixteenth  century.  In  their  goverii- 
ment  they  seem  to  have  been  actuated  chiefly  by  a 
desire  (after  recuperating  their  own  fortunes)  to  se- 
cure all  that  was  possible  for  the  royal  treasury,  to 
build  up  and  strengthen  the  government  and  wealth 
of  Spain,  and  to  extend  the  dominion  of  the  Church. 

As  would  naturally  be  expected  under  such  cir- 
cumstances, the  Viceroys  were  not  in  every  case 
wise  and    just  rulers.     Some   were,   indeed,   distin- 


6  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

guished  for  their  honorable  services  in  New  Spain. 
But  the  list  of  these  is  not  a  long  one,  and  includes 
few  names  besides  those  of  Antonio  de  Meudoza 
(1535-1550),  Luis  de  Velasco  (1550-1566),  Fray  Payo 
de  Rivera,  Archbishop  of  Mexico  (1673),  the  Marquis 
of  Croix  (1766-1771),  Bucareli  (1771-1779),  Matlas 
de  Galvez  "the  Dihgent"  (1783-1785),  his  no  less 
diligent  son  Bernardo  (1785-1787),  and  the  eccen- 
tric second  Count  of  Revillagigedo  (1789-1794).  A 
majority  of  the  Viceroys  exhibited  characters  reflect- 
ing too  clearly  the  deplorable  condition  into  wliich 
the  affairs  of  Spain  were  falhng. 

Viceroys  and  Viceregal  government  were  expensive 
luxuries  for  New  Spain.  The  fact  that  some  of  the 
Viceroys  were  able  to  build  churches  and  aqueducts, 
and  make  other  expensive  public  improvements  at 
their  own  cost  and  charges  (as  is  so  often  recorded 
of  those  of  the  seventeenth  and  eighteenth  centuries), 
out  of  a  salary  of  forty  thousand  dollars  a  year,  in- 
creased about  the  year  1689  to  seventy  thousand 
dollars,  indicates  a  state  of  affairs  likely  to  awaken 
suspicion,  to  say  the  least.  There  were  many  ways 
by  which  the  Viceroys  could  gain  wealth  in  the 
discharge  of  their  official  duties.  Some  of  these 
methods  were  looked  upon  as  quite  legitimate  in  the 
easy-going  morality  of  those  days.  Titles  and  dis- 
tinctions obtained  from  the  King  upon  the  recom- 
mendation of  a  Viceroy  were  made  matters  of  bargain 
and  sale  from  which  the  Viceroys  derived  a  profit. 
The  granting  of  licenses  furnished  another  source 
of  revenue ;  and  there  were  some  offices  without 
salary,  for  which  large  sums  were  paid  because  of 
the  opportunities  they  afforded  the  holders  for  pecu- 
lation and  the  acceptance  of  bribes. 


MEXICO   UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  7 

There  were  other  methods,  however,  by  which  a 
Viceroy  was  enabled  to  amass  a  fortune,  not  so  readily 
condoned  by  popular  opinion,  even  in  that  age  of 
loose  public  morals.  The  Viceroys  were  frequently 
coming  into  conflict  with  the  people ;  and  thus  were 
occasioned  the  numerous  insurrections  recorded  in 
the  period  of  the  Spanish  Domination.  And  it  is 
especially  noticeable  that  on  the  occasions  when  the 
Audiencia  assumed  ad  interim  the  supreme  power  in 
New  Spain,  it  seldom  failed  to  distinguish  itself  by 
some  act  that  served  to  outrage  the  people. 

The  offices  of  the  government  under  the  Viceroys 
were  generally  conferred  upon  those  needing  posi- 
tions. Offices  were  created  for  the  purpose  of  pro- 
viding for  such  as  had  claims  upon  the  good  graces 
of  the  sovereign.  And  as  new  abuses  were  discovered 
in  the  new  country,  new  offices  were  created  for  the 
purpose  of  correcting  them,  or  with  the  object  of 
espionage  ;  and  so  the  official  list  grew,  until  the 
number  of  officials  and  the  amount  of  governing 
exercised  in  New  Spain  exceeded  that  of  any  province 
on  record.  Yet  for  all  that,  even  when  Spain  was 
made  aware  of  some  of  the  maladies  that  afflicted  her 
provinces  beyond  the  Atlantic,  growing  out  of  defects 
in  her  governing  system,  she  showed  herself  incom- 
petent to  cure  them. 

Even  earher  than  the  Vireinate,  an  Ecclesiastical 
government  was  established  in  New  Spain.  As  its 
development  proceeded,  it  supplied  to  some  extent 
an  added  check  upon  the  government  of  the  Vice- 
roys ;  for  so  closely  were  Church  and  State  allied 
in  Spain,  that  interference  in  the  government  by  the 
religious  and  secular  clergy  was  not  only  possible 
in  New  Spain,  but  was  scarcely  to  be  avoided. 


8  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

This  Ecclesiastical  government  might  be  traced, 
as  to  its  origin,  to  the  bull  of  Pope  Alexander  VI.,  — 
himself  a  Spaniard,  —  who,  when  news  of  the  wealth 
of  the  New  World  first  came  to  Europe,  promptly 
divided  the  New  "West  between  Spain  and  Portugal, 
upon  condition  that  the  King  of  Spain  should  assume 
charge  of  the  spiritual  destinies  of  the  natives.  In 
1502  the  King  of  Spain  was  constituted  the  head 
of  the  Church  in  America,  with  the  sole  right  of 
appointing  to  benefices  and  offices  therein.  Eccle- 
siastical government  was  destined,  from  the  start, 
to  exert  an  important  influence  upon  the  affairs  of 
New  Spain,  and  to  entail  some  serious  problems  for 
settlement  by  the  subsequent  Republic  of  Mexico. 
The  evangelization  of  the  country  kept  pace  with, 
or  even  in  many  cases  outstripped,  its  colonization,  in 
the  early  years  of  New  Spain.  It  was  effected  by  the 
religious  orders,  whom  Cortes  preferred  to  the  secular 
clergy,  as  best  fitted  for  the  work  awaiting  them  in 
a  new  country ;  and  as  a  consequence,  the  members 
of  these  orders  increased  in  number  more  rapidly 
than  the  secular  clergy. 

In  this  work  of  evangelization  by  the  religious 
orders,  the  Franciscans  took  the  lead.  They  were 
followed  by  the  Dominicans,  and  later  by  a  number 
of  other  orders.  The  work  of  all  these  extended 
rapidly,  until  in  a  short  time  the  colonized  portions 
of  New  Spain  resembled  one  vast  ecclesiastical  estab- 
lishment. A  glance  at  the  map  of  Mexico  serves  to 
strengthen  this  assertion  as  well  as  to  illustrate  it. 
The  Spanish  names  to  be  found  thereon  are  for 
the  most  part  religious  names,  and  mark  points  at 
which  the  missionaries  established  their  work  in  the 
sixteenth  and  seventeenth  centuries.     So  widespread 


MEXICO   UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  9 

had  the  system  of  the  Franciscans  become  in  1606 
that  the  entire  country  was  divided  into  six  prov- 
inces. Mexico  was  erected  into  a  Bishopric  before  the 
Viceregal  government  was  estabHshed  therein.  New 
Bishoprics  were  organized  so  rapidly  that  in  1545 
IMexico  was  advanced  to  the  dignity  of  an  Arch- 
bishopric, including  four  other  dioceses.  Two  more 
dioceses  were  added  within  a  few  years  subsequently. 

It  may  be  frankly  admitted  that  the  influence  of 
the  reliofious  orders  was  in  the  main  beneficial  to  the 
country  throughout  the  sixteenth  century.  The 
Archbishops  and  Bishops  of  Mexico  exercised  great 
influence  in  the  affairs  of  government.  They  were 
respected  by  the  civil  authorities  and  venerated  by 
the  natives.  The  Franciscans,  by  zealous  missionary 
work  among  the  natives,  gained  a  powerful  influence 
over  their  converts,  which  they  used  judiciously  to 
strengthen  the  position  obtained  for  the  Spaniards 
through  conquest,  and  maintained  by  force  of  arms. 
The  Jesuits,  who  arrived  in  the  year  1572,  true 
to  the  purpose  of  their  order,  tried  to  foster  learning 
in  the  new  land,  though  with  but  limited  success. 
Other  religious  orders  established  and  maintained 
admirably  appointed  hospitals  and  asylums  in  every 
large  city. 

The  Dominicans  were  not  slow  in  establishing  the 
detestable  Inquisition ;  but  it  was  for  the  express 
and  very  plausible  purpose  of  keeping  the  colonists 
and  foreigners  in  order,  and  advancing  the  spiritual 
interests  of  the  Church.  The  Indians  were,  by  spe- 
cific command,  exempted  from  its  operations.  Of  all 
the  orders,  the  Dominicans  exerted  the  most  powerful 
influence  in  political  affairs.  It  was  upon  the  sug- 
gestion of   Zumarraga,  a  Dominican,  who   was   the 


10  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

first  Bishop  of  Mexico,  that  the  Viceregal  system 
of  government  was  adopted  for  New  Spain.  And 
the  government  was  more  frequently  under  Domini- 
can than  Franciscan  or  any  other  religious  influence. 
The  Archbishopric  of  Mexico  was  likewise  filled  with 
members  of  the  Dominican  order.  Under  the  Vice- 
regal system,  combined  as  it  was  with  the  system 
of  Royal  Audiences,  in  case  of  a  vacancy  a  prelate 
would  frequently  hold  the  office  of  Viceroy  ad  interim  ; 
and  thus  the  names  of  ten  prelates,  nearly  all  Domini- 
cans, appear  in  the  list  of  the  sixty-two  Viceroys  of 
New  Spain. 

In  the  seventeenth  century  the  beneficial  influence 
of  the  religious  orders  began  to  wane.  They  had 
grown  rich  and  worldly;  the  Carmelites,  who  had 
come  to  Mexico  as  late  as  1585,  had  become  so 
wealthy  that  they  owned  estates  in  the  province  of 
San  Luis  Potosi  one  hundred  leagues  in  extent, 
reaching  from  the  city  of  that  name  to  Tampico  on 
the  Gulf  coast.  The  protection  of  the  Indians  from 
the  aggressions  of  the  colonists,  previously  aiforded 
by  the  orders,  was  greatly  relaxed.  It  is  not  without 
significance  that  one  great  source  of  the  Church's 
wealth  during  this  period  was  found  in  the  opulent 
colonists,  who  by  their  munificent  gifts  to  the  Church 
were  able  to  acquire  an  ascendancy  over  the  ecclesias- 
tical authorities  and  maintained  it  ready  for  use  when- 
ever an  emergency  arose  rendering  it  serviceable. 

Feuds  arose  between  the  religious  and  the  secular 
clergy,  and  led  to  contentions  in  the  Church.  The 
Franciscans  and  the  Dominicans  had  but  to  transfer 
to  their  homes  in  the  New  World  the  bitter  jealousies 
that  had  characterized  them  in  the  Old.  The  man- 
agement of  the  Indians  furnished  a  constant  occasion 


MEXICO   UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  11 

of  strife  between  the  friars  of  all  the  orders  and  the 
civil  authorities. 

So  it  came  about  most  naturally,  and  as  one  of  the 
repetitions  to  which  history  is  proverbially  committed, 
that  the  influence  of  the  religious  orders  proved  ex- 
ceedingly harmful  during  the  last  of  the  three  centu- 
ries of  Spanish  rule  in  Mexico.  The  Dominicans, 
who  had  all  along  been  a  dominating  power,  liad,  by 
the  exercise  of  the  functions  of  the  Holy  Office, 
engendered  a  deep  feeling  of  hatred  for  the  religious 
government,  and  this  hatred  reacted  upon  the  politi- 
cal government  so  closely  connected  with  it.  The 
Dominicans  alone  might  be  said  to  have  furnished  a 
powerful  cause  for  the  overthrow  of  Spanish  rule,  at 
the  very  time  that  they  were  laboring  hardest  to  up- 
hold it  as  it  manifested  signs  of  tottering.  And  all 
the  orders,  —  by  seizing  and  holding  vast  amounts  of 
property,  by  building  churches  and  monasteries  in 
times  when  the  people  were  suffering  the  most  abject 
poverty,  and  by  enforcing  the  law  of  tithes  and  thus 
gaining  control  of  wealth  which  should  have  been 
applied  to  encouraging  industry  and  relieving  the 
needs  of  the  people,  —  conspired  to  stimulate  the 
popular  discontent  which  finally  broke  out  into  open 
revolt. 

It  is  too  often  the  custom  of  nations  dominating 
foreign  peoples,  or  founding  colonies,  to  extort  as 
much  as  possible  of  the  products  of  their  subjects, 
and  make  their  happiness  and  progress  a  mere  sec- 
ondary consideration  or  leave  them  out  of  the  account 
altogether.  Spain  exemplified  this  custom  in  regard 
to  her  possessions  in  America.  After  the  abdication 
of  Carlos  I.  and  the  accession  of  his  narrow-souled 
and  bigoted  son  Felipe  II.  (more  generally  known  to 


12  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLW 

English-speaking  readers  as  Philip  II.),  the  colonial 
policy  was  lowered  from  the  high  standard  set  for  it 
by  the  father.  Felipe  cared  nothing  for  the  New 
World,  save  as  a  source  of  supply  for  gold  and  silver, 
and  as  a  field  for  the  exercise  of  his  religious  bigotry. 
From  the  time  of  Felipe  II.,  the  Inquisition,  the 
power  of  the  Church,  and  unjust  taxation,  marking 
the  downward  course  of  the  Spanish  Empire,  exer- 
cised a  dominating  influence  upon  the  colonial  policy 
in  Mexico.  The  unwholesome  spirit  of  absolutism  in 
the  court  of  Madrid  manifested  itself  likewise  in  the 
Viceregal  court  of  New  Spain. 

Under  Carlos  III.  (1759-1787),  a  reform  was 
undertaken  in  Spain,  and  the  effects  thereof  were 
felt  in  Mexico.  The  Inquisition  was  stifled,  the 
power  of  the  Church  was  curtailed,  and  taxation 
was  reduced.  Viceroys  who  were  men  of  energy  and 
probity  Avere  sent  out  to  New  Spain,  and  with  them 
a  Visitor-General  Avith  full  power  to  investigate  and 
reform  all  parts  of  the  government  and  especially  the 
financial  system  employed  there.  Special  privileges 
were  granted  to  the  natives,  and  an  attempt  was  made 
to  give  the  Europeans  in  Mexico  a  better  opportunity 
for  self-government.  All  this,  however,  lasted  but 
for  a  time.  Then  affairs  relapsed  into  their  former 
state,  and  the  evils  of  that  state  were  worse  than  at 
first. 

Colonization  resulted  in  the  creation  of  various 
social  classes  among  his  Majesty's  subjects  in  New 
Spain.  There  Avere,  first  of  all,  the  white  colonists  of 
pure  Spanish  blood.  These  comprised  the  only  recog- 
nized society  in  the  social  organization  that  existed  in 
Spanish  America.     They  were  attached  to  the  Vice- 


MEXICO    UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  13 

regal  court,  or  were  in  thorough  sympathy  therewith, 
under  a  policy  of  government  that  permitted  only 
Spaniards  to  fill  the  offices  in  New  Spain.  They  were 
wild  adventurers  for  the  most  part,  —  gold-thirsty  trad- 
ers, often  less  civilized  in  their  notions  of  truth  and 
in  the  refinement  of  their  manners  and  mode  of  life 
than  the  races  whose  land  they  had  invaded.  Yet  to 
them  only  were  the  doors  open  for  preferment  in  the 
Church,  in  the  army,  or  at  the  bar,  for  many  years 
previous  to  the  opening  of  the  nineteenth  century. 
They  inhabited  chiefly  the  table-lands  of  the  interior 
of  the  country,  and  were  inclined  to  uphold  Spain's 
unjust  policy  of  government  in  the  Western  World 
as  against  all  the  other  social  classes.  In  the  later 
period  of  Spanish  Domination  they  became  known  as 
"  Old  Spaniards " ;  and  to  the  Indians  they  were 
known  as  G-achupincs,  —  a  word  of  dubious  origin, 
always  applied  opprobriously  and  probably  meaning 
"  thieves." 

In  the  opposite  social  scale  were  the  Indians,  the 
pure  native  races,  —  Aztecs,  Zapotecs,  Tarascans, 
Otomies,  and  many  others,  —  who  were  scarcely  rec- 
ognized as  having  any  rights  which  the  Spaniards 
were  bound  to  respect.  It  is  evident,  from  various 
decrees  of  the  Crown  and  of  the  Viceroys,  that  the 
Spanish  government  never  recognized  as  vested  in 
the  Indians  any  but  possessory  rights  in  the  land  to 
which  they  were  indigenous,  and  that  it  never  intended 
to  grant  them  anything  more  than  this.  These  people 
were  concentrated  mainly  in  the  vicinity  of  the  large 
cities  of  the  table-lands,  —  Mexico,  Puebla,  Oaxaca, 
Guanajuato  and  Valladolid. 

A  third  class  wfis  composed  of  Creoles,  as  they  were 
called,  —  the  white  natives  of  New  Spain  of  pure 


14  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

European  descent.  These,  although  the  possessors 
of  wealth,  and  arrogating  to  themselves  positions  of 
equality  with  the  Spaniards,  were  regarded  by  the 
latter  in  almost  the  same  category  as  the  native  In- 
dians. Usually  classed  with  the  Creoles,  and  going 
by  their  name,  were  people  of  mixed  Indian  and 
Spanish  blood,  more  properly  known  as  Meztizos. 

There  were,  besides  these  three  chief  classes,  vari- 
ous kinds  of  half-castes,  — the  mixtui'e  of  whites  and 
negroes,  or  mulattoes;  Indians  and  negroes,  called 
Zamhos  or  Chinos;  and  there  were  some  African 
negroes,  principally  upon  the  Gulf  and  Pacific  coasts, 
wliither  the  African  slaves  imported  into  Mexico  were 
sent  because  of  the  unheal thfulness  of  those  regions 
for  the  Europeans. 

In  1793,  according  to  a  report  made  to  the  King  by 
the  Viceroy  of  that  time,  —  the  energetic  but  eccentric 
Count  of  Revillagigedo,  —  the  proportion  of  these 
various  classes  was  about  as  follows :  out  of  a  popu- 
lation of  five  and  a  quarter  millions  in  New  Spain, 
there  were  less  than  ten  thousand  Europeans,  about 
two-thirds  of  a  million  of  white  Creoles,  a  million 
and  a  half  of  the  different  half-castes,  and  over  two 
and  a  quarter  millions  of  Indians.  The  number  of 
Europeans  is  supposed  to  have  increased  to  eighty 
thousand  within  the  next  quarter  of  a  century,  and 
that  of  the  white  Creoles  to  about  a  million. 

The  asperities  resulting  from  the  mutual  repug- 
nance of  the  Mexican  and  Spanish  stocks  were  in- 
creased by  the  refusal  of  the  Spaniards,  in  their  pride, 
to  make  any  distinction  between  the  Indians  and  the 
Creoles,  even  though  the  latter  might  be  as  rich  as 
themselves,  and  certainly  were  more  numerous ;  and 
although,  also,  they  were  numerically  strong  enough 


MEXICO    UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  15 

at  any  time,  either  alone  or  by  uniting  with  the  In- 
dians, to  overthrow  the  power  of  Spain  and  set  up  a 
government  of  their  own.  Yet  so  great  was  the 
Spanish  contempt  for  all  but  "  Old  Spaniards  "  that 
one  of  the  later  Vicero3'S,  after  the  question  of  "  home 
rule  "  had  arisen,  declared  that  as  long  as  a  Castilian 
remained  in  the  country,  tliough  he  were  no  more 
than  a  cobbler,  he  ought  to  rule  in  New  Spain. 

Not  only  had  the  conquest  and  subjugation  of 
the  country  been  marked  by  extreme  cruelty  to  the 
native  races,  but  with  the  earliest  schemes  for 
colonization,  the  iniquitous  system  of  encomiendas 
and  repartimientos  had  been  introduced  into  Mexico. 
Thus  had  been  established  a  kind  of  slavery  for  the 
Indians,  partaking  somewhat  of  the  nature  of  feudal 
vassalage  in  different  forms,  ranging  from  mere  ward- 
ship to  absolute  servitude  of  the  most  abject  type.  It 
is  true  that  laws  v/ere  enacted  by  the  Consejo  de  las 
Indias,  apparently  emanating  from  a  desire  to  protect 
the  Indians  and  put  some  curb  on  the  extortions  and 
cruelty  of  the  colonists.  But  Spain  was  too  far  dis- 
tant, and  communication  was  too  difficult,  for  the  cry  of 
the  oppressed  to  be  distinctly  heard,  or  to  enable  the 
mother  country  to  exercise  any  supervision  or  exert 
any  great  influence  in  ameliorating  their  condition. 

Some  of  tlie  decrees  for  the  amelioration  of  the 
Indians  illustrate,  as  nothing  else  can,  the  extent 
of  the  evils  sought  to  be  remedied.  For  example,  a 
royal  ordinance  of  1554  decreed  that  no  slaves  should 
be  made  in  future  wars ;  that  the  system  of  assigning 
slaves  to  each  colonist  should  be  abandoned ;  and  that 
the  Indians  should  not  as  a  class  be  solely  devoted  to 
ignoble  pursuits.  Thirty  years  later  the  attempt  was 
made  to  secure  for  the  Indians  employed  in  the  mines, 


16  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

"  regular  hours  of  repose,  and  some  time  to  breathe 
the  fresh  air  on  the  surface  of  the  earth." 

Decrees  abolishing  slavery  were  numerous.  Luis 
de  Velasco,  the  second  Viceroy,  by  his  act  manumit- 
ting one  hundred  and  fifty  thousand  Indians  held  as 
slaves  by  the  Spanish  colonists,  gained  for  himself  the 
title  of  "  The  Emancipator."  Yet  upon  a  division  of 
the  royal  domain,  some  time  subsequently,  the  gov- 
ernment estabhshed  a  bad  precedent  of  inconsistency 
with  its  own  decrees,  by  transferring  the  Indians  with 
the  soil.  And  notwithstanding  decrees  of  manumis- 
sion and  restriction,  slavery  continued  under  various 
forms  throughout  the  Spanish  regime  ;  and  cruelty  to 
the  slaves  bore  fruit  from  time  to  time  in  terrible 
pestilences,  whereby  nearly  two  millions  of  Indians 
are  said  to  have  perished. 

The  colonists  eagerly  sought  the  revocation  of  the 
decree  of  1554,  and  were  wont  to  plead,  in  defence  of 
their  cruel  treatment  of  the  IncUans,  that  only  by  the 
employment  of  slave  labor  could  they  hope  to  make 
the  country  produce  the  exorbitant  taxes  levied  upon 
colonial  products  by  the  Spanish  government.  There 
may  have  been  something  in  the  plea  by  which  they 
sought  to  hold  Spain  responsible  for  the  continuance 
of  an  institution  which  she  was  ostensibly  endeavor- 
ing to  keep  within  bounds  and  eventually  to  abolish. 

The  laws  enacted  by  the  Consejo  de  las  Indices  for 
the  government  of  the  colonists  (who  were,  however, 
denied  all  voice  in  their  enactment)  had  little  or  no 
regard  for  the  needs  of  the  Spanish  subjects  in  New 
Spain ;  they  were  involved  in  contradictions,  and 
were  arbitrarily  enforced.  The  Consejo  was  in  some 
respects  the  most  pecuhar  governing  body  known  to 
history.     It  was   established  in  1511,  and  gradually 


MEXICO    UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  17 

usurped  exclusive  control  of  the  Spanish  possessions 
in  the  New  World.  It  enacted  all  the  laws  and  regu- 
lations for  the  government  of  Spanish  America,  and 
made  or  confirmed  all  appointments  —  civil,  military, 
and  even  ecclesiastical  —  for  that  country.  The 
higher  officials  of  New  Spain  received  from  the  Con- 
sejo  orders  and  instructions  regarding  the  perform- 
ance of  their  duties,  which  had  to  be  explicitl}'- 
obeyed ;  and  the  Consejo  was  a  final  Court  of  Ap- 
peals in  all  cases  involving  important  questions  aris- 
ing in  the  New  World.  Over  all  its  proceedings  the 
monarch  reserved  the  right  of  veto ;  but  this  right 
was  seldom  exercised. 

Vacancies  in  the  Consejo  were  filled  upon  its  own 
recommendation ;  consequently  it  was  a  self-perpetu- 
ating body,  both  as  to  its  constituency  and  as  to  its 
policy.  It  soon  became  forgetful  that  it  owed  any  ob- 
ligations to  the  native  Mexicans,  or  that  those  people 
were  any  other  than  beasts  of  burden,  bound  to  eter- 
nal vassalage  to  the  Spanish  people  quite  as  much  as 
to  the  Spanish  monarch.  Some  one  has  remarked  that 
"  the  worst  features  of  the  two  worst  governments  in 
the  world  —  the  Gothic  rule  and  that  of  the  Spanish 
Moors  —  had  been  combined  to  form  the  government 
of  Spain ;  and  then  the  worst  features  of  this  mongrel 
government  had  been  carefully  preserved  to  oj)press 
the  native  population  of  Mexico,  in  the  code  sent  out 
to  it  by  the  Supreme  Council  of  the  Indies." 

The  law  in  New  Spain  was  exceedingly  slow  in  its 
course.  Redress  sought  by  appeal  to  tlie  Viceroy 
might  have  to  go  to  the  Council  of  the  Indies ;  and 
matters  that  ought  to  have  been  settled  by  the  Al- 
calde or  Regidor  of  a  provincial  town  must  be  de- 
layed until  they  could  reach  the  Viceroy  and  await 


18  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

his  deliberations.  In  fact,  so  impossible  was  it  to  ob- 
tain, through  the  Council  and  the  officials  sent  from 
Spain,  redress  for  injuries  which  those  in  Mexico 
might  receive,  that  a  maxim  came  into  vogue  to 
the  effect  that  "  God  is  in  Heaven,  and  the  King  is 
in  Spain,"  —  implying  that  there  was  no  hmit  to  the 
power  of  the  royal  representatives,  and  no  remedy 
for  the  wrongs  done  to  the  subject ;  significant  also 
of  the  forgetfulness  of  all  humanity  on  the  part  of 
Spanish  officials  and  hopeless  submission  of  the  sub- 
jects to  their  rule.  In  other  parts  of  the  Spanish 
possessions  a  proverbial  expression  was  current  and 
was  applied  to  any  official  whose  conduct  proved  un- 
just, arbitrary,  or  tyrannical:  Es  muy  Rey,  He  is  very 
much  King  ! 

In  regard  to  commerce,  the  Spanish  monarchs, 
aided  and  abetted  by  the  Oonsejo  and  the  Casa  de 
Contratacion,  manifested  a  peculiar  phase  of  absolu- 
tism. That  the  trade  might  be  controlled  for  the  sole 
advantage  and  benefit  of  the  home  government,  the 
colonists  were  prohibited,  under  penalty  of  death  and 
forfeiture  of  property,  from  trading  with  any  country 
but  Spain.  Even  a  carrying  trade  between  one  col- 
ony and  another  was  forbidden ;  and  commerce  with 
Spain  was  so  trammelled  with  burdensome  regula- 
tions as  to  render  it  far  from  profitable  save  to  the 
favored  few. 

The  Oasa  de  Contratacion  had  been  estabhshed  in 
1501,  for  the  purpose  of  directing  the  course  of  com- 
merce between  the  colonies  and  the  mother  country. 
It  was  a  court  of  judicature,  and  had  jurisdiction  over 
the  conduct  of  all  persons  connected  with  the  trade 
between  the  two  countries.  An  appeal  from  it  could 
be  made  to  the  Consejo  after  that  body  was  created. 


MEXICO    UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  19 

By  the  regulations  of  the  Casa,  all  commerce  was 
to  be  carried  on  in  Spanish  ships.  Not  a  vessel  could 
unload  a  cargo  except  at  a  given  port,  —  Sevilla  at 
first,  and  until  Cadiz  was  made  a  like  favored  city,  — 
and  an  outgoing  vessel  could  receive  only  such  goods 
as  had  passed  through  that  port.  No  foreign  vessel 
could  enter  any  harbor  in  Mexico.  Other  ports  of 
Spain  were  opened  to  trade  in  the  time  of  Carlos  III., 
but  only  for  a  short  time.  In  Mexico,  commerce  was 
restricted  to  the  port  of  Vera  Cruz. 

All  English  goods  had  to  be  carried  first  to  Spain, 
there  landed,  and  thence  once  more  shipped  for  their 
first  destination  in  the  New  World ;  so  that  the  price 
was  enhanced  a  hundred-fold  by  the  time  the  goods 
reached  the  consumer  in  INIexico.  Such  restrictions 
upon  trade  threw  it  into  the  hands  of  a  few  business 
houses,  and  created  monopolies  with  all  their  attend- 
ant evils.  When  Sevilla  enjoyed  exclusive  com- 
merce with  Mexico,  the  whole  amount  of  shipping 
employed  did  not  exceed  twenty-eight  thousand  tons. 
For  a  long  time  fifteen  ships,  voyaging  at  intervals 
of  one  or  two  years,  carried  all  the  trade  between 
Spain  and  Mexico.  The  number "  was  afterwards 
increased  to  fifty  or  sixty. 

The  system  of  prohibitive  duties  was  so  exacting 
that  three-fourths  of  the  imports  into  Mexico  were 
smuggled.  The  custom-house  ofiicers  were  bribed  to 
connive  at  the  violation  of  laws  which  decreed  death 
as  a  penalty  for  their  infraction.  The  great  wonder 
is  tliat  Spain  succeeded  for  so  long  a  time  in  main- 
taining a  trade  monopoly  that,  by  all  the  rules  of 
political  economy  ever  formulated,  was  destined  from 
the  start  to  decline  and  shrink  to  dwarfish  proportions, 
and  sooner  or  later  to  collapse. 


20  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

Restrictions  upon  commerce  with  Mexico  might 
have  been  to  the  advantage  of  that  country  in  stimu- 
lating the  development  of  her  industries  and  of  her 
natural  resources.  But  so  anxious  was  Spain  to 
monopolize  every  possible  advantage,  that  it  was 
made  illegal  in  Mexico  to  erect  factories,  or  to  culti- 
vate any  raw  products  that  would  come  into  direct 
competition  with  home  industries.  Mexico  was  looked 
to  for  a  supply  of  the  precious  metals  only.  Saffron, 
hemp,  olives,  grapes  in  vineyards,  and  many  other 
things  that  Mexico  might  have  raised  for  her  own  use 
or  for  shipment  to  Spain,  were  inhibited  by  law. 
Immigration  was  thoroughly  discouraged.  No  for- 
eigner could  enter  New  Spain  without  the  express 
permission  of  the  Spanish  government.  It  was  in  the 
enforcement  of  this  law  that  the  Holy  Office  was 
expected  to  render  its  greatest  assistance. 

Education  was  discouraged  in  all  the  Spanish 
possessions.  It  is  customary  to  cite  as  historic  facts, 
in  contradiction  of  this  statement,  the  setting  up  in 
Mexico,  in  1535,  of  the  first  printing-press  in  the  New 
"World,  and  the  establishment  there,  in  1551,  of  the 
first  University  on  this  continent.  But  neither  the 
printing-press  nor  the  so-called  University  proved 
very  powerful  agents  in  the  dissemination  of  learning. 
The  printing-press  was  necessarily  limited  in  its  use- 
fulness by  circumstances ;  the  one  newspaper  emanat- 
ing from  it  —  the  G-aceta  —  was  published  immediately 
under  the  direction  of  the  government,  and  carefully 
excluded  anything  which  might  be  opposed  to  the 
Viceregal  Court  or  Audiencia.  Newspapers  were 
allowed  to  be  imported  from  Spain  only,  and  such  as 
came  from  that  quarter  once  or  twice  a  year  gave 
information  only  of  the  movements  of  the  Spanish 


MEXICO    UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  21 

Court  and  of  the  Church.  The  University  was  re- 
stricted in  its  usefuhiess  to  tliose  who  inherited  or 
otherwise  possessed  a  knowledge  of  the  Spanish 
tongue ;  and  it  never  had  more  than  two  hundred 
students  at  any  one  time.  What  other  schools  and 
colleges  there  may  have  been  were  kept  under  the 
sole  direction  of  ecclesiastics  who  were  charged  with 
keeping  the  people  in  ignorance  rather  than  with 
extending  then-  knowledge,  and  who  carefully  ex- 
cluded from  the  course  of  instruction  such  branches 
of  study  as  were  likely  to  elevate  the  feelings  or 
strengthen  the  mind. 

The  Index  Expurgatorius  of  the  Roman  See  was 
extended  in  its  scope  to  meet  the  requirements  of  the 
Indies;  and  the  literary  productions  of  Mexico  be- 
longing to  the  period  of  the  Spanish  Domination 
comprise  a  few  poems  and  plays  of  small  value,  and 
some  works  on  natural  history  and  on  the  antiquities 
of  the  country  which  it  would  be  far  from  safe  for  the 
modern  student  to  accept  as  authoritative. 

The  laws  which  excluded  Spaniards  born  in  Amer- 
ica —  that  is,  the  Creoles  proper  —  from  equal  rights 
with  those  who  were  of  direct  importation  from  Spain, 
and  especially  from  any  share  in  the  government  or 
of  the  higher  dignities  of  the  Church,  were  sufficient 
in  themselves  to  make  the  Creoles  discontented  and 
unhappy.  Their  unhappiness  and  discontent  were 
readily  communicated  to  the  Meztizos,  with  whom 
they  had  much  in  common,  and  added  to  those  feelings 
which  the  latter  had  derived  from  their  Indian  ances- 
tors. Three  centuries  of  Spanish  rule,  under  Mili- 
tary Governors,  Royal  Audiences,  Viceroys,  Religious 
Orders,  and  Ecclesiastical  Hierarchy,  were  not  suf- 
ficient to  subdue  the  proud  spirit  of  the  Indians  with 


22  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

which  Cortds  and  his  soldiers  had  to  contend  in  the 
sixteenth  century,  and  which  has  since  been  the  in- 
heritance of  every  Mexican  born  with  so  much  as  a 
drop  of  Indian  blood  in  his  veins.  The  cruel  treat- 
ment thej  had  received  left  a  legacy  of  hatred  for 
their  European  masters  stored  up  by  each  successive 
generation  of  Indians.  It  has  not  yet  been  exhausted. 
It  is  in  no  way  surprising  that  they  should  have 
becom^e  sullen  and  vengeful ;  nor  that  they  fostered, 
until  it  became  inveterate,  a  hatred  of  the  very  name 
of  Spaniard. 

The  most  important  and  the  most  disastrous  result 
of  the  long  period  of  misgovernment  in  New  Spain, 
however,  was  not  the  destruction  of  the  present  hap- 
piness of  the  people,  but  the  almost  total  destruction 
in  them  of  all  capacity  for  self-government  in  the 
future.  The  Mexican  people  were  so  long  oppressed, 
that,  like  all  people  thus  treated,  they  were  unable  to 
establish  good  government  of  their  own  until  they 
had  learned  by  the  most  painful  experiences  that  free- 
dom is  not  merely  the  absence  of  restraint,  but  a  rule, 
the  correct  administration  of  which  requires  the  sacri- 
fice of  the  wishes  of  the  individual  to  tlie  interests  of 
the  commonwealth. 

Few  countries  have  passed  through  more  political 
calamities  in  order  to  attain  to  a  knowledge  of  what 
Constitutional  government  is,  and  how  people  are 
to  be  served  thereby,  than  Mexico.  The  lesson  is 
really  in  process  of  learning  still ;  but  to  appreciate 
the  advancement  already  made  tov/ard  that  knowledge, 
and  the  difficulties  to  be  encountered  in  the  approach 
thereto,  it  is  not  only  necessary  to  consider  the  three 
centuries  when  Mexico  was  under  the  domination  of 
Spain,  and  when  her  national  character  was  being 


MEXICO    UNDER  SPANISH  RULE  23 

imperfectly  formed,  but  also  the  means  by  which  she 
gained  her  independence,  and  her  various  failures  in 
self-government  ere  a  few  of  her  people  awoke  to  a 
sense  of  the  obstacles  that  presented  themselves  to 
her  progress,  and  of  the  means  by  which  these 
obstacles  could  be  surmounted. 


24  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 


CHAPTER  II 

THE  BEGINNING  OF  THE   STRUGGLE  FOR 
INDEPENDENCE 

THROUGHOUT  tliree  centuries  of  misrule, 
Spain  liacl  furnished  her  subjects  in  Mexico 
with  abundant  grounds  for  revolt.  The 
tide  of  revolution  in  America,  begun  in  1776,  reached 
in  time  the  Spanish  provinces,  and  awakened  there, 
among  a  people  already  discontented,  a  spirit  of  inde- 
pendence. Any  shrewd  observer  of  the  social  condi- 
tions of  New  Spain  in  the  early  years  of  the  nineteenth 
century  would  have  said  that  there  existed  therein 
every  element  of  revolution.  There  were  aborigines 
and  half-breeds,  —  all  ignorant  and  superstitious ; 
there  was  a  less  numerous  class  of  Creoles,  —  wealthy 
but  discontented ;  and  there  were  a  few  thousand 
Europeans,  —  proud  and  corrupt,  profiting  by  every 
act  of  administrative  iniquity.  Such  an  observer 
would  have  predicted,  furthermore,  that  the  people 
were  but  waiting  for  some  special  occasion  or  for 
some  competent  leader  to  arouse  them  to  an  effort 
toward  freeing  themselves  from  the  domination  of 
Spain.  Yet  when  the  struggle  for  independence  was 
finally  inaugurated,  in  1808,  it  was  directly  caused 
not  so  much  by  these  conditions  in  Mexico  as  by  the 
disruption  of  the  Spanish  government  at  home. 

For  many  years,  Spain  had  been  under  the  spell  of 
the  French  Revolution,  and  subservient  to  Napoleon 
Bonaparte,  who   had  set  his   covetous  eyes  on   the 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOB  INDEPENDENCE  25 

southwestern  peninsula,  and  had  determined  that 
the  Escurial  should  be  occupied  by  a  member  of  his 
family.  Spain  had  been  making  war  and  peace  at 
his  behest,  and  in  1807  had  arranged  with  him  the 
partition  of  Portugal.  But  it  was  in  defiance  of  all 
treaties  that  Napoleon  was  now  proceeding  to  the 
mihtary  occupation  of  Spain.  Murat  entered  the 
country  with  eight  thousand  French  troops,  in  March, 
1808,  and  proceeded  to  Madrid.  The  movement  was 
nothing  less  than  an  attempt  on  the  part  of  Napoleon 
to  steal  the  crown  of  one  of  the  greatest  states  of 
Europe,  and  if  successful  to  rule  not  only  Spain  but 
also  a  boundless  empire  in  the  New  World.  Every- 
tliing  was  favorable  at  the  time  for  such  an  enter- 
prise. In  fact,  had  he  chosen  to  wait  patiently  he 
might  have  attained  his  end  in  a  short  time  without 
such  an  open  and  flagrant  breach  of  law. 

Carlos  IV.,  the  Spanish  sovereign,  was  wholly 
unfitted  to  be  the  ruler  of  a  kingdom.  He  had  been 
reckless  of  his  territorial  possessions  in  the  New 
World,  and  had,  by  the  Treaty  of  Ildefonso,  in  1801, 
"  not  as  the  spoils  of  an  open  war,  but  as  the  price 
of  a  dishonorable  peace,"  basely  and  ignorantly  aban- 
doned to  France  what  was  known  as  the  Province 
of  Louisiana,  containing  899,579  square  miles  ;  and 
Napoleon,  without  even  taking  possession,  had  subse- 
quently sold  this  territory  to  the  United  States  for 
fifteen  millions  of  dollars. 

The  virtual  ruler  of  Spain,  however,  was  the  cor- 
rupt Manuel  Godoy,  who,  though  high  in  favor  with 
the  King,  was  known  to  be  the  paramour  of  the 
Queen  (Maria  Luisa  of  Parma).  The  heir-apparent 
to  the  Spanish  throne  was  Fernando  (Ferdinand), 
Prince   of   Asturias,  —  narrow-minded,    incapable   of 


26  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

generous  emotions,  and  in  no  respects  better  than 
Godoy,  Carlos,  or  the  Queen.  He  had  lately  been 
suspected  of  harboring  designs  upon  his  father's 
life. 

Scarcely  had  Murat  advanced  to  the  capital,  when 
an  outbreak  occurred  in  Aranjuez.  Godoy  fell,  the 
King  abdicated,  and  the  Prince  of  Asturias  was  pro- 
claimed King  as  Fernando  VII.,  with  all  the  enthu- 
siasm of  which  the  Spaniards  have  shown  themselves 
capable  throughout  their  history.  That  this  move- 
ment was  encouraged  by  Napoleon,  if  not  actually 
instigated  by  him,  there  can  be  little  doubt,  despite 
his  subsequent  attempts  to  relieve  himself  of  culpa- 
bility in  the  matter.  He  at  first  refrained  from 
acknowledging  Fernando,  and  encouraged  Carlos  to 
withdraw  his  abdication  as  having  been  given  under 
duress.  When  it  thus  became  doubtful  who  was  the 
King  of  Spain,  Napoleon  signified  his  readiness  to 
act  as  arbitrator. 

Fernando  was  persuaded  to  appear  before  the 
French  Emperor  in  Bayonne,  and  was  followed 
thither  by  Carlos  and  the  Queen.  A  violent  scene 
occurred  between  the  father  and  son,  and  Napoleon 
succeeded  in  securing  the  abdication  of  both  and  their 
surrender  for  themselves  and  for  their  heirs  of  all 
rights  to  the  crown  of  Spain.  The  two  royal  refu- 
gees then  found  themselves  virtually  prisoners  in 
France.  Carlos  attempted  to  embark  for  his  domin- 
ions in  America,  but  was  prevented.  Fernando  re- 
mained a  captive  in  ValeuQay  for  five  and  a  half 
years,  with  no  knowledge  of  what  was  going  on 
in  Spain  save  as  derived  from  French  newspapers. 

The  crown  thus  relinquished  by  Carlos  and  Fer- 
nando was,  much  to  the  disappointment  of  Murat, 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  27 

first  offered  to  Louis  Bonaparte,  then  occupying  tlie 
throne  of  Holland ;  and  when  indignantly  refused  by 
him,  was  hastily  conferred  upon  Joseph  Bonaparte, 
another  brother  of  the  great  Napoleon. 

Napoleon's  efforts  to  obtain  some  show  of  consent, 
on  the  part  of  the  Spanish  nation,  to  the  nomination 
of  his  brother  to  the  throne,  resulted  in  the  submis- 
sion of  the  nobles  of  Spain  to  the  new  order  of  things. 
The  Council  of  Castile,  the  chief  political  body,  gave 
its  consent,  —  somewhat  reluctantly,  it  may  be,  — 
and  thereby  set  an  example  that  was  followed  by  the 
municipality  of  Madrid.  A  junta  of  one  hundred 
and  fifty  Spanish  notables,  summoned  to  Bayonne  in 
July,  1808,  accepted  a  constitution  proposed  by  Napo- 
leon, by  the  terms  of  which  the  Spanish  subjects  in 
America  were  to  enjoy  the  same  privileges  as  those 
of  the  mother  country,  and  were  to  be  represented  by 
deputies  in  the  C6rtes  of  Madrid. 

Fernando,  in  this  emergency,  exhibited  the  duphc- 
ity  of  his  character  in  the  letters  and  proclamations 
which  he  sent  forth  from  his  imprisonment.  The 
letters  were  to  Napoleon  and  Joseph,  and  contained 
expressions  of  satisfaction  and  congratulation.  Of 
the  proclamations,  one  called  upon  the  Spaniards  not 
to  oppose  the  "  beneficent  views  "  of  Napoleon  ;  and 
the  other  was  to  the  Asturians,  calling  upon  them  to 
assert  their  independence  and  never  to  submit  to  the 
perfidious  enemy  who  had  deprived  the  King  of  his 
rights. 

The  first  of  these  proclamations  was  regarded  as 
having  been  extorted  from  Fernando  under  duress 
of  imprisonment,  and  was  more  effective  than  the 
other  in  arousing  the  indignation  of  Spain.  Except- 
ing in  localities  where  the  French  arms  were  domi- 


28  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

nant,  the  people  rose  everywhere  in  revolt.  The 
cit}'  of  Valencia  renounced  allegiance  to  the  govern- 
ment of  Joseph  Bonaparte.  Sevilla  did  the  same, 
and  established  a  junta  to  watch  over  the  interests  ■ 
of  Fernando  and  claim  the  obedience  due  to  him. 
This  junta  declared  war  against  France,  in  June, 
1808.  England  proclaimed  peace  with  Spain,  and 
proceeded'  to  aid  the  Spaniards  in  their  war  against 
France.  The  war  thus  begun  continued  until  1814, 
when  Napoleon  abdicated  the  throne  of  France  and 
retired  to  Elba. 

Each  of  the  several  political  juntas  now  formed  in 
various  parts  of  Spain  sent  official  notice  of  its  proceed- 
ings to  the  Viceroy  of  Mexico,  demanding  his  obedi- 
ence, and  asking  for  money  to  carry  on  the  war.  At 
the  same  time.  Napoleon  had  his  emissaries  in  Mexico 
striving  to  promote  revolution.  They  brought  orders, 
professedly  from  Fernando  and  the  Council  of  the 
Indies,  for  the  Mexicans  to  transfer  their  allegiance 
to  France. 

Information  of  the  course  of  events  in  Spain  was 
communicated  to  the  Mexicans  by  the  proclamation 
of  the  Viceroy  dated  on  the  twentieth  of  July,  1808. 
Naturally,  perplexity  and  dismay  resulted.  The  whole 
social  system  seemed  to  have  been  shaken  loose.  The 
Mexicans  had  been  taught  to  regard  the  possessions 
of  Spain  as  vested  in  the  King,  and  not  in  the  state 
or  in  the  people.  They  could  see  no  justice  in  any 
demand  upon  their  obedience  by  a  government  which 
the  Spanish  people  had  established  without  their  con- 
sent, and  in  the  absence  of  their  recognized  sovereign. 
As  there  was  no  government  in  Spain,  that  country 
being  overrun  by  French  troops,  were  not  they  of  the 
American  provinces  left  absolutely  without  a  govern- 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  29 

ment?  and  was  the  necessity  not  clearly  revealed 
of  their  making  some  provision  for  a  government  of 
their  own? 

It  is  somewhat  remarkable,  under  such  circum- 
stances, to  find  the  people  generally  manifesting  a 
feeling  of  stanch  loyalty  to  Fernando  VII.,  and  of 
opposition  to  the  French.  It  was  especially  so  to 
find  the  Creoles  more  loyal  to  the  King  than  were  the 
Europeans.  A  former  Viceroy  had  made  advances  to 
the  people  in  the  name  of  Napoleon,  and  the  Audi- 
encia  had  been  disposed  to  favor  the  Junta  of  Madrid. 
But  the  Creoles  received  the  news  of  the  declaration 
of  war  with  France  with  every  demonstration  of  joy 
and  loyalty,  and  it  was  with  enthusiasm  that  they 
proclaimed  Fernando  VII.  their  King. 

But  for  the  class  hatred  that  existed  between  the 
various  components  of  Mexican  society,  and  for  the 
lack  among  Mexicaixs  of  leaders  having  a  knowledge 
of  the  science  of  government,  an  immediate  result  of 
the  perplexing  state  of  affairs  in  Spain  might  have 
been  the  pacific  withdrawal  of  Mexico,  and  the  organ- 
ization there  of  a  representative  government  with, 
perhaps,  Fernando  VII.  as  King.  The  first  effort  in 
that  direction,  however,  unfortunately  aroused  the 
class  hatred  to  its  intensest  degree,  and  was  thereby 
defeated. 

The  Viceroy  of  that  time  was  Jose  de  Iturrigaray, 
the  fifty-sixth,  and  by  no  means  the  worst,  of  those 
who  had  occupied  that  exalted  office.  He  was  pub- 
lic-spirited, an  excellent  ruler  in  many  ways,  and  had 
shown  himself  rather  favorably  disposed  toward  the 
people.  He  had  fostered  commerce  and  stimulated 
home  industry,  although  he  had  pursued  the  exactions 
characteristic  of  the  Viceroys  besides  such  as  were 


30  .      FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

necessary  to  supply  Spain  with  the  means  to  meet 
the  extraordinary  demands  upon  her  finances. 

In  the  perplexities  that  confronted  him,  the  Vice- 
roy declared  himself  determined  to  sustain  in  his 
government  the  interests  of  the  dethroned  Spanish 
Borbons ;  and  this  seems  to  have  been  the  popular 
determination  throughout  the  Spanish-American  prov- 
inces. It  was  witli  this  purpose  in  view  that  Iturri- 
garay  announced  the  establishment  of  the  Junta  of 
Sevilla,  and  required  the  Ayuntamiento  of  Mexico  to 
submit  to  the  orders  of  that  body.  But  he  encountered 
most  unexpected  opposition.  In  the  Ayuntamiento 
there  happened  to  be  at  that  time  a  majority  of 
Creoles;  and  some  ideas  of  government  had  been 
developed  in  the  minds  of  these,  ever  since  the  revolt 
of  the  British  colonies  to  the  north  of  Mexico  in  1776. 
These  ideas  asserted  themselves  in  the  prompt  refusal 
of  the  Ayuntamiento  to  submit  to  the  Junta  of  Sevilla. 
The  Ayuntamiento  proposed  to  recognize  Fernando 
VII.  as  the  monarch,  and  to  remain  faithful  to  him. 
But  it  was  recognized  that  Spain  and  Mexico  were 
two  kingdoms,  and  that  a  junta  established  in  the 
former  had  no  authority  in  the  latter,  either  directly 
or  indirectly,  or  by  any  sort  of  implication.  The 
Ayuntamiento  therefore  recommended  the  establish- 
ment of  a  junta  in  Mexico,  to  be  composed  of  deputies 
from  all  the  various  cabildos  of  the  province,  for  the 
purpose  of  conserving  the  interests  of  Fernando  VII. 
in  Mexico  and  giving  to  that  country  a  government. 

It  then  seemed  to  Iturrigaray  that  the  opportunity 
had  presented  itself  for  the  establishment  of  some 
kind  of  "  home  rule  "  in  New  Spain,  and  he  was  in- 
clined to  assent  to  the  suggestions  of  the  Ayuntamiento 
if  they  could  be  somewhat  modified.     He  accordingly 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  31 

announced  his  intention  of  calling  a  junta  or  con- 
gress, to  be  composed  of  the  Royal  Audience,  the 
Archbishop,  and  the  Ayuntamiento ;  and  to  include 
representatives  from  each  province,  and  from  the 
several  ecclesiastical  and  secular  bodies,  the  nobility, 
the  military,  and  some  of  the  principal  citizens.  He 
also  proposed  the  adoption  of  some  form  of  provi- 
sional government  in  which  the  people  would  be  likely 
to  have  confidence. 

The  Creoles  were  naturally  flattered  by  the  impor- 
tant part  conceded  to  them  in  this  proposed  new 
order  of  things.  There  were  ideas  of  independence 
beginning  to  crystallize  in  the  minds  of  a  few  Mexi- 
cans Avho  had  studied  the  course  of  events  in  the 
United  States,  in  Mexico,  and  in  Europe.  These  also 
fell  in  with  such  a  proposition.  But  the  Audie^icia, 
the  Fiscales,  and  the  military  and  civil  officers  sent 
out  from  Spain,  were  of  a  different  mind ;  and  they 
formed  a  powerful  oligarchy  with  whom  to  reckon. 
They  were  naturally  disposed  to  oppose  any  measure 
advocated  by  the  Creoles,  and  especially  one  that  re- 
quired their  cooperation  mth  that  hated  class.  They 
misconstrued  the  scheme  of  Iturrigaray  into  a  trea- 
sonable design  to  set  up  an  independent  empire  in  the 
country,  and  to  occupy  the  throne  thereof. 

The  precise  details  of  Iturrigaray's  plan  do  not 
clearly  appear.  He  may  have  hoped  that  during  the 
absence  of  Fernando  VII.,  who  was  to  be  the  chosen 
ruler,  the  proposed  junta  would  invest  him  with  the 
government  of  Mexico  ;  and  he  would  thereby  insure 
his  retention  of  the  viceregal  office.  But  neverthe- 
less it  was  his  undoubted  purpose  to  save  the  king- 
dom from  anarchy,  as  well  as  from  French  intrigue ; 
and  the   disinterestedness  of  his  motives  has   never 


32  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

been  called  in  question  by  representative  Mexicans. 
On  the  eve  of  the  day  set  for  the  accomplishment  of 
whatever  it  was  intended  to  do  (the  sixteenth  of  Sep- 
tember —  a  date  which,  by  a  strange  series  of  coinci- 
dences, was  to  be  associated  with  a  more  prominent 
effort  for  the  freedom  of  Mexico),  a  rich  Spanish 
merchant  living  in  Mexico,  acting  under  the  direc- 
tions of  the  Audiencia,  and  jealous  of  the  ascendancy 
the  Creoles  might  gain  from  the  popular  form  of  gov- 
ernment proposed,  appeared  before  the  Viceregal 
Palace  at  the  head  of  a  body  of  five  hundred  men. 
The  guards  of  the  palace  were  overpowered,  and  the 
Viceroy  and  his  family  were  put  under  arrest,  con- 
veyed to  Vera  Cruz,  and  confined  in  the  fortress  of 
San  Juan  de  Ulua  until  they  could  be  sent  across  the 
Atlantic  to  Spain  as  prisoners  of  state. 

This  "  counter-revolution,"  or  "  reactionary  conspir- 
acy," was  indorsed  by  the  Spaniards  of  the  viceregal 
court  and  of  the  Audiencia,  not  only  because  they  sup- 
posed the  plan  of  Iturrigaray  to  be  an  infraction  of 
their  rights  and  prerogatives,  but  because  they  were 
alarmed,  and  their  bitter  class  hatred  was  aroused  by 
the  suspicion  that  Creoles  and  Meztizos  were  to  be 
admitted  to  a  sliare  in  the  government.  As  the  Vice- 
roy liad  been  held  in  the  highest  esteem  by  all  classes 
of  Mexicans,  this  treatment  of  him  awakened  univer- 
sal indignation  ;  and  the  "  Old  Spanisli  party  "  found 
it  necessary  to  take  some  defensive  measures.  They 
proceeded,  therefore,  to  arm  the  Europeans  against 
the  Creoles,  and  to  form  "patriotic"  associations  for 
the  defence  of  their  "  rights."  They  went  even  fur- 
ther, and  made  several  arrests  among  the  Creoles, 
accusing  them,  whether  justly  or  otherwise,  of  being 
particeps  criminis  with  Iturrigaray  in  his  schemes. 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOB  INDEPENDENCE  33 

A  leader  of  these  persecuted  Creoles  was  Licen- 
ciado  Verdad,  whose  contributions  to  the  cause  of 
Independence  had  been  made  in  the  form  of  pasqui- 
nades and  proclamations  appearing  daily  in  the  City 
of  Mexico.  He  was  arrested  upon  a  charge  of  treason, 
and  imprisoned  in  the  Archiepiscopal  Palace.  A  few 
days  later,  he  was  hanged  in  his  prison,  without  hav- 
ing had  so  much  as  the  pretence  of  a  trial.  He  was 
thereupon  regarded  as  a  martyr  to  the  popular  cause, 
and  his  death  awakened  a  widespread  sympathy  for  the 
upholders  of  the  political  principles  he  had  espoused. 

There  was  a  mystery  attending  the  execution  of 
Verdad  that  has  never  been  cleared  up,  though  the 
crime  of  his  death  was  laid  at  the  door  of  Pedro  de 
Garibay,  an  "Old  Spanish"  soldier  whose  whole 
career  had  been  spent  in  Mexico,  and  whom  the 
Europeans  hastened  to  put  in  the  place  of  the  ejected 
Viceroy.  He  was  a  bitter  partisan  of  the  Spaniards, 
and  during  his  brief  term  as  Viceroy  ad  interim  recog- 
nized the  Junta  of  Sevilla,  sent  to  Spain  all  the  money 
he  could  raise  in  Mexico,  and  vigorously  prosecuted 
those  who  were  under  arrest  for  treason.  He  sought 
by  a  system  of  bold  and  oppressive  action  to  drown  all 
opposition  to  the  authority  of  the  "  Central  Junta," 
or  Junta  of  Sevilla. 

The  discontent  of  the  people  increased.  The  Cre- 
oles were  thoroughly  aroused.  Strength  was  given 
to  the  revolutionary  sentiments  already  spreading. 
The  authority  of  the  "  Old  Spaniards  "  began  to  be 
disputed,  and  from  that  time  to  decline.  Ideas  of  a 
govermnent  independent  of  Spain  began  to  take  deep 
root  in  the  minds  of  the  Mexican  people.  The  vio- 
lence and  arrogance  of  the  Audiencia  but  increased 
the  Creoles'  feeling   of   hostility  to   the  Europeans. 

3 


34  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

The  question  in  controversy  became  purely  a  class 
question,  as  to  whether  Spaniards  or  Creoles  should 
govern  New  Spain  during  the  captivity  of  the  King. 
By  the  order  of  the  Spanish  Central  Junta,  Garibay 
was  superseded  by  the  Archbishop  of  Mexico,  Fran- 
cisco Javier  de  Lizana.  He  had  been  in  Mexico  since 
1804,  and  had  taken  part  in  the  deposition  of  Itur- 
rigaray ;  but  he  had  afterwards  changed  his  views  of 
the  political  situation,  and  so  expressed  himself  to 
the  Spanish  C6rtes,  He  openly  favored  the  Creoles, 
although  he  promptly  crushed  an  abortive  conspiracy 
in  favor  of  Independence  discovered  in  Valladolid,  in 
the  province  of  Michoacan,  in  1810,  and  arrested  and 
executed  the  conspirators. 

The  year  1809  was  one  of  great  distress  in  Spain. 
The  French  overran  the  country,  and  drove  the  Cen- 
tral Junta  from  Sevilla  to  Cadiz.  The  Junta  had 
summoned  a  C6rtes  in  which  the  American  subjects 
of  his  Majesty  were  to  be  represented.  This  C6rtes 
was  to  convene  in  Cadiz,  in  March,  1810.  Conse- 
quently there  was  no  time  to  notify  the  Mexicans 
of  the  concession  made  to  them,  and  their  places  in 
the  C6rtes  were  temporarily  filled  by  persons  chosen 
in  Spain.  The  Junta  appointed  a  Regency  of  five  to 
administer  the  affairs  of  the  government,  and  then 
disappeared  horn  history. 

This  Regency  issued  a  decree,  on  the  twelfth  of 
March,  the  declared  object  of  which  was  "  to  Furnish 
the  Inhabitants  of  the  Extensive  Provinces  in  America 
all  the  Means  Necessary  to  Promote  and  Secure  their 
Real  Happiness."  It  declared  that  the  Spanish  sub- 
jects in  America  "  were  now  raised  to  the  dignity  of 
freemen,"  and  their  "  lot  no  longer  depended  upon  the 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  35 

will  of  Kings,  Viceroys,  or  Governors,  but  would  be 
determined  by  themselves " ;  and  it  urged  them  to 
select  deputies  to  the  Cortes  from  the  Spanish  posses- 
sions in  the  New  World. 

Thus  the  spirit  of  independence  was  fostered  m  the 
colonies  of  Spain  by  the  acts  of  Liberals  at  home.  It 
seemed  to  both  the  governing  class  and  to  the  gov- 
erned, that  after  this  action  upon  the  part  of  the 
Regency  of  Spain,  nothing  could  again  permanently 
subjugate  those  who  had  been  so  long  the  slaves 
of  the  iniquitous  system  of  Spanish  government. 
And  even  before  the  idea  of  popular  rights  gained 
a  firm  hold  on  the  minds  of  the  Mexicans,  the 
reverses  sustained  by  the  Spanish  arms  taught  them 
that  those  arms  were  not  invincible,  and  that  it 
was  a  military  possibility  for  them  to  free  themselves 
from  the  control  of  the  Audiencia  or  of  an  unpopular 
Viceroy. 

The  governing  class  in  Mexico  felt  that  the  govern- 
ment of  Spain  was  completely  subverted;  but  there 
was  a  lack  of  unity  among  them  as  to  what  it  was 
best  to  do  in  such  a  case.  Otherwise  they  would 
have  separated  from  Spain,  and  compelled  the  people 
to  continue  their  submission  to  the  same  harsh  rule 
to  which  they  had  been  accustomed,  only  under  a 
different  name.  The  loyalty  of  the  people  to  Fer- 
nando VII.  naturally  inclined  some  of  the  Old  Span- 
iards to  favor  the  continuance  of  the  Central  Junta ; 
others  favored  the  Regency ;  others  still  sought  to 
remain  neutral.  Could  the  people  —  the  Creoles 
and  Meztizos  —  have  taken  advantage  of  these  divi- 
sions among  the  dominant  classes,  and  of  their 
own  superior  numbers,  or  could  they  have  found  a 
competent  leader  who  could   have  guided  them  to 


36  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

such  a  course,  a  mighty  nation  might  then  have 
sprung  into  existence  destined  to  achieve  a  splendid 
career.  But  the  people  lacked  leadership  and  a 
knowledge  of  the  science  of  government.  There  was 
no  one  even  to  tell  them  the  value  of  the  oppor- 
tunity that  was  theirs.  The  news  of  the  disasters 
in  Spain,  however,  did  this  at  least, — it  caused  the 
formation  of  clubs  to  further  a  scheme  for  inde- 
pendence from  the  control  of  Central  Junta,  Regency, 
and  Audiencia,  each  of  which  had  become,  in  the 
absence  of  the  legitimate  government  of  Fernando 
VII.,  a  usurper  of  the  supreme  power  in  Mexico. 

Lizana's  career  as  Viceroy  was  brief.  He  was 
summoned  to  Spain  by  the  Regency,  to  answer 
charges  lodged  against  him  by  the  Junta,  upon 
representations  from  Mexico  that  his  lenient  policy 
towards  the  Mexicans  was  breeding  insurrection.  Pe- 
dro Catani,  the  President  of  the  Audiencia,  was 
Viceroy  ad  iiiterim  until  the  thirteenth  of  September, 
1810  ;  then  Francisco  Javier  Venegas  received  the 
Vireinate  in  Guadalupe,  and  arrived  in  the  City  of 
Mexico  as  the  sixtieth  Viceroy. 

Venegas  had  been  the  leader  of  the  Spanish  armies, 
but  had  not  been  very  fortunate  in  his  conduct  of 
the  war  then  in  progress  in  the  Peninsula.  He  was 
scarcely  the  man  to  cope  with  such  conditions  as 
were  then  existing  in  New  Spain.  The  mild  Iturri- 
garay  would  have  done  better  for  Spain  in  such 
an  emergency.  In  the  first  place,  Venegas,  by  reason 
of  his  military  failures  on  the  Peninsula,  was  not 
calculated  to  inspire  popular  confidence.  He  was, 
furthermore,  of  hasty  and  passionate  temper.  He 
continued  with  vigor  the  policy  of  the  Audiencia, 
and  soon  forced   the  people  into  resistance   to   his 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE         37 

efforts  to  compel  them  to  resume  a  position  from 
which  they  had  been  specifically  released  by  the 
action  of  the  Regency  that  had  appointed  him  to 
office. 

Three  days  after  Venegas  took  the  oath  of  office 
in  Guadalupe,  the  first  actual  uprising  of  the  Mexi- 
cans began  in  the  httle  town  of  Dolores,  not  far  from 
the  city  of  Guanajuato,  and  about  two  hundred  miles 
northwest  of  the  capital  of  Mexico.  It  was  under  the 
leadership  of  Miguel  Hidalgo  y  Costilla,  who  has  since 
been  known  as  "  The  Father  of  Mexican  Independ- 
ence." This  distinguished  patriot  was  the  eura,  or 
parish  priest,  of  the  village  of  Dolores.  He  was  a 
Creole,  nearly  sixty  years  of  age,  and  had  been  for 
several  years  nursmg  the  idea  of  the  independence 
of  his  country.  He  had  mingled  with  the  Indians,  had 
gained  a  knowledge  of  their  language,  and  acquired 
a  powerful  influence  over  them.  At  the  same  tune, 
his  learning  and  many  excellent  qualities  had  made 
him  popular  and  influential  among  the  Creoles  and 
Meztizos. 

From  the  time  of  Iturrigaray,  the  cause  of  Inde- 
pendence had  been  fostered  in  the  cities  of  Valla- 
dolid  and  Queretaro,  as  well  as  elsewhere,  by  means 
of  clubs,  nominally  of  a  literary  character,  but  really 
political  in  their  purposes.  The  clubs  maintained 
a  mutual  correspondence,  with  a  view  to  devising 
and  ultimately  cooperating  in  a  scheme  for  the  estab- 
lishment of  the  Independence  of  Mexico.  Of  the 
club  in  Dolores,  Hidalgo  was  president.  He  was 
maturing  Iris  plans  for  an  uprising  to  occur  during 
the  great  annual  fiesta  of  the  Indians,  which  begins 
on  the  eighth  of  December.  It  was  expected  that 
the  support  of  the  native  races  could  then  be  easily 


38  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

obtained.  Though  the  plan  was  intended  primarily 
for  the  benefit  of  the  Creoles  and  Meztizos,  yet 
Hidalgo  had  been  surreptitiously  manufacturing 
lances  in  a  neighboring  hacienda  for  the  purpose 
of  arming  the  Indians. 

Ignacio  AUende,  Aldama,  and  Abasalo,  —  officers 
in  the  provincial  militia,  which  was  composed  at  that 
time  chiefly  of  Creoles, — were  confidants  of  Hidalgo, 
and  participants  in  his  schemes  as  far  as  he  had  re- 
vealed them.  Their  plan  of  action,  as  at  first  formu- 
lated, included  the  capture  of  all  public  officers  and 
of  all  persons  connected  or  in  sympathy  with  the 
Viceregal  government  and  the  Audiencia.  This  plan 
was  by  no  means  chimerical,  considering  the  great 
disparity  in  numbers  between  the  Europeans  and  the 
Creoles  and  higher-classed  Meztizos  whom  it  was 
intended  to  enlist  in  the  enterprise.  They  were  then 
to  proclaim  the  Independence  of  Mexico,  and  to  es- 
tablish a  government  with  a  Senate  and  House  of 
Deputies,  all  in  the  interests  of  Fernando  VII.,  who 
was  to  be  the  recognized  sovereign. 

To  obtain  resources  for  their  government,  they  pro- 
posed to  confiscate  the  property  of  the  Europeans, 
whom  they  intended  to  send  back  to  Spain.  In  its 
inception,  it  was  not  essentially  a  race  insurrection 
that  was  proposed.  It  was  primarily  a  Creole  move- 
ment. But  when  it  was  concluded  to  call  in  the 
Indians  and  half-breeds,  a  race  feeling  in  all  its  bitter- 
ness was  aroused. 

Discussion  of  the  details  of  these  plans  at  a  so- 
called  Literary  Club  in  Queretaro,  of  which  the 
Corregidor  of  that  city  and  his  wife  were  members, 
and  an  effort  to  enlist  confederates  and  cooperating 
clubs  in  some  of  the  principal  provincial  towns,  led 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOB  INDEPENDENCE  39 

to  the  detection  of  the  scheme  by  the  Spanish  authori- 
ties at  Guanajuato.  This  followed  closely  enough 
upon  the  suppression  of  the  threatened  insurrection 
in  Valladolid  to  make  the  Old  Spaniards  suspicious. 
The  movements  of  the  Corregidor  of  Queretaro  and 
his  wife  were  closely  watched,  and  orders  were  issued 
for  the  arrest  of  Allende,  Aldama,  and  Hidalgo.  It 
was  in  consequence  of  all  this  that  the  sixteenth  of 
September,  and  not  a  later  date,  became  the  received 
birthday  of  Mexican  Independence  and  Nationality. 

At  two  o'clock  on  the  morning  of  that  date,  Allende 
and  Aldama  came  to  the  house  of  Hidalgo,  awakened 
him,  and  informed  him  that  their  plans  had  been 
betrayed  to  the  government  authorities,  and  that  the 
whole  movement  was  jeopardized  unless  the  blow 
were  struck  at  once.  Allende  had  indeed  intercepted 
the  order  for  his  own  arrest,  as  well  as  for  that  of 
Aldama  and  Hidalgo,  and  showed  it  to  the  priest. 
They  accordingly  sallied  forth  from  Hidalgo's  house, 
with  seven  other  men  hastily  notified.  Thej'-  went  to 
t\i&  juzgado  (jail),  and  liberated  the  political  prisoners 
therein ;  secured  arms  from  a  neighboring  cuartel 
(military  quarters),  and  armed  eighty  men  whose 
allegiance  they  had  by  this  time  and  by  these  means 
secured.  They  promptly  seized  the  Europeans  living 
in  Dolores,  and  confiscated  their  property.  This  open 
declaration,  at  the  outset,  that  the  campaign  was  to 
be  one  of  spoils,  was  not  without  its  effect  in  attract- 
ing volunteers  from  among  the  Indians  and  half- 
castes.  But  it  was  not  long  before  it  had  the 
unfortunate  effect  of  repelling  the  better  class  of 
Creoles. 

It  was  Sunday;  and  earlier  than  usual,  Hidalgo 
prepared  to  celebrate  mass  in  his  parish  church.     To 


40  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

all  wlio  were  in  attendance  he  announced  that  the 
time  had  come  for  Mexico  to  free  herself  from  Eu- 
ropean rule,  which  had  become  no  longer  Spanish  but 
French,  and  which  threatened  to  overthrow  their  most 
holy  rehgion.  He  intimated  that  the  Spaniards,  who 
had  so  long  been  enemies  to  the  best  interests  of  the 
country,  were  now  selling  them  out  to  French  infidels. 
It  was  no  difficult  matter  to  arouse  the  feelings  of  his 
hearers,  and  his  appeals  for  the  uprising  of  the  people 
have  since  .been  called  the  G-rito  de  Dolores.  They 
were  responded  to  most  promptly  and  heartily  by  the 
Indians  of  the  little  town  and  of  the  neighboring 
haciendas,  and  Hidalgo  was  able  to  set  out  that  morn- 
ing at  the  head  of  three  hundred  men,  armed,  for  the 
most  part,  with  the  rudest  kinds  of  weapons. 

Passing  the  church  of  Atotonilco,  Hidalgo  took 
therefrom  a  banner  bearing  a  picture  of  the  Virgin  of 
Guadalupe,  the  special  patroness  of  the  Mexican 
Indians.  This  banner  he  affixed  to  a  lance  and 
adopted  as  the  standard  of  the  "  Army  of  Independ- 
ence," as  he  called  his  motley  rabble.  He  thus  ap- 
pealed to  the  religious  enthusiasm  of  the  Mexicans, 
and  excited  to  the  utmost  their  hatred  of  their  Spanish 
oppressors;  for  already  a  rivalry  had  sprung  up 
between  the  votaries  of  the  Virgin  of  Guadalupe  and 
those  of  the  Virgin  de  los  Remedios,  the  latter  being 
the  special  patroness  of  the  "  Old  Spaniards." 

Shouts  of  "  Viva  la  Religion  !  Viva  nuestra  Madre 
Santisima  de  Gfuadalupe  !  Viva  la  America  y  muera 
el  mal  Crobierno  !  Viva  Fernando  VII. !  "  (Long  live 
religion  !  Long  live  our  most  holy  mother  of  Guada- 
lupe !  Long  live  America  and  death  to  bad  govern- 
ment !  Long  live  Ferdinand  VII.)  rent  the  air  as  the 
insurgents  continued  their  march,  their  passions  in- 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  41 

flamed  by  recollections  of  3'ears  of  oppression,  —  burn- 
ing for  revenge  of  real  or  fancied  wrongs,  and  with 
the  prospect  of  obtaining  rich  spoils.  But  they 
were  unfortunate  in  adding  soon  afterwards  to  their 
war-cry,  "Death  to  the  Gachupines  !  "  —  for  such  a 
bloodthirsty  cry  resulted  first  in  alarming  and  then 
in  alienating  the  Creoles.  Many  of  these  people  were 
distinguished  for  their  wealth  and  high  standing,  and 
they  were  naturally  alarmed  at  an  insurrection  wliich 
placed  them  and  their  property  at  the  mercy  of  an 
infuriated  mob  of  Indians.  In  the  first  excesses  com- 
mitted by  the  uncontrollable  Indians,  many  of  the 
Creoles  were  slaughtered  through  failure  to  discrimi- 
nate between  them  and  the  Europeans.  The  Creoles 
were  therefore  forced  to  the  side  of  the  Viceroy,  as  he 
prepared  to  adopt  defensive  measures. 

The  insurgents  reached  San  Miguel  that  night. 
The  regiment  to  which  Allende  belonged  declared  for 
Independence,  and  joined  them.  There  the  riotous 
character  of  the  newly  formed  army  became  evident 
to  the  leaders,  and  they  perceived  what  difficulty  there 
would  be  in  keeping  the  insurgents  withm  bounds. 
A  quantity  of  gunpowder,  sent  from  the  City  of 
Mexico  for  use  in  the  mines  at  Guanajuato,  was  inter- 
cepted and  secured,  —  more  than  enough  to  supply  an 
army  having  a  limited  number  of  fire-arms  and  relying 
upon  its  weapons  of  a  ruder  sort.  More  Indian  vol- 
unteers were  received,  all  as  ill-armed  and  lacking  in 
disciphne  as  the  others.  Celaya  surrendered  to  the 
insurgents,  on  the  twenty-first  of  September,  as  they 
marched  through  it  on  their  way  to  Guanajuato.  An 
organization  of  the  "  army  "  was  attempted  in  Celaya, 
and  Hidalgo  was  proclaimed  "Captain-General"  of 
troops   numbering  twenty   thousand  men,  including 


42  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

some  Creole  priests,  but  for  the  most  part  a  hetero- 
geneous mass  without  suitable  equipment  or  discipline 
of  any  kind. 

Meanwhile,  the  Viceroy  had  awakened  to  the  dan- 
gers of  the  situation,  and  was  sending  out  troops 
under  skilled  commanders  to  combat  the  insurgents 
and  protect  the  places  along  the  line  of  their  proposed 
march.  The  discovery  of  the  schemes  of  Hidalgo 
had  been  made  in  the  time  of  Catani ;  and  Venegas 
had  been  informed  thereof  on  his  way  from  Vera 
Cruz  to  the  capital.  He  did  not  regard  the  matter 
as  of  great  importance,  however,  and  upon  entering 
the  capital  he  proclaimed  the  decree  of  the  Cortes  of 
March  12,  1810,  and  published  a  long  list  of  rewards 
offered  for  ser\'ices  which  might  be  rendered  to  the 
Spanish  government.  The  main  article  of  this  decree 
related  to  the  reduction  of  taxes  and  the  removal  of 
restrictions  upon  trade.  It  was  accompanied,  how- 
ever, by  a  demand  for  twenty  millions  of  dollars  for 
the  conduct  of  the  Peninsular  War.  The  Viceroy 
succeeded  in  attaching  the  Creoles  more  closely  to  his 
government;  but  his  act  had  no  effect  whatever 
upon  the  hordes  of  infuriated  Indians  overrunning 
the  province  of  Guanajuato,  or  upon  their  leaders, 
who  were  failing  utterly  in  their  efforts  to  keep  them 
under  control. 

The  Church  had  also  awakened  to  the  dangers  which 
threatened  it  and  the  government  over  which  it 
had  established  a  quasi  protectorate.  The  Bishop 
of  Michoacan  was  issuing  edicts  of  excommunication 
against  the  insurgents.  Archbishop  Lizana  issued  a 
pastoral  letter  combating  the  principles  upon  which 
Hidalgo  justified  the  revolution  he  had  started,  and 
ordering  the  Spanish  and  Creole  clergy  to   declare 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  43 

from  their  pulpits,  and  cause  it  to  be  everywhere 
known,  that  the  purpose  of  the  revolution  was  to 
subvert  the  Holy  Catholic  Rehgion.  The  Inquisi- 
tion charged  Hidalgo  with  every  error  of  which  that 
tribunal  took  cognizance. 

This  action  would  have  had  greater  effect  upon 
the  faithful  adherents  of  the  Church  among  the 
popular  classes,  had  it  not  been  that  at  that  time 
offices  of  profit  and  distinction  were  being  conferred 
upon  all  the  Spaniards  who  had  taken  part  in  the 
overthrow  of  Iturrigaray.  For  Iturrigaray  had  come 
to  be  regarded  as  a  popular  hero  and  martyr ;  and 
the  benefits  conferred  upon  his  opponents  revived 
the  feeling  of  dissatisfaction  aroused  by  the  deposi- 
tion of  that  Viceroy.  The  friends  of  liberty  were 
stimulated  afresh.  The  Viceroy  Venegas  was  there- 
fore forced  to  recall  his  conciliatory  proclamation  and 
his  list  of  "  inducements,"  and  to  publish  a  proclama- 
tion offering  a  reward  of  ten  thousand  dollars  for  the 
capture,  dead  or  alive,  of  Hidalgo  and  his  two  chief 
military  companions. 

The  city  of  Guanajuato,  capital  of  a  province  of  the 
same  name,  had  about  eighty  thousand  inhabitants,  and 
was  so  rich  as  to  divert  the  Indians  under  Hidalgo  from 
the  direct  route  to  the  City  of  Mexico.  It  was,  in 
fact,  next  to  the  capital  in  point  of  wealth,  being 
in  the  midst  of  the  richest  silver  mines  in  Spanish 
America.  The  political  chief  of  the  province,  Rianon, 
was  universally  respected  for  his  courage,  and  was  in 
command  of  a  small  body  of  troops.  The  people  of 
the  city  showed  a  disposition  to  side  with  Hidalgo. 
Riaiion  therefore  determined  not  to  attempt  the  de- 
fence of  the  city,  but  he  and  all  the  Old  Spaniards 
took  refuge  in  the  Alhondiga,  or  Castle  Granaditas, 


44  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  RE  PUBLIC 

—  the  fortified  warehouse  belonging  to  the  Casa  de 
Contratacion.  There  they  put  themselves  in  the  best 
state  of  defence  possible,  in  anticipation  of  the  arrival 
of  the  insurgents. 

Hidalgo  arrived  on  the  twenty-seventh  of  Septem- 
ber, and,  announcing  that  he  had  been  elected  "  Cap- 
tain-General of  America,"  demanded  the  surrender  of 
the  city.  The  demand  was  at  first  accompanied  with 
an  offer  of  favorable  terms,  but  was  renewed  with 
the  warning  that  it  would  be  impossible  to  hold  in 
check  the  infuriated  Indians  if  the  surrender  were 
refused  and  resistance  were  made.  Rianon,  however, 
refused  to  surrender,  and  prepared  to  sell  his  life  and 
the  lives  of  his  fellow  refugees  as  dearly  as  possible. 

The  fight  that  ensued  was  a  bloody  one.  The 
provincial  militia  fought  desperately,  under  skilled 
officers,  in  defence  of  the  city;  but  without  avail. 
The  insurgents,  —  for  the  most  part  savages  armed 
with  bows,  arrows,  slings,  machetes,  lances,  and  the 
weapons  to  which  they  had  been  accustomed  in  their 
aboriginal  state,  without  discipline,  but  fighting  with 
desperate  courage,  —  surrounded  the  city,  occupied 
the  various  eminences  that  commanded  the  Alhondiga, 
shouted  "  Death  to  the  Gachupines  1  "  and  emphasized 
their  cries  with  showers  of  missiles.  They  finally 
forced  the  gates  of  the  Alhondiga,  and  captured  the 
place  by  storm  on  the  twenty-eighth.  Rianon  was 
killed  as  the  place  was  carried. 

After  the  capture,  Hidalgo,  as  he  had  given  warn- 
ing, found  it  impossible  to  restrain  his  undisciplined 
army,  and  the  wildest  scenes  of  confusion  ensued. 
Despite  his  efforts  and  entreaties,  a  general  massacre 
took  place.  For  three  days  the  carnage  and  destruc- 
tion of  property  continued,  until  satiety  and  weariness 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  45 

stayed  the  hands  of  the  insurgents.  Hidalgo  suc- 
ceeded in  adding  five  millions  of  dollars,  found  in 
the  Alhondiga,  to  the  treasury  of  the  revolutionists. 
The  whole  province  declared  for  him.  Many  of  the 
provincial  militia  deserted  to  his  standard,  deeming  it 
unsafe  to  remain  opposed  to  his  army.  He  continued 
his  attempts  to  organize  his  troops,  and  kept  the 
mint  at  Guanajuato  employed  in  the  coinage  of 
money  in  the  name  of  Ferdinand  VII.  He  had  the 
bells  of  the  city  cast  into  cannons  for  his  army. 

On  the  tenth  of  October  he  left  Guanajuato  for 
Valladolid,  in  Michoacan;  and  that  city  declared  for 
independence  immediately  upon  his  arrival.  The 
Bishop,  the  Cabildo,  the  civil  authorities,  and  the 
European  residents,  had  evacuated  the  place  upon 
his  approach.  He  now  found  himself  at  the  head  of 
eighty  thousand  men,  but  with  the  army  of  the  Vice- 
roy organized  to  oppose  him,  with  himself  excom- 
municated by  the  Bishop  of  the  Diocese,  and  with 
a  reward  offered  for  his  head.  There  was,  further- 
more, a  Viceregal  proclamation  abroad  decreeing  that 
any  one  taken  with  arms  against  the  government  should 
be  shot  within  fifteen  minutes  of  the  capture,  and 
awarding  no  "  benefit  of  clergy."  The  decree  offered 
pardon  to  all  who  would  return  to  their  allegiance  to 
Spain.  Hidalgo  received  vast  sums  from  the  coffers 
of  the  Cathedral  in  Valladolid,  and  began  his  march 
in  the  direction  of  the  City  of  Mexico.  He  re- 
viewed his  troops  at  Acambaro,  and  was  proclaimed 
"  Generalissmio." 

On  the  thirtieth  of  October  the  army  of  the  Inde- 
pendents gained  a  victory  over  the  Spanish  forces 
under  General  Truxillo  at  Monte  de  las  Cruces,  be- 
tween Toluca  and  the  capital,  and  within  twenty-five 


46  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

miles  of  the  latter  place.  In  this  battle  the  Spaniards 
established  the  precedent  of  suspending  the  customary- 
rules  of  war,  and  a  flag  of  truce  sent  by  Hidalgo  was 
fired  upon  by  order  of  Truxillo.  Of  this  act  Truxillo 
boasted  in  his  report  of  tlie  battle,  and  it  was  applauded 
by  the  Viceroy.  It  is  not  remarkable  that  such  acts, 
which  chamcterized  the  Spanish  in  their  conduct  of 
the  war  that  had  now  o]3ened  in  good  earnest,  should 
have  stimulated  acts  of  a  like  character  on  the  part  of 
the  insurgents. 

The  defeat  at  Monte  de  las  Cruces  completely 
demoralized  the  Viceregal  army,  and  might  have 
served  Hidalgo  a  very  good  purpose,  even  to  the 
extent  of  the  complete  success  of  his  plan.  The 
City  of  Mexico  was  panic-stricken,  and  might  easily 
have  been  taken  had  the  insurgent  leader  followed 
up  his  victory  by  a  march  in  that  direction.  But  he 
manifested  an  utter  lack  of  military  sagacity.  After 
advancing  to  the  hacienda  of  Quaximalpa, —  only  five 
leagues  distant  from  the  capital,  and  in  full  view 
thereof,  —  and  sending  a  summons  to  the  Viceroy  to 
surrender  (to  which  the  Viceroy  vouchsafed  no  reply), 
Hidalgo  retreated  with  his  army  toward  the  interior 
of  the  country.  The  only  plausible  explanation  ever 
offered  by  the  admirers  of  Hidalgo  for  this  strange 
conduct  is  that  he  dreaded  subjecting  the  capital  of 
his  countr}^  to  the  frightful  excesses  he  had  seen  visited 
by  his  troops  upon  Guanajuato. 

Allende  conducted  the  retreat,  though  it  was 
against  his  better  judgment,  and  in  the  face  of  his 
vigorous  protest ;  and  many  of  the  insurgents,  disap- 
pointed by  this  retrograde  movement  and  terrorized 
by  the  ecclesiastical  edicts  fulminated  against  them, 
deserted.     On  the  seventh  of  November  the  insurgents 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOE  INDEPENDENCE  47 

encountered  a  train  of  artillery  and  ten  thousand  well- 
equipped  Creole  troops  under  the  command  of  Gen- 
eral F(^iix  Maria  Calleja  del  Rey,  who  had  been  sent 
by  the  Viceroy  to  concentrate  the  Viceregal  forces. 
A  bloody  and  desperate  battle  followed.  The  Indians 
under  the  command  of  Hidalgo  displayed  courage, 
but  no  discretion.  Rushing  with  their  clubs  upon  the 
bayonets  of  the  enemy,  they  fell  in  heaps.  They  were 
so  ignorant  of  the  effects  of  artillery  that  they  ran 
fearlessly  up  to  the  mouths  of  cannons  belching  forth 
death  and  destruction,  and  attempted  to  stop  them 
with  their  sombreros.  As  an  inevitable  consequence, 
the  insurgents  were  defeated  with  a  loss  equal  to  the 
entire  troops  under  Calleja  del  Re}^  Such  was  the 
battle  of  Aculco. 

Calleja  went  to  Guanajuato  after  this  battle,  and 
made  that  city  the  scene  of  frightful  cruelties  in 
retaliation  for  the  excesses  committed  by  the  Indians 
under  Hidalgo.  The  inhabitants  of  the  city  were 
driven  into  the  Plaza  Mayor,  and  men,  women,  and 
children  were  deliberately  butchered.  Calleja  boasted, 
in  his  official  report,  that  by  cutting  their  throats  he 
had  saved  the  Viceregal  government  the  expense  of 
powder  and  shot.  The  number  of  the  slain  is  given 
as  fourteen  thousand ;  though  it  is  difficult  to  believe 
that  such  a  scene  as  this  actually  occurred  upon  our 
continent  and  in  the  nineteenth  century.  Its  effect 
upon  the  Independents  may  easily  be  imagined. 

Hidalgo  succeeded  in  concentrating  his  remaining 
forces  in  Guadalajara,  where  he  was  received  with 
every  demonstration  of  joy.  He  made  an  attempt  to 
organize  something  in  the  way  of  civil  government. 
Retaining  for  himself  the  title  of  "  Generalissimo," 
he  exercised  the  functions  of  political  dictator  and 


48  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

appointed  a  "  Minister  of  Grace  and  Justice  "  and  a 
"Minister  of  State  and  Business."  He  attempted  to 
send  a  commissioner  to  the  United  States;  but  the 
commissioner  was  made  a  prisoner  by  the  Spaniards, 
and  from  him  the  exact  state  of  Hidalgo's  military 
resources  and  plans  were  learned,  and  other  informa- 
tion was  gained  which  liastened  the  overthrow  of  the 
Patriot-Priest.  Hidalgo  had  lost,  in  killed,  wounded, 
prisoners,  and  desertions,  at  least  thirty  thousand 
men ;  but  he  still  had  an  army  of  about  eighty  thou- 
sand, mostly  raw  recruits. 

From  Guadalajara  he  issued  decrees  abolishing 
slavery  and  stamp  duties.  He  clianged  his  policy 
somewhat,  and  removed  the  portrait  of  Fernando 
VII.  from  his  banner.  He  began  the  publication  of 
a  series  of  "  broadsides  "  entitled  Despertador  Ameri- 
cano, in  which  he  sought  to  justify  his  acts  and  to 
explain  his  intentions  more  fully  than  he  had  previ- 
ously had  the  means  of  doing.  His  edicts  declaring 
all  slaves  set  at  liberty,  and  his  declarations,  both  by 
word  of  mouth  and  by  printed  manifestos  which,  he 
sent  out  until  he  flooded  the  land  with  them,  that 
Mexico  was  freed  from  the  Spanish  yoke  and  released 
from  all  obligations  to  Spanish  rulers,  had  but  little 
effect.  The  opposition  of  the  Church  authorities  was 
being  felt  in  restraining  citizens  from  flocking  to  his 
banner,  as  at  first. 

Though  Hidalgo  is  now  regarded  as  a  national 
hero,  it  must  nevertheless  be  admitted  that  he  fell 
far  short  of  being  a  model  leader  or  an  altogether 
admirable  character.  If  he  were  only  indirectly  or 
remotely  responsible  for  the  excesses  committed  by 
tlie  army  of  half-savage  Indians  whom  he  had  enlisted 
and  whom  he  was  incapable  of  disciplining  or  control- 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  49 

ling,  there  are  some  acts  recorded  for  which  he  was 
more  directly  responsible,  and  for  which  it  would  be 
folly  to  seek  justification. 

Other  Spanish  forces  were  sent  against  the  insur- 
gents, and  they  suffered  a  final  defeat  in  a  battle 
fought  at  Puente  de  Calderon  on  the  sixteenth  of 
January,  1811.  The  army  of  the  Independents  was 
completely  dispersed.  Hidalgo,  Allende,  Aldama, 
and  another  insurgent  leader,  Jimenez  by  name,  held 
together,  and  started  toward  the  North,  intending  to 
purchase  arms  and  procure  assistance  in  the  United 
States  with  which  to  renew  the  struggle.  They  were 
apprehended  and  taken  under  a  strong  guard,  first  to 
Monclova  and  then  to  Chihuahua.  In  the  latter  city, 
some  time  in  June,  1811,  Allende,  Aldama,  and 
Jimenez  were  executed.  Hidalgo  was  reserved  for 
more  deliberate  action.  He  was  tried  by  an  ecclesias- 
tical court,  degraded  from  the  priesthood,  and  then 
delivered  over  to  the  secular  arm.  He  was  shot  in 
his  prison  in  Chihuahua,  on  the  thirty-first  of  July. 
The  old  man  met  his  death  heroically,  with  his  last 
breath  supplicating  Heaven  to  favor  the  struggles  of 
his  country  for  independence. 

The  heads  of  these  four  martyrs  to  the  cause  of  the 
Independence  of  Mexico  were  taken  to  Guanajuato 
and  placed  upon  pikes  at  the  four  corners  of  the 
Alhondiga,  as  a  warning  to  Mexicans  of  the  fate  that 
awaited  any  who  chose  to  continue  in  revolt  against 
the  government  of  Spain.  There  they  remained  until 
1821  and  the  dawn  of  a  better  day  for  Mexico.  In 
1823  the  bodies  of  these  heroes  were  buried  under  the 
"  Altar  of  the  Kings  "  in  the  apse  of  the  great  Cathe- 
dral in  the  City  of  Mexico. 

Thus  failed,  chiefly  through  lack  of  a  clearly  defined 


50  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

purpose,  the  first  great  movement  on  the  part  of  the 
Mexican  people  toward  Independence.  Hidalgo's 
mission  seems  to  have  been  to  arouse  his  people,  to 
stimulate  them  to  a  struggle  which  must  inevitably 
result  in  securing  popular  liberty,  however  long  de- 
layed. The  cause  survived  its  earliest  leaders.  The 
revolution  had  advanced  too  far  to  be  crushed  by  the 
death  of  its  projectors.  The  ghastly  heads  upon 
the  Alhondiga  in  Guanajuato  inculcated  a  lesson  very 
different  from  that  which  was  intended,  and  served  to 
inflame  the  Mexicans  with  a  new  sense  of  their  wrongs 
and  to  inspire  them  with  a  desire  to  renew  the  struggle 
with  increased  vigor. 

Other  leaders  arose,  one  after  another.  But  as  the 
conflict  deepened  in  intensity,  it  was  apparent  that 
hatred  of  the  Spaniards  was  the  animating  prin- 
ciple of  the  Independents;  and  it  was  scarcely  to  be 
expected  that  a  people  brought  up  under  the  Spanish 
provincial  system  should  suddenly  prove  themselves 
either  worthy  of  liberty  or  capable  of  acquiring  and 
maintaining  it. 

Among  the  military  chieftains  who,  in  irregular 
succession,  assumed  the  direction  of  affairs,  no  man 
arose  of  such  commanding  talent  as  to  insure  the  com- 
plete submission  of  his  fellow-citizens  and  bind  them 
together  by  the  bonds  of  a  common  belief  and  a  com- 
mon purpose.  Personal  jealousies  began  to  divide 
the  Independents  into  factions,  each  governed  by  the 
temporary  interests  or  humors  of  its  leaders.  Even 
in  those  early  days  we  catch  a  foreglimpse  of  the  two 
great  political  parties  which  afterwards  kept  Mexico 
in  a  disturbed  condition  for  more  than  half  a  century. 
The  partisans  of  these  several  factions  ignored  what- 
ever at  the  outset  bound  them  together  for  common 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  51 

action,  and  betrayed  each  other.  Otherwise  the  inde- 
pendence of  Mexico  had  not  been  so  long  delayed. 
For  what  might  not  two  millions  of  Indians,  and  the 
various  castes,  have  accomplished  by  concerted  action, 
under  wise  and  elhcient  leaders,  against  ten  thousand 
or  even  a  hundred  thousand  Europeans  ? 


52  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 


CHAPTER   III 

THE   CONTINUANCE   OF  THE   STRUGGLE  FOR 
INDEPENDENCE 

AT  the  time  of  the  collapse  of  Hidalgo's  in- 
surrection, Ignacio  Lopez  Rayon  was  left  in 
command  of  a  remnant  of  the  Army  of  the 
Independents  that  escaped  to  Saltillo.  There  he 
found  liimself  with  four  thousand  men  and  twenty- 
two  pieces  of  artillery  as  the  nucleus  of  an  army  for  a 
renewed  struggle  for  liberty.  Accompanied  by  Jos^ 
Maria  Liceaga,  he  took  possession  of  Zacatecas  and 
made  it  his  headquarters  for  a  while. 

From  Zacatecas  these  new  leaders  sent  word  to 
General  Calleja  that  the  object  of  the  revolution  was 
to  establish  a  national  junta,  or  congress,  which 
would  conserve  the  rights  of  the  Roman  Catholic 
Religion  and  of  Fernando  VII.,  and  prevent  New 
Spain  from  falling  into  the  power  of  Bonaparte.  This 
explanation  was  far  from  satisfactory  to  Calleja,  and 
he  made  a  military  demonstration  which  forced  Rayon 
from  Zacatecas.  Rayon  next  established  himself  in 
Zitacuaro,  near  Valladolid,  where  he  formed  a  govern- 
ing board,  calling  it  the  "Supreme  Junta  of  Zita- 
cuaro." This  board  was  composed  of  five  members, 
elected  by  as  many  land-owners  as  could  be  collected 
for  the  purpose,  in  conjunction  with  the  authorities  of 
the  town.  Rayon  was  himself  the  President;  and 
Josd  Maria  Morelos,  Josd  Maria  Liceaga,  Dr.  Verduzco, 
and  Dr.  Cos  were  members.     Previous  to  this,  the 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  53 

insurgents  had  recognized  no  authority  but  force  of 
arms,  and  their  armies  existed  without  any  colorable 
authority  whatever.  This  junta  was  intended  to 
correct  these  defects,  to  give  some  authority  to  the 
military,  and  to  furnish  the  armies  with  a  systematic 
plan  of  attack.  It  was  also  expected  to  regulate  the 
affairs  of  the  "Independents,"  as  they  were  now 
generally  called,  and  to  unite  the  people  more  closely 
against  the  Viceroy  and  Audiencia.  Rayon  therefore 
became,  to  the  establishment  of  civil  government  in 
the  provinces  held  by  the  Independents,  what  Hidalgo 
had  been,  and  what  Morelos  was  shortly  afterwards 
to  become,  to  the  military  conduct  of  the  revolution. 

The  newly  formed  junta  distinctly  recognized  Fer- 
nando VII.  as  the  sovereign  of  Mexico,  and  claimed 
to  govern  the  country  in  his  name.  It  claimed  an 
authority  in  Mexico  equal  to  that  of  any  of  the 
juntas  of  Spain.  Doubtless  much  might  have  been 
gained  could  all  the  Independents  have  united  upon 
some  such  theory  of  government  as  this.  It  was, 
indeed,  somewhat  similar  to  that  which  was  after- 
wards embodied  in  the  "  Plan  "  that  eventually  suc- 
ceeded. It  was  scarcely  more  than  a  revival,  if  not 
actually  a  survival,  of  the  project  of  Iturrigaray,  as 
that  project  is  now  generally  understood.  The  first 
principle  of  the  junta  was  more  intimate  union  with 
Spain.  Events  in  Spain,  however,  soon  made  such 
a  principle  untenable,  and  it  was  superseded  by  a 
principle  which  involved  a  separation  from  Spain, 
and  there  was  at  least  one  member  of  the  junta 
who  stood  out  boldly  in  his  refusal  to  acknowledge  a 
king  of  any  kind  or  on  any  terms.  The  junta's  chief 
importance  was  in  the  fact  that  it  served  as  a  nucleus 
for  the  subsequent  Congress  of  Chilpantzingo. 


54  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

Jos6  Maria  Morelos  was  a  greater  military  geiiius 
than  Rayon,  or  any  others  of  his  time ;  and  hence 
he  was  the  logical  successor  to  Hidalgo  in  the  military 
leadership  of  the  Independents  as  soon  as  they  could 
be  rallied  and  reinforced  after  the  battle  of  Puente 
de  Calderon.  He  was  a  Meztizo,  and  like  Hidalgo 
(whose  pupil  he  had  been)  a  priest  of  the  Roman 
Catholic  Church.  He  had  followed  liis  old  school- 
master into  the  conflict  with  the  Viceregal  govern- 
ment, —  starting  out  with  more  humane  and  liberal 
ideas  than  those  that  had  prevailed  in  the  earlier 
part  of  the  conflict,  and  adhering  to  them  until 
driven  by  the  conduct  of  his  enemies  into  an  oppo- 
site course.  He  had  distinct  and  clear  ideas  of  the 
Independence  of  Mexico;  and  it  was  natural  that 
the  struggle,  as  he  now  prepared  to  maintain  it, 
should  become  more  definite  in  its  aims,  and  con- 
sequently that  it  should  accomplish  more,  than  those 
which  had  preceded  it. 

Morelos  had  already  fought  twenty-six  engage- 
ments in  the  south,  and  had  been  victorious  in  all 
but  two  of  them.  In  a  battle  near  Acapulco,  which 
he  made  his  first  objective  point  when  sent  out 
by  Hidalgo  in  1810,  he  defeated  a  large  number  of 
Viceregal  troops,  and  captured  eight  hundred  mus- 
kets, five  pieces  of  artillery,  seven  hundred  prisoners, 
some  ammunition,  and  a  large  sum  of  money.  It  was 
because  of  such  successes  as  this,  often  repeated,  that 
his  name  has  been  added  by  the  historiographers  of 
Mexico  to  their  long  list  of  "  Heroes  of  a  Hundred 
Battles." 

Among  the  lieutenants  of  Morelos  was  still  another 
patriot-priest,  Mariano  Matamoros,  who  is  sometimes 
accredited   with   even  greater  military  genius   than 


I 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  55 

Morelos.  Dr.  Cos,  a  member  of  the  Zitacuaro  junta, 
was  likewise  a  priest;  so  was  Navarete,  another 
patriot-warrior.  Later  there  was  a  Padre  Torres 
who  established  an  insurrectionary  despotism  in  the 
heart  of  the  Sierra  Madre  Mountains,  calling  it 
the  "  Junta  of  Jauaxilla,"  where  he  became  a  terror 
alike  to  Spaniards  and  Independents.  The  attitude 
of  these  priests  in  the  conflict  is  remarkable,  inas- 
much as  the  revolution  was  opposed  from  the  first 
by  the  leading  clergy  in  accordance  with  a  papal 
encyclical  directing  them  to  oppose  all  attempts  to 
secure  the  separation  of  Mexico  from  Spain. 

A  daring  plot  was  discovered  in  August,  1811.  It 
was  no  less  than  a  plan  to  take  the  person  of  the 
Viceroy  from  the  City  of  Mexico  and  send  him  to 
Rayon  at  Zitacuaro ;  there  he  was  to  remain  in 
Rayon's  custody,  and  sign  such  orders  as  the  latter 
might  see  fit.  This  discovery  so  alarmed  the  Viceroy 
that  he  took  steps  for  the  extermination  of  Rayon 
and  his  followers.  Rayon  being  considered  the  most 
formidable  enemy  of  Spanish  rule  in  America,  General 
Calleja  was  sent  to  Zitacuaro  to  capture  him ;  but 
Rayon  escaped,  together  with  his  junta.  Calleja 
destroyed  the  town,  burned  the  houses,  and  killed 
many  of  the  inhabitants.  Prisoners  taken  at  the 
time  were  executed. 

The  junta  went  to  Sultepec,  and  there  Rayon 
found  himself  at  the  head  of  twenty  thousand  men, 
with  Manuel  de  Mier  y  Teran  as  his  most  valuable 
military  assistant.  Rayon  was  a  man  of  unquestioned 
energy  and  executive  ability.  He  established  found- 
ries in  Tlalpujahua  for  the  manufacture  of  cannon, 
and  factories  for  the  supply  of  guns  and  ammunition. 
He  secured  some  coarse  wooden  type,  and  printed  in 


56  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Sultepec  the  Seminario  Patriotica  and  the  lllustra- 
dor  Americano,  papers  (perhaps  scarcely  more  than 
*'  broadsides  ")  which  upheld  the  rights  of  the  people 
and  justified  the  movement  for  Independence.  A 
paper  appeared  in  the  City  of  Mexico,  called  El 
Pensador  Americano,  in  which  Carlos  Maria  Busta- 
mante,  an  eminent  historian  of  Mexico,  echoed  the 
words  of  Rayon  and  defended  popular  rights.  It 
was  at  great  personal  risk  that  Bustamante  thus 
undertook  to  mould  public  opinion,  and  he  wrote 
with  such  vigor  and  effect  that  the  Viceroy  thought 
best  to  suspend  the  liberty  of  the  press,  although 
it  had  been  guaranteed  to  the  people  by  the  Spanish 
Constitution  and  the  action  of  the  Regency. 

At  Sultepec  the  junta  came  to  be  called  the  "  Junta 
Americana."  When  driven  out  of  Sultepec,  its  mem- 
bers took  the  field  in  various  parts  of  the  country, 
where  the  Independent  armies  met  with  a  discourag- 
ing series  of  defeats.  There  was  finally  a  bitter  disa- 
greement between  Rayon  on  one  side  and  Liceaga  and 
Verduzco  on  the  other,  and  this  caused  the  influence 
of  the  junta  to  decline. 

Spain  was  still  at  war  with  France,  and  Fernando 
was  still  in  captivity,  when  the  C6rtes  at  Cadiz 
adopted  a  new  Constitution,  in  March,  1812.  Fifty 
Americans  had  sat  in  that  Cortes,  together  with  one 
hundred  and  thirty-two  members  from  other  parts 
of  the  Empire.  By  the  provisions  of  this  Constitu- 
tion, the  Spanish  nation  was  declared  to  consist  of 
all  Spaniards  in  either  hemisphere.  All  free  men 
born  and  residing  in  the  Spanish  Dominions,  and  all 
those  to  whom  the  privileges  of  citizenship  might  be 
granted,  were  to  be  included  in  the  term  "  Spaniards." 
Spanish  citizens  alone  could  vote,  or  be  elected  or  ap- 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  57 

pointed  to  civil  trusts  or  offices  ;  and  the  term  "  Span- 
ish citizens  "  included  all  Spaniards  excepting  those 
who  were  by  either  parent  of  iVfrican  descent.  Even 
these,  however,  might  be  admitted  to  the  privileges 
of  citizenship  upon  certain  conditions. 

The  government  of  Spain  was  to  be  an  hereditary 
monarchy,  Fernando  VII.  being  recognized  as  King. 
But  the  royal  authority  Avas  reduced  to  little  more 
than  a  name,  and  the  Regency  became  a  mere  show ; 
for  the  Cortes  invested  itself  with  executive  as  well 
as  legislative  powers.  The  legislative  power  was  to 
reside  in  a  single  body  of  deputies,  and  the  King  was 
to  possess  only  a  limited  power  of  veto  upon  the  enact- 
ments of  this  body.  The  executive  duties  were  com- 
mitted nominally  to  the  King,  but  he  was  to  be  aided 
by  a  Council  of  State  and  act  through  nine  respon- 
sible ministers.  The  application  of  the  laws  in  civil 
and  criminal  cases  was  to  belong  to  the  Audiencias 
and  courts  alone. 

The  territories  of  the  Empire  were  divided  into 
provinces,  each  to  be  governed  by  a  chief  to  be  ap- 
pointed by  the  King  and  a  provincial  deputation 
composed  of  members  chosen  biennially  by  the  citi- 
zens of  the  respective  provinces.  The  basis  of  na- 
tional representation  was  to  be  the  same  in  every  part 
of  the  Dominions,  the  number  of  deputies  sent  by  each 
province  being  proportioned  to  the  number  of  its 
Spanish  citizens. 

The  Council  of  the  Indies  had  already  disappeared 
in  the  course  of  the  political  tempest  that  had  swept 
over  Spain.  Under  the  new  Constitution,  this  Coun- 
cil was  to  be  replaced  by  a  "  Minister  of  the  Kingdoms 
beyond  the  Seas."  The  Inquisition  was  suspended, 
and   the   convents   and  monasteries  were  dissolved. 


58  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

The  press  was  freed  from  all  restraints  excepting 
such  as  might  be  imposed  upon  it  by  specific  laws. 

Generally  speaking,  though  the  new  Constitution 
was  by  no  means  a  perfect  one,  it  was  liberal  in  its 
provisions,  and  a  long  way  in  advance  of  anything 
the  Spanish  provinces  beyond  the  seas  had  ever 
known.  It  improved  the  condition  of  the  Indians  in 
some  respects,  by  exempting  them  from  military  ser- 
vice and  from  the  payment  of  the  most  irksome  of  the 
taxes  formerly  levied  upon  them.  But  the  Central 
Government  was  empowered  to  delay  the  extension 
of  the  privileges  granted  under  this  Constitution  in 
any  of  the  dominions  to  which  it  was  not  considered 
safe  or  judicious  to  apply  them  at  once,  and  Mexico 
was  liable  to  be  placed  in  that  category  at  any  time 
at  the  will  of  the  Viceroy. 

Early  in  1812,  two  battalions  of  Spanish  troops, 
including  a  famous  Regiment  of  Asturias  which  had 
won  the  title  of  "  The  Invincibles  "  in  the  Peninsula, 
came  to  Mexico,  sent  there  by  the  Regency  of  Spain 
to  support  the  Viceregal  government  and  to  assist  in 
reducing  the  Independents  to  subjection.  The  C6rtes 
of  Cadiz  was  furthermore  known  to  be  in  negotia- 
tion with  England  regarding  means  for  the  pacifica- 
tion of  the  American  provinces.  The  Constitution 
had  been  proclaimed  in  some  parts  of  America  before 
the  arrival  of  the  Spanish  troops ;  but  in  some  prov- 
inces the  proclamation  was  postponed  until  after  that 
time,  and  consequently  the  Mexicans  were  suspicious 
of  the  concessions  made  to  them  therein.  They  had 
had  a  long  experience  of  the  falsehood  and  injustice  of 
Spain,  and  had  little  confidence  in  the  sincerity  of  the 
Cortes  or  in  the  power  of  that  body  to  maintain  the 
new  institutions  it  had  apparently  sought  to  create. 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  59 

Thoughtful  men  in  Mexico  felt  and  expressed  distrust, 
and  tlie  more  courageous  and  patriotic  of  them  openly 
disresrarded  the  new  Constitution. 

Venegas,  the  Viceroy,  took  the  view  that  the  new 
Constitution  was  in  most  of  its  provisions  unpracti- 
cable  in  Mexico.  He  proclaimed  it,  but  he  soon  saw 
that  it  was  impossible  for  him  to  maintain  his  author- 
ity under  it,  and  after  two  months  he  began  to  sus- 
pend one  provision  after  another  until  in  a  short 
time  nothing  remained.  He  could  not,  however, 
revoke  the  concessions  made  to  the  people,  and  the 
general  effect  of  his  vacillations  was  to  spread  the 
revolution  and  make  it  more  popular.  For  thougli 
the  Mexican  people  might  lack  confidence  in  the 
ability  or  even  in  the  intention  of  the  Cortes  to  secure 
them  their  rights,  they  were  ready  enough  to  take  the 
C6rtes  at  its  word  when  it  declared  what  those  rights 
were. 

The  military  exploits  of  Morelos  were  checked 
neither  by  the  publication  nor  by  the  suspension  of 
the  new  Constitution.  They  included  the  brilhant 
evacuation  of  Cuautla,  and  the  capture  of  Tehuacan, 
Orizaba,  and  Oaxaca,  in  1812.  The  first- named  place 
was  a  town  of  about  five  thousand  inhabitants.  In 
some  unexplained  manner,  Morelos  had  permitted 
himself  to  be  shut  up  in  this  town  with  several  of  his 
brave  lieutenants  and  with  not  more  than  three  thou- 
sand soldiers.  General  Calleja  appeared  before  the 
town  with  twelve  thousand  men,  perfectly  equipped 
and  well  disciplined.  He  was  certain  of  success 
when  he  attacked  the  town,  on  the  nineteenth  of  Feb- 
ruary. But  he  was  repulsed,  and  forced  to  lay  siege. 
The  little  army  within  the  town  suffered  all  the 
horrors  of  siege  until  the  second  of  May.     Attacks 


60  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

were  made  almost  daily  during  that  time,  and  the 
conduct  of  the  besieged  was  marked  by  the  highest 
heroism. 

The  evacuation  of  the  place  is  regarded  as  an  in- 
stance of  military  genius.  The  soldiers  of  Morelos 
formed  in  three  divisions  and  marched  out  of  the 
town  in  the  middle  of  the  night,  unobserved  by  tlie 
Spaniards  until  they  reached  a  deep  harranca  (moun- 
tain gorge)  some  distance  beyond  the  Spanish  lines. 
The  Spaniards  then  discovered  the  movement,  and 
made  an  attack ;  but  the  Independents,  by  a  pre- 
concerted signal,  suddenly  dispersed  to  rendezvous 
elsewhere.  The  Spanish  troops  began  to  fire  upon 
one  another  in  the  darkness.  So  well  executed  was 
the  manoeuvre  on  the  part  of  the  Independents,  that 
only  seventeen  men  were  missing  at  the  appointed 
rendezvous. 

After  this  brilliant  retreat,  Morelos  continued  his 
successes  in  other  regions.  In  the  towns  captured 
by  him  toward  the  end  of  the  year,  much  rich  booty 
was  secured.  In  Oaxaca  particularly,  sixty  cannon, 
one  thousand  muskets,  and  many  prisoners,  were 
taken. 

In  March,  1813,  General  Fehx  Maria  Calleja  del 
Rey  succeeded  Venegas  as  Viceroy.  He  had  been 
knighted  because  of  his  success  at  the  battle  of 
Puente  de  Calderon,  and  v/as  now  the  Count  of 
Calderon.  The  order  for  the  change  in  the  admin- 
istration of  affairs  in  New  Spain  was  dated  on  the 
sixteenth  of  September  in  the  previous  year,  —  the 
date  most  significant  in  Mexican  history.  Calleja 
was  totally  indifferent  to  the  provisions  of  the  Con- 
stitution of  1812,  and  continued  the  pursuit  of  the 
Independents,  which   he  had  begun  in  the  time   of 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOB  INDEPENDENCE         61 

Hidalgo,  with  such  vigor  as  to  gain  for  himself  the 
title  of  "The  Cruel." 

After  making  the  important  captures  above  men- 
tioned, Morelos  made  a  mistake  similar  to  that  of 
Hidalgo,  and  instead  of  following  up  the  advantage 
he  had  gained  and  advancing  upon  the  capital  with 
every  prospect  of  taking  it,  he  returned  to  the  scene 
of  his  first  military  operations,  besieged  Acapulco, 
and  compelled  its  surrender,  in  August,  1813.  He 
then  called  a  Congress  of  Mexicans,  numbering  forty 
deputies,  from  the  different  provinces  under  the  con- 
trol of  the  Independents.  This  Congress  was  to  com- 
bine with  the  Junta  of  Zitacuaro,  and  take  steps 
toward  the  organization  of  an  independent  nation. 
The  deputies  were  elected  by  popular  vote,  and  as- 
sembled in  the  month  of  September,  1813,  in  Chil- 
pantzingo,  about  a  hundred  and  thirty  miles  south  of 
the  City  of  Mexico.  Among  the  members  were  More- 
los, Liceaga,  Rayon,  Verduzco,  Cos,  Carlos  Maria 
Bustamante,  and  other  distinguished  patriots. 

This  Congress  issued  an  important  manifesto,  show- 
ing the  principles  of  the  revolution  at  that  time.  It 
declared  that  the  sovereignty  resided  in  the  people. 
Spain  and  America  were  integral  parts  of  one  mon- 
archy, subject  to  the  same  king,  — equal,  and  without 
any  dependence  upon  or  subordination  to  each  other. 
America,  because  of  her  fidelity  to  Fernando,  had 
more  right  to  convoke  the  Ctlrtes  and  call  together 
representatives  of  the  few  patriots  of  Spain  than  Spain 
had  to  call  from  America  deputies  who  were  not 
worthy  representatives  of  Mexico.  In  the  absence  of 
the  King,  the  inhabitants  of  the  Peninsula  had  no 
right  to  arrogate  to  themselves  the  sovereign  power 
over  these  Western  dominions,  and  all  orders  ema- 


62  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

nating  from  such  a  source  were  absolutely  null  and 
entitled  to  no  obedience.  In  refusing  to  submit  to 
an  arbitrary  power,  the  American  nation  was  only 
exercising  its  proper  and  inherent  rights  ;  and  so  far 
from  this  being  high  treason  or  a  crime,  it  was  a 
proof  of  patriotism  worthy  of  the  King's  gratitude, 
and  which  he  would  undoubtedly  approve  if  he  were 
on  the  spot.  After  what  had  occurred,  both  in  the 
Peninsula  and  in  Mexico,  since  the  overthrow  of  the 
throne  in  Spain,  the  Mexicans  were  right  in  demand- 
ing such  guarantees  for  the  Dominion  of  New  Spain 
for  its  legitimate  sovereign,  free  from  the  intervention 
of  any  European  people. 

After  this  preamble,  the  manifesto  went  on  to  make 
the  following  demands.  The  European  residents  of 
Mexico  were  to  resign  the  command  of  the  armed 
forces  into  the  hands  of  a  national  Congress,  inde- 
pendent of  Spain,  which  was  to  represent  Fernando 
VII.  and  secure  his  rights  in  Mexico.  They  might, 
however,  if  they  so  chose,  remain  as  citizens  under  the 
protection  of  the  laws,  and  under  a  guarantee  of  safety 
as  to  their  persons,  families,  and  property.  Such  Eu- 
ropeans as  were  then  in  office  were  to  remain  with 
the  honors,  privileges,  and  distinctions  thereof,  and  a 
part  of  the  emoluments  ;  but  they  were  not  to  ex- 
ercise any  official  functions.  The  most  effective 
measures  were  to  be  advocated  with  the  independence 
of  Mexico  in  view;  and  all  the  people  of  the  land, 
Creoles  as  well  as  Europeans,  were  to  constitute 
themselves  a  nation  of  American  citizens,  subjects 
of  Fernando  VII.,  bent  only  upon  promoting  the 
public  welfare.  On  such  a  basis,  Mexico  would  be 
able  to  contribute  for  the  prosecution  of  the  war  in 
Spain  such  sums  as  Congress  might  appropriate,  as 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  63 

evidence  of  the  fraternal  relations  existing  between 
Mexico  and  the  Peninsula  and  as  proof  of  their  com- 
mon aspirations.  The  Europeans  who  might  desire 
to  leave  Mexico  were  to  be  granted  passports  for 
whatever  place  they  wished,  but  in  such  case  public 
officials  were  not  to  be  allowed  any  part  of  their 
official  pay. 

An  important  part  of  the  document  was  devoted 
to  propositions  regarding  the  prosecution  of  the  war 
then  in  progress  in  Mexico.  It  was  declared  to 
be  a  war  between  brethren  and  fellow-citizens.  The 
two  contending  parties  both  acknowledged  Fernando 
VII.  as  their  sovereign.  Of  this  the  Mexicans  had 
given  proof  by  swearing  allegiance  to  Fernando,  by 
proclaiming  him  in  every  part  of  the  country,  by 
carrying  his  portrait  upon  their  banners,  by  invoking 
his  name  in  their  official  acts,  and  by  stamping  it 
upon  their  coinage.  The  war  ought  not,  therefore, 
to  be  more  cruel  than  one  between  foreign  nations. 
The  rights  of  nations  and  the  rules  of  war,  observed 
even  among  infidel  and  savage  people,  ought  certainly 
to  be  regarded  among  those  who  were  subjects  of  the 
same  sovereign.  The  contest,  if  it  were  indeed  in- 
evitable, should  be  carried  on,  as  far  as  possible,  in 
such  manner  as  to  be  least  shocking  to  humanity. 
Prisoners  of  war  should  not  be  treated  as  guilty  of 
high  treason,  and  sentenced  to  death  as  criminals  for 
causes  purely  political.  If  kept  as  hostages  for  pur- 
poses of  exchange,  they  should  not  be  placed  in  irons, 
but  treated  each  according  to  his  proper  condition. 
By  the  rules  of  war,  effusion  of  blood  was  only  per- 
missible in  the  act  of  combat.  The  Spaniards  had 
need  to  be  reminded  of  this.  When  the  combat  was 
over,  no  one  should  be  killed,  nor  should  those  who 


64  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  BE  PUBLIC 

threw  down  their  arms  or  fled  be  fired  upon.  They 
might  be  made  prisoners  by  the  victors.  The  severest 
penalties  should  be  meted  out  to  such  as  entered 
defenceless  towns  with  fire  and  sword,  or  assigned 
persons  to  be  shot  by  tenths  or  fifths,  and  thus  con- 
founded the  innocent  with  the  guilty. 

Ecclesiastical  tribunals  were  not  to  interfere  in 
what  was  clearly  and  exclusively  an  affair  of  the 
state,  and  in  no  way  connected  with  the  cause  of 
religion.  The  Independents  avowed  their  profound 
respect  and  veneration  for  the  clergy,  and  recognized 
the  clergy's  jurisdiction  in  matters  relating  to  their 
sacred  calling.  But  if  the  clergy  were  not  restrained 
in  their  present  inclinations,  the  Independents  would 
not  be  responsible  for  what  might  result  from  popular 
indignation.  And  if  the  propositions  set  forth  in 
the  manifesto  were  not  accepted  by  the  Europeans  to 
whom  they  were  submitted,  the  Independents  would 
be  forced  to  pursue  a  policy  of  vigorous  reprisals. 

Had  the  offers  of  this  admirable  declaration  of 
rights  been  accepted  by  the  Viceregal  government, 
not  only  might  Mexico  have  remained  to  Spain  for 
many  years,  but  the  subsequent  history  of  Spain 
itself  might  have  been  differently  written.  The 
Viceroy,  however,  instead  of  according  to  the  docu- 
ment the  courteous  consideration  it  deserved,  treated 
it  as  a  treasonable  paper,  and  had  it  ceremoniously 
burned  by  the  public  executioner  in  the  Plaza  Mayor 
of  the  City  of  Mexico. 

The  Congress  of  Chilpantzingo,  under  date  of 
September  15,  nominated  Morelos  Captain-General 
of  the  forces  of  the  Independents,  and  proceeded  to 
pass  decrees  abolishing  slavery,  imprisonment  for  debt, 
and  the  collection  of  tithes  for  the  support  of  religious 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  65 

houses.  This  action  indicated  some  of  the  abuses 
existing  in  the  political  system  of  New  Spain  to  which 
political  reformers  were  beginning  to  awaken,  and 
foreshadowed  some  of  the  reforms  which  were  to 
occupy  the  thoughts  of  publicists  at  a  later  period. 

The  Congress  first  removed  to  Tlacotepec,  and 
finally  convened  in  Apatzingan.  There,  on  the  six- 
teenth of  November,  1813,  it  published  its  formal 
Declaration  of  Independence  of  Spain.  "  Mexico  was 
declared  free  from  Spanish  control,  with  liberty  to 
work  out  its  own  destiny  and  with  the  Roman  Catholic 
Religion  for  its  spiritual  guidance."  The  name  chosen 
for  the  new  nation  was  "  The  Kingdom  of  Anahuac," 
—  under  tlie  misapprehension  that  there  had  been  an 
Aztec  empire  of  that  name  before  the  advent  of  the 
Europeans.  A  Constitution  was  adopted,  liberal  in 
its  provisions;  and  Liceaga,  Morelos,  and  Dr.  Cos 
were  named  as  the  Poder  Ejecutivo  (Executive  Power) 
to  carry  it  into  effect.  Both  the  Declaration  and  the 
Constitution  had  the  distinction  of  being  ceremoni- 
ously burned  in  public,  by  order  of  the  Viceroy,  in 
the  City  of  Mexico  and  in  the  principal  towns  of  the 
country. 

The  Declaration  of  Independence  made  but  a 
slight  impression  upon  the  popular  mind,  for  various 
reasons,  —  least  of  all  for  the  treatment  it  received  at 
the  hands  of  the  Viceroy ;  and  the  liberal  Constitu- 
tion appealed  even  less  than  the  Declaration  to  the 
Mexicans.  For  one  thing,  the  fortunes  of  Morelos 
had  begun  to  wane.  Furthermore,  there  was  lack 
of  harmony  in  the  Congress  of  Chilpantzingo  ;  nor 
were  the  members  of  the  Poder  Ejecutivo  wholly  of 
one  mind  upon  political  subjects  and  as  to  what  was 
best  for  the  welfare  of  Mexico.     Some  of  the  deputies 


68  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

in  the  Congress  of  Cbilpantzingo  desired  to  establisli 
tire  traditional  colonial  system  under  the  Constitution 
of  1812.  Others  desired  to  adopt  purely  American 
institutions  modelled  after  those  of  the  United  States. 
The  partisan  spirit  thus  rising  was  marked  by  great 
bitterness.  There  was  a  similar  want  of  unanimity 
between  Congress  and  the  military  authorities  of  the 
Independents.  But  it  was  news  received  from  Spain 
at  this  time  that  most  powerfully  affected  the  fortunes 
of  the  Declaration  and  of  the  Constitution. 

]3efore  the  fall  of  Napoleon  Bonaparte,  in  1814,  he 
had  hoped  that  by  releasing  Fernando  from  his 
captivity  and  sending  liim  back  to  Spain  he  might 
create  divisions  in  France  by  which  his  own  interests 
could  be  served.  He  accordingly  executed  a  treaty 
with  his  royal  captive,  and  released  him.  Fernando 
ignored  the  Cortes  altogether,  and  sent  notices  of  his 
release,  and  of  the  treaty  concluded  with  Napoleon, 
to  the  Regency  of  Spain.  He  entered  Madrid  in 
May,  and  began  at  once  to  carry  out  his  plans  for  the 
reestablishment  of  absolutism. .  He  rejected  the  Con- 
stitution of  1812,  and  restored  the  religious  orders 
to  the  dominant  position  they  had  held  before  their 
suspension  by  that  Constitution.  He  abolished  the 
Cortes,  and  burned  the  official  records  of  its  proceed- 
ings. He  reestablished  the  Inquisition,  and  appointed 
a  Grand  Inquisitor,  by  whom  fifty  thousand  persons 
were  imprisoned  and  not  a  few  were  put  to  the  torture. 
In  pursuance  of  Fernando 's  decrees,  all  adherents 
of  the  Cortes  were  exiled,  and  all  Liberals,  Free 
Masons,  and  the  purchasers  of  property  nationalized 
under  decrees  of  the  Cortes,  were  relentlessly 
persecuted. 

The  news  of  the  return  of  Fernando  to  Spain,  and 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOB  INDEPENDENCE  67 

of  his  action  in  regard  to  the  Constitution  of  1812, 
caused  dissension  among  the  adherents  of  the  Vice- 
regal government  in  Mexico;  and  the  Independents 
might  have  profited  by  taking  advantage  of  these 
circumstances,  had  they  maintained  harmony  among 
themselves.  The  action  of  Fernpaido  rendered  him 
persona  non  grata  to  those  Mexicans  whose  "  rebel- 
lion "  had  been  against  what  they  had  regarded  as  an 
improperly  constituted  authority  opposed  to  him,  and 
who  had  been  all  the  wliile  loyal  to  hun  as  their  King. 
For  they  had  learned  to  rebel  against  absolutism  in 
any  form,  —  against  even  a  king,  if  he  were  oppressive. 
They  were  furthermore  interested  in  the  Cortes  to  the 
extent  of  being  committed  to  some  of  the  principles 
set  forth  by  that  body.  But  while  the  Declaration  of 
Independence,  the  Constitution  of  Apatzingan,  and 
the  Poder  Ejecutivo  furnished  bases  of  union  and 
government  for  the  Independents,  there  was  such  lack 
of  harmony  among  the  Mexicans  that  they  failed  to 
attract  adherents.  So,  though  the  revolt  against 
Spain  was  renewed  and  invigorated,  there  was  no 
definite  purpose  set  before  the  revolutionists,  and  the 
general  result  was  anarchical,  the  government  of  the 
Viceroy  being  the  more  conservative  of  the  two  then 
claiming  to  exist  in  Mexico. 

Morelos  had  been  anxious  to  establish  himself  in 
Valladolid  and  make  that  place  the  basis  of  his  future 
military  operations.  No  doubt  tliere  was  a  senti- 
mental regard  for  his  birthplace  as  an  actuating  motive 
in  this  matter,  —  Mexicans  are  apt  to  be  thus  moved, 
and  their  national  history  exhibits  many  similar 
instances,  —  though  there  was  also  the  possibility  of 
being  better  connected  with  the  Independents  of  the 
Provincias  Internas,  as  the  region  was  called  in  wliich 


68  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Guanajuato,  Guadalajara,  and  other  important  towns, 
were  lootted.  So  he  set  out  for  VaUadoHd,  just  after 
the  adoption  of  the  Declaration  of  Independence,  hav- 
ing seven  thousand  men  in  his  command.  Mata- 
moros  was  able  to  defeat  the  Spaniards  at  Palmar,  and 
to  capture  the  famous  "  Invincibles "  of  Asturias. 
This  destroyed  the  prestige  of  Spanish  military  superi- 
ority in  Mexico,  and  gave  the  people  some  encourage- 
ment. But  less  favorable  occurrences  were  in  store 
for  the  army  of  Morelos, 

Congress  and  the  Poder  Ejecutivo  were  forced  to 
flee  before  the  troops  of  the  Viceroy,  and  Ario  was 
selected  as  the  headquarters  of  the  Provisional  Govern- 
ment. Discord  continued  among  the  members  of  this 
body,  and  of  the  Congress.  Differences  of  political 
opinion  caused  the  death  of  several  prominent  Inde- 
pendents at  the  hands  of  others.  Dr,  Cos  took 
grounds  upon  some  subject  contrary  to  Morelos,  and 
the  latter  promptly  condemned  him  to  death.  He 
had  worked  hard  and  sacrificed  much  for  the  Independ- 
ents, and  in  disgust  at  the  treatment  he  received  he 
now  sought  reconciliation  with  the  Europeans  and 
with  the  Church,  applied  to  the  Viceroy  for  pardon 
for  his  political  derelictions,  and  spent  the  rest  of  his 
life  in  the  discharge  of  the  duties  of  his  priestly 
office. 

It  was  evident  that  another  act  in  the  drama  of 
Mexican  Independence  was  about  to  close.  Morelos 
undertook  to  make  a  junction  with  the  troops  of 
Mier  y  Teran  (who  was  in  Tehuacan  in  the  province 
of  Puebla),  and  to  place  Congress  under  the  latter's 
protection.  He  had  but  five  hundred  men  with  him, 
and  had  to  traverse  sixty  leagues  of  a  country  of 
which  the  Spaniards  were   in  full  possession.     His 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  69 

despatches  were  intercepted,  and  General  Mier  y  Teran 
did  not  learn  of  his  projected  movements  until  too 
late  to  extend  him  aid.  Morelos  was  attacked  near 
Texmalaca,  on  the  fifteenth  of  November.  He  ordered 
an  officer  to  continue  his  march  with  the  main  body 
of  the  troops,  and  to  escort  the  Congress  to  a  place  of 
safety,  while  he  with  fifty  men  attempted  to  divert 
the  attention  of  the  attacking  Spanish  troops.  He 
regarded  the  safety  of  Congress  of  more  importance 
to  the  future  of  the  country  than  his  own  life. 

Morelos  was  soon  captured,  loaded  with  chains, 
and  taken  a  prisoner  to  the  capital.  There  his  case 
was  brought  before  the  Holy  Office,  which,  after 
having  been  suspended  by  the  Constitution  of  1812, 
had  been  reestablished  in  January,  1814,  partly  for 
the  purpose  of  combating  the  "  spread  of  revolutionary 
ideas  in  Mexico."  His  condemnation  was  a  foregone 
conclusion.  It  was  pronounced  on  the  twenty-sixth 
of  November,  and  his  was  the  final  auto-de-fe  of  that 
tribunal  in  Mexico,  if  not  in  the  world.  After  de- 
grading him  from  the  priesthood,  as  had  been  done  in 
the  case  of  Hidalgo,  and  condemning  him  to  do  pen- 
ance in  a  penitent's  robe,  the  Inquisitors  handed  him 
over  to  the  secular  arm.  The  inflammatory  effect  his 
execution  might  have  upon  the  popular  mind  if  too 
publicly  accomplished  was  fully  appreciated  by  the 
Spanish  authorities,  and  the  Viceroy  had  the  prisoner 
removed  to  a  small  town  in  the  vicinity  of  the  capital. 
He  was  shot,  on  the  twenty-ffi-st  or  twenty-second  of 
December,  1815,  at  San  Cristobal  Ecatepec.  From 
the  time  of  his  capture  he  persistently  refused  to 
answer  any  questions  regarding  his  fellow-patriots  or 
their  plans.  At  his  execution,  after  praying  for  the 
emancipation  of  his  country,  he  said :    "  Lord,  if  I 


70  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

have  done  well,  Thou  knowest  it ;  if  ill,  to  Thy  in- 
finite mercy  I  commend  my  soul."  With  Morelos 
ended  the  heroic  days  of  the  Mexican  Revolution. 

Congress  convened  in  Tehuacan,  attempted  to  fill 
the  vacancy  in  the  Poder  JEjecutivo  caused  by  the  cap- 
ture and  death  of  Morelos,  and  then  gave  its  attention 
to  subordinate  matters  rather  than  to  affairs  of  state. 
It  voted  to  each  of  its  members  an  ample  salary,  and 
gave  to  one  of  them  the  management  of  the  public 
funds.  It  made  Mier  y  Teran  (who  was  the  logical 
successor  to  Morelos  as  Captain-General  of  the  army, 
and  who  was  moie  of  a  statesman  than  any  of  the 
Independents  had  thus  far  shown  themselves  to  be) 
subject  to  the  will  of  a  body  of  men  whom  he  humor- 
ously described  as  ostentatiously  calhng  each  other 
"  Your  Most  Honorable,"  while  neglecting  to  trans- 
act any  public  business. 

Mier  y  Teran  finally  dissolved  Congress  vi  et  armis, 
and  put  its  members  under  arrest.  He  justified  his 
action  in  a  manifesto  wherein  he  showed  that  Con- 
gress was  inimical  to  him  and  was  about  to  deprive 
him  of  his  military  command,  which,  as  he  declared, 
had  not  been  derived  from  Congress  and  was  not 
under  its  control.  As  Congress  at  that  time  had 
little  influence,  and  had  begun  to  practise  the  dis- 
honest political  methods  learned  of  the  Spanish  offi- 
cials and  in  large  measure  characteristic  of  later 
Mexican  office-holders,  the  step  he  took  was  a  neces- 
sar}^  one,  whatever  question  there  might  be  as  to  his 
right  to  take  it.  He  liberated  the  members  almost 
immediately,  gave  each  some  money,  and  allowed 
them  to  depart  from  Tehuacan.  The  incident  was, 
however,  fatal  to  the  revolutionary  movement  then  in 
progress.     The  various  military  chiefs  were  again  left 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  71 

without  any  unifying  authority  over  them,  and  every 
man  became  a  law  unto  himself.  This  permitted  the 
Spanish  forces  to  crush,  one  after  another,  the  Inde- 
pendent leadei"S,  and  to  disperse  their  bands  of  fol- 
lowers. The  struggle  rapidly  assumed  the  conditions 
of  guerrilla  warfare. 

INIier  y  Teran  was  the  most  influential  and  promi- 
nent member  of  an  Executive  Junta  which  succeeded 
to  the  Congress  and  Poder  Ujecutivo,  and  for  a  while 
he  was  the  most  active  of  the  military  chiefs.  But  it 
was  apparent  that  the  cause  of  Independence  was 
languishing.  There  was  no  directing  power  to  which 
the  various  military  chiefs  could  bow.  Each  was  ab- 
solute over  his  immediate  followers,  and  would  brook 
no  interference  from  another.  A  combination  of  any 
two  or  more  forces  was  rendered  impossible  by  reason 
of  mutual  jealousies  and  distrust.  Their  movements, 
independent  of  each  other,  though  constantly  harass- 
ing to  the  Viceregal  government,  accomplished  no 
good  whatever  to  Mexico.  In  fact,  the  Viceroy  was 
justified  in  regarding  them  in  the  same  category  with 
brigands  and  banditti. 

Under  these  circumstances,  many  of  the  wealthy 
and  intelligent  people  of  ]\Iexico  began  to  look  to  the 
standard  of  Spain  as  the  symbol  of  law  and  good 
government,  and  there  was  every  prospect  that  quiet 
would  be  gradually  restored  to  the  land.  The  people 
were  especially  flattered  by  the  policy  which  Spain 
now  began  to  adopt,  of  employing  the  natives  of  the 
country  —  Creoles  and  Meztizos  —  in  offices  of  trust 
and  profit.  Antonio  Perez,  a  Mexican  priest  of  learn- 
ing, talent,  and  character,  was,  by  way  of  example, 
made  Bishop  of  Puebla.  This  had  the  effect  of  recon- 
ciling a  large  number  of  the  inferior  clergy  who  had 


72  FEOM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

previously  been  sympatliizers  with  Hidalgo,  Morelos, 
Matamoros,  and  Navarete,  and  the  most  determined 
opponents  of  European  domination.  The  government 
furthermore  employed  every  means  consistent  with 
prudence  to  secure  the  allegiance  of  a  large  body  of 
native  soldiers,  and  to  discipline  them ;  and  retained 
only  five  thousand  Spanish  troops  in  the  country. 

Meanwhile,  however,  Calleja's  cruelties  continued. 
Matamoros  had  been  executed  after  being  taken  pris- 
oner at  the  battle  of  Paruaran,  in  February,  1813. 
Francisco  Rayon,  the  brother  of  Ignacio,  was  executed 
the  day  of  Morelos'  death.  Some  patriotic  women 
were  cast  into  prison.  Galeana,  another  of  the  old 
stock  of  insurgents,  was  defeated  in  battle,  taken  pris- 
oner, and,  in  violation  of  the  rules  of  war,  beheaded. 
These  are  but  examples  of  the  methods  by  which  the 
bloodthirsty  Calleja  sought  to  uphold  the  Viceregal 
power,  at  a  time  when  statesmanship  would  have 
accomplished  far  more  than  military  rigor. 

When,  in  September,  1816,  Calleja  del  Rey  was  suc- 
ceeded in  the  Vireinate  by  Juan  Ruiz  de  Apodaca, 
the  revolution  appeared  to  have  been  crushed  out. 
The  freebooting  expedition  of  Francisco  Javier  Mina, 
a  Navarrese  sympathizer  with  the  Independents  of 
Mexico,  was  cut  short  by  his  defeat  at  Venadito,  in 
October,  1817;  and  his  execution  followed  the  next 
month.  This  expedition  was,  in  fact,  scarcely  more 
than  an  effort  on  Mina's  part  to  transfer  to  Mexico 
the  guerrilla  warfare  he  had  carried  on  in  Spain. 
It  failed  to  awaken  any  enthusiasm  in  the  people 
generally.  He  had  set  forth  as  his  object  the  estab- 
lishment of  the  Independence  of  Mexico  on  a  consti- 
tutional basis  without  the  separation  of  the  country 
from  Spain. 


THE  STRUGGLE  FOR  INDEPENDENCE  73 

Excepting  for  Mina's  militaiy  operations,  Mexico 
was  little  disturbed  by  actual  war  after  the  capture 
of  Morelos,  until  1820.  The  policy  of  the  new  Vice- 
roy was  conciliatory,  and  did  more  in  a  short  time  to 
suppress  the  revolution  than  all  the  rigors  of  Fdlix 
Maria  Calleja  del  Rey  had  done  in  all  the  years  in 
which  he  ruled  Mexico  with  a  rod  of  iron.  Some  of 
the  Independent  leaders  accepted  the  pardon  offered 
by  Apodaca,  and  joined  the  party  of  the  Viceroy. 
Only  a  few  patriots  suffered  imprisonment.  Rayon, 
deserted  by  his  professed  followers,  was  captured  and 
detained  in  prison  in  the  capital  until  1821.  In  1828 
he  was  a  General,  held  in  high  esteem  by  the  people ; 
but  he  disappeared  from  view  in  the  later  liistory  of 
the  country.  Verduzco  fell  into  the  hands  of  the 
Spanish,  and  escaped  execution  only  by  taking  advan- 
tage of  the  general  amnesty  offered  under  the  Consti- 
tution of  1812,  when  it  was  reestablished  in  Spain. 
Liceaga  was  assassinated  by  one  of  liis  own  captains. 
Mier  y  Teran  surrendered,  and  retired  to  private  life. 
In  1819  the  Viceroy  reported  to  the  Regency  that  he 
would  answer  for  the  safety  of  Mexico,  and  that  there 
was  no  need  of  sending  any  more  troops  from  Spain. 

Nevertheless  tliere  were  a  few  scattered  military 
leaders  v/ho  held  out  against  the  offers  of  the  Viceroy 
and  the  blandishments  of  the  Constitution  of  1812. 
These  were  destined  to  become  conspicuous  in  the 
subsequent  history  of  the  country.  Fdlix  Fernan- 
dez's adventures  in  the  mountain  passes  read  like  a 
romance.  Juan  Alvarez,  a  full-blooded  Indian,  was 
operating  in  the  south  ;  and  Vicente  Guerrero  was 
fighting  for  the  Independence  of  his  country  in  the 
region  already  famous  by  reason  of  the  military  ex- 
ploits of  Morelos. 


74  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 


CHAPTER   IV 

THE  "PLAN  DE  IGUALA,"  THE  TREATY  OF  COR- 
DOBA, AND  THE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE 

UPON  Fernando's  reestablishment  of  Absolut- 
ism in  Spain,  a  revolution  broke  out  in  that 
country.  In  1820,  the  Constitution  of  1812 
was  proclaimed  by  the  revolutionists  in  Saragossa, 
and  Fernando  found  himself  under  the  necessity  of 
proclaiming  it  in  Madrid,  and  convening  the  C6rtes. 
His  speech  at  the  opening  of  that  body  was  remark- 
able for  its  expressions  of  liberal  sentiments,  and  for 
its  general  hypocrisy.  The  C6rtes  proceeded  to  re- 
store its  former  work:  it  dissolved  the  convents, 
abolished  the  Inquisition  (this  time  finally),  ordained 
the  freedom  of  the  press  and  the  right  of  holding 
popular  meetings  and  forming  political  clubs,  and 
even  went  so  far  as  to  seize  the  tithes  of  the  secular 
clergy  on  the  grounds  that  the  money  was  required 
by  the  State  in  a  great  emergency. 

When  the  restored  Constitution  and  the  decrees  of 
the  Cortes  came  to  be  promulgated  in  Mexico,  there 
was  a  great  commotion  among  the  European  resi- 
dents there.  The  results  were  almost  the  opposite 
of  wjiat  had  been  expected  in  Spain.  The  people 
were  at  the  time  excited  over  an  election  in  which 
they  were  to  exercise  the  suffrage,  and  the  spirit 
of  Independence  was  about  to  break  forth  again. 
The  Creoles  were  of  course  pleased  with  the  restora- 


THE  FIEST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  75 

tion  of  the  Constitution,  whereby  their  rights  were 
recognized  and  enlarged.  The  Europeans,  however, 
were  divided  in  their  opinions.  Some  were  favorable 
to  the  new  order  of  things,  while  others  preferred  the 
old  system  under  Avhicli  they  had  fattened  and  grown 
wealthy.  The  pay  of  the  army  was  reduced  under 
the  new  system,  and  this  caused  widespread  discon- 
tent in  that  powerful  political  body. 

In  Spain,  the  adherents  of  the  King  in  his  struggle 
with  the  liberal  party  were  known  as  "  Serviles." 
The  Serviles  among  the  Europeans  of  Ncav  Spain 
thought  of  offering  a  refuge  to  Fernando  in  Mexico, 
and  thus  securing  to  the  clergy  through  him  the 
rights  of  which  they  were  deprived  by  the  Constitu- 
tion and  the  liberal  decrees  of  the  Cortes.  The  Vice- 
roy, Apodaca,  was  under  the  influence  of  the  Serviles. 
After  taking  the  oath  prescribed  by  the  Cortes  to 
support  the  Constitution,  he  was  really  planning  its 
overthrow. 

The  clergy  of  Mexico  now  found  themselves  forced 
into  a  curious  position.  Under  orders  from  the  Pope, 
they  had,  nine  years  before,  opposed  the  revolution 
in  Mexico,  and  had  denounced  as  heretical  the  idea  of 
Independence  or  separation  from  Spain.  But  that 
was  at  a  time  when  they  felt  that  Spain  and  the 
Spanish  system  were  the  only  conservators  of  their 
rights  and  privileges.  Now  they  found  their  rights 
and  privileges  menaced  from  that  very  quarter.  The 
liberal  Constitution  took  from  them  much  valuable 
property  and  many  prized  prerogatives.  It  was 
the  liberalism  of  Spain,  not  that  of  Mexico,  that 
now  threatened  religion  itself.  Their  interests  de- 
manded "  an  absolute  separation  from  Spain  and  its 
radicalism." 


76  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

The  clergy  began  to  hold  secret  consultations  with 
their  closest  adherents  among  the  "  Old  Spaniards," 
and  to  devise  means  whereby  the  rights  and  preroga- 
tives of  the  religious  orders  might  be  conserved,  the 
immense  revenues  of  the  Church  saved,  and  the  co- 
operation of  the  people  of  Mexico  (whom  they  had 
previously  estranged)  secured  in  their  interests.  The 
Spanish  treasury  was  known  to  be  exhausted,  the 
army  was  unpaid  and  ready  to  mutiny,  and  there 
were  other  indications  that  should  the  struggle  for 
Independence  be  renewed  it  would  be  successful.  It 
was  a  foregone  conclusion  that  sooner  or  later  an 
independent  nation  would  be  established  in  Mexico. 
It  seemed  best  for  the  clergy  and  their  friends  to 
effect  a  compromise  with  the  extreme  Independents, 
and  get  control  of  the  revolutionary  movement.  With 
this  object  in  view,  meetings  were  held  in  the  Church 
of  the  Profesa  in  the  City  of  Mexico,  and  were  at- 
tended by  "  Old  Spaniards,"  Creoles,  and  the  more 
influential  Meztizos.  The  clergy  were,  of  course, 
largely  represented.  As  a  result  of  these  meetings, 
a  plan  of  action  was  agreed  upon  for  accomplishing 
what  Hidalgo,  Morelos,  and  thousands  of  heroes  had 
fought  and  died  for  —  the  Independence  of  Mexico. 

Prominent  among  those  interested  in  this  new 
movement  was  Agustin  de  Iturbide,  who  was  des- 
tined to  take  a  very  prominent  part  in  the  affairs 
of  Mexico.  He  was  a  native  of  Valladolid  (now 
Morelia),  and  a  Meztizo,  his  father  being  Spanish 
and  his  mother  a  Mexican;  but  he  was  regarded 
as  a  Creole,  and  was  generally  so  termed.  He  had 
entered  the  provincial  militia  at  the  age  of  sixteen, 
was  rapidly  promoted  until  he  reached  the  rank  of 
colonel,  and  in  1820  was  in  his  thirty-eighth  year. 


THE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  77 

Upon  the  outbreak  of  the  revolution  under  Hidalgo, 
he  looked  into  the  nature  of  the  quarrel  between 
Mexico  and  Spain,  and  at  first  espoused  the  cause 
of  his  native  land.  But  he  soon  afterwards  joined 
the  troops  organized  for  the  support  of  the  Viceregal 
government.  Up  to  1820,  the  energy,  not  to  say 
vindictive  cruelty,  with  which  he  had  pursued  the 
revolutionists  left  no  grounds  for  suspicion  as  to  the 
direction  of  his  sympathies  in  political  affairs.  But 
he  had  recently  been  removed  from  the  army  for 
some  malfeasance,  and  was  an  idler  in  the  City 
of  Mexico,  devoting  himself  to  religious  exercises 
and  extending  his  intercourse  with  the  clergy.  He 
was  handsome  in  person,  of  elegant  address  and 
polished  manners,  and  Avas  highly  esteemed  by  the 
clergy,  through  whose  influence  he  regained  much 
of  the  popularity  he  had  lost  by  his  cruelties  and  his 
rupture  with  the  army  and  the  government. 

His  rapid  promotion  in  the  Viceregal  army  stimu- 
lated his  ambition,  and  his  observation  of  affairs  in 
Spain  changed  his  political  views.  With  the  entire 
separation  of  Mexico  from  Spain,  there  would  be  no 
chances  for  his  further  advancement,  civil  or  military. 
He  had  nothing  to  hope  from  the  Mexicans,  having 
been  a  bitter  opponent  of  the  Independents.  If,  on 
the  other  hand,  he  were  allied  to  the  successful  party, 
and  had  a  hand  in  effecting  the  separation  which  he 
now  concluded  was  inevitable,  his  chances  for  promo- 
tion under  the  new  regime  would  be  greatly  enhanced. 
He  believed  that  the  cause  of  Independence  could  be 
made  to  triumph  by  effecting  a  union  of  the  Euro- 
peans, the  Creoles  or  Meztizos,  and  the  Revolutionists, 
under  a  "  Plan  "  then  under  discussion  at  the  Church 
of  the  Profesa.     He  was  taking  an  active  part  in  the 


78  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIG 

meetings  being  held  there,  and  afterwards  claimed  to 
have  originated  the  "Plan"  which  was  finally  adopted. 

When  the  necessity  for  a  military  leader  arose,  the 
qualifications  of  Agustin  de  Iturbide  were  readily 
seen  by  the  plotters  at  the  Church  of  the  Profesa, 
and  he  was  selected  for  that  position.  The  military 
leader  being  thus  secured,  it  became  necessary  to 
secure  an  army  for  him  to  lead.  This  was  accom- 
plished by  inducing  the  unsuspecting  Viceroy  to 
appoint  Iturbide  to  the  command  of  a  native  army 
which  was  preparing  to  destroy  Vicente  Guerrero, 
and  proclaim  in  the  western  coasts  of  jMexico  the 
restoration  of  the  King's  absolute  authority,  which 
the  Viceroy  was  expecting  simultaneously  to  proclaim 
in  the  capital. 

General  Vicente  Guerrero  was  the  one  revolution- 
ary chief  who  had  refused  all  overtures  from  the 
Viceroy,  and  was  still  in  formidable  resistance  to  his 
authority.  He  was  of  humble  origin,  and  was  said 
to  possess  that  drop  of  African  blood  in  his  veins 
which  deprived  him  of  the  rights  of  Spanish  citizen- 
ship under  the  Constitution  of  1812.  He  had  been  a 
follower  of  Morelos,  and  had  led  bands  of  guerrillas 
after  the  defeat  of  that  great  patriot-priest.  In  March, 
1818,  he  was  apparently  the  only  general  officer  in 
resistance  to  the  government  of  the  Viceroy.  Thus 
early  he  set  to  work  to  collect  the  scattered  patriots 
and  reorganize  them  for  a  final  struggle.  By  a  series 
of  victories  over  the  Viceregal  forces  in  1820,  he  won 
recognition  as  a  formidable  revolutionary  leader.  He 
was  destined  to  become  an  important  factor  in  the 
liberation  of  Mexico  from  Spanish  domination. 

The  army  of  Guerrero  was  threatening  a  march  on 
the  capital,  where  the  mihtary  strength  of  the  Vice- 


THE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  79 

roy  was  concentrated,  when  Iturbide  was  sent  to 
destroy  it  and  proclaim  the  absolute  authority  of  the 
King.  Iturbide  left  the  capital,  in  November,  1820, 
with  twenty-five  hundred  soldiers,  and  established 
himself  near  the  headquarters  of  the  Independent 
chief.  He  was  in  no  haste,  however,  to  engage  in 
battle.  He  was  convinced  that  by  bringing  the  old 
insurgents  to  act  in  concert  Avith  the  Creole  troops, 
he  might  easily  shake  off  the  authority  of  Spain  and 
proclaim  the  absolute  Independence  of  Mexico.  On 
these  points  there  was  a  perfect  understanding  be- 
tween him  and  the  clerical  schemers  at  the  capital. 
The  following  February  (1821),  an  interview  was 
arranged  between  the  two  military  leaders.  Iturbide 
disclosed  his  plan  for.  the  establishment  of  a  Constitu- 
tional Monarchy  in  Mexico  which  should  guarantee 
to  the  people,  (1)  the  Roman  Catholic  Religion,  with- 
out toleration  of  any  other,  and  with  the  rights,  im- 
munities, and  property  of  the  clergy  preserved  and 
secured ;  (2)  the  absolute  independence  of  the  coun- 
try ;  and  (3)  the  enjoyment  of  the  same  civil  rights 
by  all  of  the  actual  inhabitants  of  Mexico,  whatever 
their  birthplace  or  descent,  —  thus  doing  away  with  all 
distinctions  of  race  or  color.  The  scheme  provided 
for  the  recognition  of  Fernando  VII.  as  Emperor,  pro- 
vided he  would  consent  to  occupy  the  throne  in  per- 
son and  take  an  oath  to  observe  the  Constitution  to 
be  adopted  by  a  Congress  of  the  Mexican  nation. 
Guarantees  were  to  be  given  for  the  conservation  of 
the  property  and  rights  of  the  clergy ;  and  provision 
was  to  be  made  for  an  army  to  take  the  Roman 
Catholic  Religion  under  its  protection,  for  a  Mexican 
Congress  to  frame  a  Constitution,  and  for  a  governing 
junta  pending  the  arrival  of  the  King. 


80  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

On  the  twenty-fourth  of  February,  1821,  Iturbide 
assembled  tlie  chief  officers  of  his  army  at  Iguala  and 
presented  to  them  a  set  of  propositions  for  the  institu- 
tion of  a  national  government  in  Mexico  in  conform- 
ity with  this  scheme,  to  which  was  given  the  name 
of  Las  Tres  Crarantias  (The  Three  Guarantees), 
though  it  has  ever  since  been  popularly  known  as 
the  "  Plan  de  Iguala  "  from  the  little  village  (now  in 
the  State  of  Guerrero)  directly  south  of  the  capital, 
where  it  was  announced  to  the  army  of  the  Viceroy. 
The  "  Three  Guarantees  "  —  Religion,  Independence, 
and  Union  —  were  to  be  symbolized,  in  the  national 
flag  to  be  adopted,  by  the  colors  red,  white,  and 
green. 

The  "  Plan  de  Iguala  "  was  more  definite  than  any 
that  had  preceded  it,  and  gave  more  certain  promise 
of  success.  The  concession  on  the  part  of  the  cleri- 
cal promoters  of  the  plan  was,  of  course,  in  regard  to 
the  equality  of  the  various  social  classes ;  all  class  dis- 
tinctions were  to  be  abolished.  Compensation  for  this 
concession  was  to  be  had  in  the  protection  which  the 
clergy  hoped  to  receive  for  their  religious  privileges. 
The  proposal  of  adherence  to  Fernando  was  intended 
merely  to  deceive.  When  the  Independents  hesitated 
to  accept  a  government  under  a  Borbon  prince,  they 
were  assured  that  there  was  little  prospect  of  the  exe- 
cution of  that  part  of  the  plan,  though  the  primary 
intention  was  to  free  Mexico  from  the  domination  of 
Spain  and  Spanish  people,  not  from  that  of  the  King. 
It  was  necessary  to  have  this  provided  for  at  the  out- 
set, though  it  was  generally  understood  that  the  pro- 
vision was  not  likely  to  be  retained.  The  Mexicans 
generally,  apart  from  the  Independent  leaders,  knew 
little  and  cared  less  about  the  form  of  government  to 


TEE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  81 

which  they  were  to  submit  when  once  freed  from  that 
of  the  Viceroy  and  Audiencia ;  and,  visionary  and  im- 
practicable as  it  now  appears,  the  idea  of  giving  to 
Fernando  VII.  an  Empire  in  the  Western  World,  in 
place  of  one  he  had  found  so  irksome  in  Spain  under 
the  constitutional  restrictions  imposed  in  1812,  was 
very  attractive  to  the  Mexican  people  at  that  time. 

It  was,  in  fact,  the  Spanish  C6rtes  that  objected. 
The  "  Plan  de  Iguala  "  was  a  most  impudent  subver- 
sion of  their  plans.  Fernando  was,  indeed,  under 
their  arrangement  of  affairs,  a  mere  figure-head  in  the 
government  of  Spain  and  persona  non  grata  to  the 
Spanish  people.  But  the  Cortes  preferred  to  have 
that  figure-head  kept  at  home.  It  was  not  the  inten- 
tion to  have  the  King  transfer  his  capital  from  Madrid 
to  the  City  of  Mexico,  and  establish  on  American 
soil  a  new  Empire  to  be  the  rival  of  the  old.  And 
although  the  C6rtes  treated  the  matter  with  all  seri- 
ousness when  it  came  before  it,  it  could  not  fail  to 
see  the  ludicrous  side  of  the  Mexican  proposal. 

Guerrero  received  the  disclosures  of  Iturbide's  plan, 
when  first  made  to  him,  with  uncontrolled  joy,  and 
at  once  ceded  to  the  Meztizo  Colonel  the  command 
of  the  "Army  of  the  Tliree  Guarantees,"  composed  of 
his  own  forces  and  those  under  Iturbide,  who  swore 
to  support  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala."  The  news  of  the 
movement  spread  like  wild-fire  throughout  the  coun- 
try. Iturbide  went  into  the  Provincias  Internas  to 
arrange  for  its  publication  there,  leaving  Guerrero  in 
command  of  the  troops  in  the  south. 

All  the  Viceroy's  offers  of  money  and  political 
advancement  failed  to  win  the  now  revolutionary 
Commander-in-chief  back  to  his  former  allegiance. 
Iturbide  not  only  took  with  him  the  soldiers  in  his 


82  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

immediate  command,  but  he  influenced  many  others 
to  espouse  the  cause  of  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala." 
Pedro  Celestino  Negrete,  who  up  to  this  time  had 
been  in  command  of  a  division  of  tlie  Viceroy's  troops, 
pronounced  for  the  Plan  in  Guadalajara.  Colonel 
Anastasio  Bustamante,  afterwards  President  of  Mex- 
ico, with  his  whole  regiment,  declared  in  favor  of 
the  Plan;  and  the  Creole  troops,  which  had  not 
joined  in  the  previous  revolutions,  now  came  forward 
in  support  of  this.  Juan  Alvarez,  Carlos  Maria  Bus- 
tamante, Josd  Joaquin  de  Herrera,  Nicolas  Bravo, 
and  many  others  who  were  destined  to  attain  to  promi- 
nent places  in  the  subsequent  history  of  the  country, 
gave  in  their  adhesion  to  it.  Antonio  L6pez  de  Santa 
Anna,  and  others  on  the  Gulf  Coast,  arose  in  support  of 
the  Plan  ;  Fdlix  Fernandez  came  forth  from  his  hiding- 
place  ;  Revolutionary  leaders  who  had  retired  from  the 
struggle  discouraged,  again  came  to  the  front;  and 
Iturbide  soon  found  himself  at  the  head  of  sixteen 
thousand  men,  all  enthusiastic  over  the  success  of  the 
new  enterprise.  The  Bajio,  Valladolid,  Toluca,  Quere- 
taro,  Puebla,  Durango,  Zacatecas,  Oaxaca,  and  other 
localities,  came  into  the  ranks  of  the  "  Three  Guaran- 
tees.'' The  Independence  of  the  country  seemed 
assured  without  the  sacrifice  of  another  drop  of 
blood. 

Such  were  the  conditions  which  caused  the  retire- 
ment of  Viceroy  Apodaca  from  Mexico.  It  is  believed 
that  he  was  at  first  inclined  to  favor  the  "Plan  de 
Iguala  " ;  but  when  he  saw  the  true  state  of  affairs, 
and  what  it  was  that  Iturbide  was  seeking  to  accom- 
plish, he  declined  the  offer  made  to  him  of  the  Presi- 
dency of  a  junta  to  be  created  to  carry  the  Plan  into 
effect,  and  issued  a  proclamation  warning  the  people 


THE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  83 

against  the  new  movement  and  oifering  pardon  to  all 
who  would  abandon  the  constantly  growdng  forces  of 
the  "  Three  Guarantees."  Nevertheless,  the  Serviles 
seemed  to  regard  him  with  suspicion,  and  brought 
charges  against  him  of  lacking  energy  in  an  emergency 
and  of  taking  no  active  measures  against  the  Plan. 
The  troops  in  the  capital  mutinied,  and  seemed  in- 
clined to  go  over  to  the  army  of  Iturbide.  So  Apo- 
daca  resigned,  and  on  the  fifth  of  July,  1821,  turned 
the  government  over  to  his  Chief  of  Artillery,  Fran- 
cisco de  Novella. 

Apodaca  is  known  in  history  as  "  The  Unfortunate." 
Novella  appears  as  Viceroy  ad  interim,  but  he  did  little 
by  way  of  discharging  the  functions  of  the  Viceregal 
office,  and  liis  term  lasted  but  a  few  days.  His  author- 
ity was  scarcely  recognized.  The  Serviles  failed  to 
support  him;  the  officers  of  the  army  ignored  him. 

On  the  thirtieth  of  July,  1821,  General  Juan 
O'Donoju,  bearing  the  commission  of  Captain-Gen- 
eral, arrived  in  Mexico  to  supersede  Novella.  Upon 
landing  in  San  Juan  de  Ulua,  he  took  the  oath  of 
office  as  Viceroy,  and  issued  a  proclamation  declaring 
the  liberality  of  his  principles  and  the  rectitude  of  his 
intentions,  and  holding  out  the  prospect  of  arranging 
satisfactorily  all  that  v/as  desired  by  the  "Plan  de 
Iguala."  He  requested  that  hostilities  might  be 
suspeiided  until  he  could  consult  with  the  Independ- 
ents and  receive  instructions  from  Spain.  Vera  Cruz 
was  then  in  the  hands  of  the  Independents  under 
Antonio  Lopez  de  Santa  Anna.  O'Donoju  was  there- 
fore placed  in  the  embarrassing  position  of  having  to 
ask  of  Santa  Anna  the  privilege  of  landing  upon  the 
continent,  and  of  requesting  from  Iturbide  a  safe- 
conduct  to  the  capital. 


84  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

O'Donojn  (whose  name  bespeaks  his  Irish  origin) 
saw  at  a  glance  that  it  would  be  impossible  to  arrest 
the  revolution  by  force,  and  he  proposed  to  treat  witli 
Iturbide.  Iturbide  answered  his  letter  by  offering  to 
meet  him  in  Cordoba;  and  there  they  met,  on  the 
twenty-fourth  of  August,  1821.  With  that  date,  the 
Independence  of  Mexico  may  be  considered  as  begun. 
There  was  apparently  no  difficulty  in  getting  O'Donoju 
to  sign,  on  behalf  of  the  government  he  was  supposed 
to  represent,  what  is  known  as  the  Treaty  of  C6rdoba. 

This  Treaty  embodied  the  "Plan  de  Iguala."  It 
declared  Mexico  sovereign  and  independent,  and  pro- 
vided for  a  constitutional,  representative  monarchy ; 
for  the  call  of  the  Borbon  family  of  Spain  to  the 
throne;  and  for  the  immediate  establishment  of  a 
provisional  government,  pending  the  arrival  of  the 
chosen  monarch.  The  Treaty  also  assured  to  the 
people  the  liberty  of  the  press  and  the  equal  rights  of 
Mexicans  and  Spaniards  then  residing  in  the  country, 
and  agreed  that  the  army  of  the  "  Three  Guarantees  " 
should  occupy  the  capital  and  that  the  Spanish  troops 
should  be  sent  out  of  the  country  as  speedily  as  pos- 
sible. In  accordance  with  this  stipulation.  Colonel 
Herrera  entered  the  capital,  on  the  twenty-third  of 
September,  with  a  detachment  of  the  Independent 
troops.  The  Commandant  at  San  Juan  de  Ulua  and 
Novella,  in  the  City  of  Mexico,  were  the  only  promi- 
nent military  officials  who  remained  in  opposition  to 
the  Treaty  of  C(5rdoba ;  and  their  following  was  but 
small. 

The  Treaty  of  C6rdoba  having  been  secured,  and 
all  things  being  in  readiness,  Iturbide,  on  his  thirty- 
ninth  birthday  (twenty-seventh  of  September),  entered 
the  capital  in  triumph  at  the  head  of  his  army.     He 


THE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  85 

was  hailed  as  "  The  Liberator,"  and  the  occasion  was 
marked  by  every  demonstration  of  joy.  He  at  once 
gave  his  attention  to  executing  that  clause  of  the 
Treaty  which  provided  for  a  government  ad  interim. 
The  provisional  government,  consisting  of  the  Bishop 
of  Puebla  and  two  lay  associates,  selected  Iturbide, 
O'Donoju,  Manuel  de  la  Barcena,  Jos^  Isidro  Yanez, 
and  Manuel  Vasquez  de  Le6n,  to  compose  the 
Regency. 

Barcena,  Yanez,  and  Le6n  are  new  names  in  the  his- 
tory of  these  times.  They  were  among  the  promoters 
of  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala,"  and  had  previously  taken  no 
interest  in  the  Independence  of  Mexico  save  to  oppose 
the  Revolutionists.  The  five  Regents  were  without 
delay  solemnly  installed  in  the  Cathedral,  upon  taking 
an  oath  to  support  the  Treaty  of  C6rdoba.  The 
Regency  organized  by  electing  Iturbide  President. 
He  appointed  a  ministry  altogether  inconsistent  with 
the  declared  purposes  of  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala,"  and 
inadequate  to  the  special  demands  of  the  times.  The 
old  Revolutionary  party  was  completely  ignored,  and 
the  portfolios  of  Hacienda  (State),  War  and  Marine, 
Justice  and  Ecclesiastical  Affairs,  and  Domestic  and 
Foreign  Relations,  were  given  to  the  new  party  of 
Independents,  —  those  who  had  sought  and  obtained 
the  separation  from  Spain  through  the  "Plan  de 
Iguala." 

The  death  of  O'Donoju,  on  the  eighth  of  October, 
enabled  Iturbide  to  augment  his  powers  still  further. 
The  Bishop  of  Puebla  was  appointed  to  the  place  of 
•the  deceased  Viceroy  in  the  Regency,  and  Iturbide 
conferred  upon  the  prelate  the  honorary  presidency 
of  that  body,  while  he  retained  for  himself  the  com- 
mand of  the  armv,  with  the  title  of  Generalissimo  and 


86  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

an  annual  salary  of  one  hundred  and  twenty-five  thou- 
sand dollars,  and  thus  grafted  upon  the  political  system 
of  the  new  nation  one  of  the  worst  features  of  the  Old 
Spanish  regime  —  ecclesiastical  and  military  domina- 
tion. With  the  further  title  of  "  Lord  High  Admiral " 
conferred  upon  him,  and  addressed  by  the  people  as 
"  Serene  Highness,"  the  Meztizo  Colonel  was  within 
a  step  of  the  gratification  of  his  loftiest  ambition.  He 
separated  himself  from  the  old  Revolutionary  leaders, 
ignored  the  services  they  might  render  him,  allied 
himself  with  the  army,  and  ingratiated  himself  with 
the  clergy  and  aristocratic  classes  as  most  hkely  to 
serve  him  in  time  of  need. 

A  junta  composed  of  thirty-eight  "  Notables,"  and 
more  popularly  constituted  than  the  Regency,  pro- 
ceeded to  arrange  for  the  organization  of  Congress,  as 
contemplated  by  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala ;  "  but  its  mem- 
bers did  not  propose  to  accept  too  readily  Iturbide's 
plans  for  the  organization  of  that  body.  Instead  of 
two  houses  of  legislation,  they  proposed  to  allow  but 
one,  and  that  was  to  be  composed  of  deputies  elected 
by  the  people.  In  those  provinces  which  were  to 
send  more  than  four  deputies,  they  proposed  that 
there  should  be  one  ecclesiastic,  one  military  man, 
and  one  lawyer;  and  although  all  the  members  of  the 
junta  professed  to  be  guided  by  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala," 
a  diversity  of  political  views  became  apparent  from 
the  outset.  Certain  writers  at  this  time  began  to  pro- 
pose openly  the  adoption  of  the  Republican  form 
of  government.  The  public  press  began  to  attack  the 
"  Plan  de  Iguala."  An  organized  movement  toward 
the  establishment  of  a  Republic  was  actually  dis- 
covered and  suppressed  by  Negrete,  toward  the  end  of 
the   year,  and  Fdlix  Fernandez,  Nicolas  Bravo,  and 


THE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  87 

others,  were   made   to   suffer   imprisonment  in  con- 
sequence thereof. 

When  assembled,  on  the  twenty-fourth  of  Febru- 
ary, 1822,  Congress  was  found  to  comprise  three 
distinct  parties,  notwitlistanding  the  oath  taken  by 
each  deputy  to  support  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala  "  and 
the  Treaty  of  C6rdoba.  The  "  Borbonistas "  were 
the  strictest  adherents  to  the  Plan  and  Treaty,  and 
desired  a  constitutional  monarchy  with  a  Prince  of 
the  House  of  Borbon  at  its  head.  They  comprised 
the  Spaniards  who  had  been  unable  to  leave  the 
country  because  of  their  valuable  interests  therein, 
and  whose  welfare  could  only  be  conserved  by  a 
strict  construction  of  the  Plan,  of  which  they  were, 
in  fact,  the  original  promoters. 

The  "  Republicans  "  desired  that  the  Plan  should 
be  set  aside,  and  a  Federal  Republic  be  instituted. 
They  fully  appreciated  the  difficulties  in  the  way 
of  realizing  their  hopes,  but  they  had  begun  to  be 
suspicious  of  Iturbide;  and  being  composed  for  the 
most  part  of  the  old  Revolutionary  leaders,  they 
were  naturally  hostile  to  him  personally. 

The  third  party  called  themselves  "Iturbidistas." 
They  accepted  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala,"  but,  anticipat- 
ing the  action  of  the  Spanish  Cortes  in  regard  to  the 
Treaty  of  C6rdoba,  they  were  preparing  to  substitute 
Iturbide  for  the  Borbons  named  in  the  Plan  and 
Treaty,  and  elevate  him  to  an  Imperial  throne. 
These  partisans  of  Iturbide  comprised  representatives 
of  the  army,  the  clergy,  and  the  more  influential 
Creoles.  The  three  political  parties  thus  beginning 
to  crystallize  foreshadowed  those  which  subsequently 
played  foot-ball  with  the  highest  interests  of  the 
Mexican  nation. 


88  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

The  declaration  of  the  Spanish  C6rtes  that  the 
Treaty  of  Cordoba  was  null  and  void,  was  received 
in  Mexico  at  the  time  that  the  Constituent  Assembly 
or  Congress  was  organized  under  the  Presidency  of 
a  pronounced  opponent  of  Iturbide.  The  resolution 
of  the  C6rtes  to  make  an  effort  to  recover  the  Ameri- 
can provinces  by  reinforcing  the  troops  in  the  revolt- 
ing countries,  meant  nothing  more  than  an  emphatic 
protest  against  the  course  affairs  were  taking;  for 
Spain  had  neither  money  nor  men  to  spare  at  the 
time.  And  the  immediate  result  in  Mexico  was  that 
the  "  Borbonistas  "  ceased  to  exist  as  a  party,  and  the 
interests  of  the  Congress  were  narrowed  down  to  those 
of  the  "  Iturbidistas  "  and  Republicans.  The  latter 
were  led  by  such  men  as  Guerrero,  Fernandez,  Bravo, 
and  others  of  their  class,  and  were  augmented  by  the 
former  "  Borbonistas."  They  were  bitterly  opposed 
to  the  further  advancement  of  Iturbide.  Guerrero 
naturally  felt  that  he  was  entitled  to  some  recognition 
in  the  distribution  of  honors  under  the  new  regime. 

Congress,  which  was  largely  dominated  by  the 
Republicans,  placed  further  obstacles  in  the  way  of 
Iturbide' s  progress  toward  the  gratification  of  his 
ambition.  The  reduction  of  the  army  was  a  blow 
aimed  at  his  personal  support.  The  Regency  was 
deposed,  and  General  Bravo,  the  Count  of  Heras,  and 
Miguel  Valentin  were  placed  in  their  stead.  A  de- 
cree inhibiting  the  members  of  the  Regency  from 
bearing  arms,  intended  to  suppress  Iturbide's  candi- 
dacy for  the  Imperial  throne,  passed  to  its  third  read- 
ing, and  was  about  to  be  adopted,  when  Iturbide 
made  up  his  mind  that  it  was  time  for  his  friends  to 
take  the  final  step  necessary  to  secure  the  ends  he 
had  in  view. 


THE  FIRST  MEXICAN  EMPIRE  89 

On  the  eighteenth  of  May,  1822,  the  "  Liberator  " 
obtained  a  pronimciamento  in  his  favor  in  the  cuartel 
of  San  Hipolito  in  the  capitaL  The  ostensible 
leader  in  the  movement  was  one  Pio  Marcha,  a  ser- 
geant in  the  First  Regiment  of  Infantry,  who  but  for 
this  would  have  been  absolutely  unknown  to  history ; 
and  despite  his  important  relation  to  the  incidents 
now  brought  to  our  attention,  obtained  no  greater 
promotion  than  to  a  captaincy.  He  was  seconded 
by  Epitacio  Sanchez,  Colonel  of  a  regiment  of  Horse 
Guards,  and  the  movement  spread  to  the  various 
cuartels  of  the  city  and  was  assisted  by  demonstra- 
tions in  favor  of  Iturbide  in  the  theatres  and  by 
salvos  of  artillery  in  the  streets.  Enthusiasm  is 
infectious,  and  to  any  disinterested  spectator  in  the 
City  of  Mexico  that  day  it  would  undoubtedly  have 
appeared  that  the  popularity  of  Iturbide  had  been 
increasing  rather  than  diminishing  since  he  made  his 
triumphal  entry  into  the  city  as  the  Liberator  of  his 
people,  and  that  the  whole  city  had  determined  upon 
his  becoming  the  Emperor  of  the  naLion. 

In  a  turbulent  meeting  of  the  Congress,  from  which 
the  Republican  members  were  in  a  measure  excluded, 
and  in  which  the  influence  of  Iturbide  was  by  various 
means  greatly  extended,  — ■  with  the  galleries  filled 
with  his  friends,  who  were  instructed  to  applaud  at 
any  mention  of  his  name,  —  Iturbide  was  elected 
Emperor  of  Mexico  by  a  vote  of  seventy-seven  to 
fifteen.  If  we  may  accept  his  own  account  of  these 
proceedings,  his  election  was  greeted  with  unre- 
strained enthusiasm,  and  the  air  was  rent  with  shouts 
of  "  Viva  el  JEmperador  !     Viva  Agustiyi  I.  !  " 

He  immediately  took  the  oath  of  office  before  Con- 
gress, and  organized  a  Provisional  Council  of  State, 


90  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

composed  of  thirteen  persons.  Then,  to  the  neglect 
of  matters  upon  which  the  welfare  of  the  nation  and 
the  happiness  of  the  people  depended,  lie  applied 
himself  to  the  arrangement  of  the  succession  to  the 
throne  and  the  titles  to  be  borne  by  the  members 
of  the  Imperial  family.  On  the  twenty-fifth  of  July 
he  was  anointed  and  crowned  in  the  Cathedral 
in  Mexico,  and  assumed  the  title  of  "  Agustin  I., 
Emperador." 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMPIRE  91 


CHAPTER   V 

THE   FALL    OF    THE    EMPIRE,    THE   RISE   OF    THE 
REPUBLIC,   AND   THE   CONSTITUTION   OF   1824 

THE  Empire  over  which  Itiirbicle  thus  became 
ruler  was  the  third  hirgest  in  extent  of  ter- 
ritory of  any  in  the  world,  —  China  and 
Russia  alone  being  larger.  Of  the  former  posses- 
sions of  Spain  in  the  North  American  continent,  it 
lacked  the  Province  of  Louisiana,  of  which  Carlos 
IV.  had  disposed  without  regard  to  the  wishes  of  his 
subjects ;  and  the  Province  of  Florida,  nearly  sixty- 
seven  thousand  square  miles,  which  Fernando  VII. 
had  sold  to  the  United  States  in  1819.  Shortly  after 
the  establishment  of  the  Independence  of  Mexico, 
Guatemala  separated  from  that  country,  and  Chiapas 
became  a  part  of  Mexico's  territory.  The  Empire 
was  divided  into  five  Captaincies-General,  and  in- 
cluded a  large  and  but  partially  explored  territory 
north  of  the  Rio  Grande  del  Norte,  extending  to  the 
Pacific  Ocean, 

It  was  a  nation  of  magnificent  opportunities.  Its 
natural  resources  were  without  limit ;  and  had  Itur- 
bide  been  guided  by  counsels  of  prudence,  and  had 
he  known  something  about  government,  the  history 
of  the  Mexican  Empire  might  have  been  differently 
written.  Had  he  been  more  desirous  of  emulating 
the  virtues  of  Washington,  and  less  influenced  by 
the  example  of  Napoleon  Bonaparte,  he  might  have 


92  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

laid  the  foundations  of  a  nation  whose  development 
would  have  been  steady  and  continuous.  But  he 
soon  proved  himself  a  foolish  sovereign,  and  his 
Empire  was  short-lived.  His  head  was  turned  by  his 
sudden  elevation.  He  drove  about  the  capital,  invit- 
ing the  admiration  of  the  people,  and  too  plainly  ex- 
hibiting the  delight  which  it  afforded  him.  He  gave 
attention  to  the  devising  of  court  pageants,  rather 
than  to  the  more  important  affairs  of  government. 
He  instituted  an  order  of  nobility,  calling  the  mem- 
bers "  Gentlemen  of  Guadalupe,"  —  which  caused  the 
members  of  the  Spanish  nobility  who  still  resided  in 
Mexico  to  express  their  disgust  with  what  they  called 
"  a  caricature  of  the  European  system."  The  attempt 
at  regal  splendor  which  marked  his  establishment  in 
Tacubaya  was  criticised,  and  he  was  sneered  at  for 
the  attention  which  he  bestowed  —  out  of  all  propor- 
tion to  their  importance  —  upon  his  person,  his  car- 
riage, and  his  clotlies.  His  arrogant  manner  was  such 
as  to  draw  out  the  caustic  remark  that  "  he  seemed 
to  believe  that  he  dominated  the  world." 

Had  he  confined  his  authority  within  constitutional 
bounds,  both  he  and  his  Empire  might  have  fared 
otherwise  than  they  did.  But  he  foi*got  that  his 
Empire  Avas  but  an  experiment,  and  that  his  throne 
rested  upon  a  very  unstable  foundation.  It  was  to 
tlie  intense  disgust  of  the  Old  Spaniards  remaining 
in  the  country,  of  the  Creole  aristocracy  and  of  the 
privileged  classes,  who  could  ill  endure  the  elevation 
of  a  Creole  Colonel  to  an  Imperial  throne  over  their 
heads,  as  well  as  to  that  of  the  sturdy  old  Revolution- 
ary leaders  with  expanding  Republican  ideas,  that  he 
assumed  the  airs  of  hereditary  royalty. 

A  monarchical  government  for  Mexico  fell  far  short 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMPIRE  93 

of  meeting  the  ideas  of  the  Revolutionary  leaders. 
Some  of  them  had  ambitions  equal  to  those  of  Itur- 
bide,  and  it  was  far  from  agreeable  to  them  to  witness 
his  elevation  and  find  themselves  without  any  politi- 
cal reward  for  all  their  patriotic  services  and  pre- 
cluded from  all  hope  of  promotion.  It  was  not  for 
Iturbide's  aggrandizement  that  they  had  sacrificed 
fortune  and  incurred  the  perils  of  the  battle-field. 
The  Empire  of  Iturbide  seemed  a  poor  result  for  the 
sacrifice  of  Hidalgo,  AUende,  Aldama,  Jimenez,  Mat- 
amoros,  Morelos,  Galeana,  and  a  hundred  other  dis- 
interested and  pure-minded  patriots. 

Iturbide's  conduct  in  the  use  of  the  power  thus 
suddenly  bestowed  upon  him  increased  the  opposition 
he  had  aroused.  His  rule  was  arbitrary  and  dicta- 
torial. He  claimed  the  right  to  veto  any  article  of 
the  Constitution  which  the  "  Constituent  Assembly  " 
(as  Congress  was  called)  was  laboring  hard  to  provide, 
and  the  absolute  right  to  appoint  judges  for  the  tri- 
bunals which  the  Assembly  created.  He  urged  the 
creation  of  a  military  tribunal  which  was  to  have 
jurisdiction  in  civil  causes.  He  placed  repeated  ob-- 
stacles  in  the  way  of  popular  government,  and  thus 
instituted  theories  of  Centrahsm  destined  to  cause  seri- 
ous trouble  to  the  country  in  the  future  and  require 
the  expenditure  of  lives  and  fortunes  to  correct.  „ 

The  Emperor's  proposal  for  the  establishment  of 
military  tribunals  was  rejected  by  Congress,  and  an* 
open  breach  was  created  between  the  Executive  and 
Legislative  brandies  of  the  government.  Iturbide 
arbitrarily  imprisoned  some  of  the  most  distinguished 
members  of  Congress,  and  established  a  Junta  of 
Notables  comprising  two  deputies  from  each  province. 
This  action  Congress  resented  as  an  insult.     A  revo- 


94  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

lutionaiy  movement  resulted,  and  on  the  thirty-first 
of  October  Iturbide  issued  an  Imperial  decree  dis- 
solving Congress.  The  Junta  of  Notables  possessed 
little  influence  of  its  own,  but  served  as  the  tool  of 
the  Emperor.  Forced  loans  were  made  and  paper 
money  was  issued  by  its  authority.  The  new  nation 
thus  displayed  its  lack  of  credit  and  resources  at  a 
time  when  it  was  incurring  extraordinary  expenses. 
The  Junta  was  responsible  for  the  interception  and 
appropriation  by  the  government,  at  Vera  Cruz,  of  a 
eonducta,  the  greater  part  of  which  belonged  to  Span- 
iards. The  young  Empire  was  thus  chargeable  with 
pursuing  a  system  of  ethics  in  public  matters  learned 
from  the  Spanish  officials  in  the  times  of  the  Vice- 
roys, and  unfortunately  too  often  practised  subse- 
quently in  the  Republic  of  Mexico.  It  is  no  wonder 
that  it  fell  into  disrepute,  and  aroused  the  same  feel- 
ing of  resentment  as  that  which  liad  existed  against 
the  government  of  Viceroy  and  Audiencia. 

A  growing  lack  of  confidence  in  the  capacity  of 
Iturbide  for  government,  as  well  as  in  the  integrity 
of  his  motives  and  the  honesty  of  his  actions,  led  to 
efforts  to  overthrow  him.  Opposition  to  the  Empire 
first  took  form  in  an  Assembly  composed  of  liberals 
who  favored  a  Republic.  The  dissemination  of  trac- 
tates and  pamplilets  setting  forth  Republican  ideas,  the 
rights  of  citizenship,  and  the  defects  of  an  aristocratic 
form  of  government,  led  to  a  manifestation  of  the 
spirit  of  rebellion;  and  it  was  impossible  for  the 
Emperor  to  ignore  the  symptoms  of  anarchy  that  be- 
gan to  appear.  Before  the  end  of  November,  revolts 
occurred  in  the  northern  Captaincies-General.  These 
the  Emperor,  with  the  aid  of  the  national  troops,  was 
able   to    quell   promptly,   but  without   quieting  the 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMPIRE  95 

spirit  of  discontent  whicli  was  daily  manifesting  itself 
and  increasing  in  and  about  the  capital. 

In  December,  General  Antonio  Lopez  de  Santa  Anna 
headed  a  formidable  uprising  in  the  vicinity  of  Jalapa 
and  Vera  Cruz.  Santa  Anna  was  a  young  officer  who 
had  previously  supported  Iturbide,  but  having  been 
haughtily  dismissed  by  the  Emperor  from  the  govern- 
ment of  Vera  Cruz  he  now  turned  against  the  Empire. 
He  boldly  proclaimed  the  Republic,  pointing  out  in 
his  manifesto  that  the  Emperor  had  violated  his  coro- 
nation oath  by  dissolving  Congress.  He  promised 
that  the  soldiers  under  him  would  aid  Congress  to 
reassemble  and  would  protect  it  during  its  sessions. 
F^lix  Fernandez  (who  now  assumed  the  names  of 
Guadalupe  Victoria,  the  former  in  allusion  to  the 
patroness  of  Mexico,  the  latter  implying  the  fortune 
that  had  attended  many  of  his  encounters  with  his 
enemies)  joined  him  in  the  east,  and  took  the  leader- 
ship of  the  movement  which  was  readily  acceded  to 
him  by  Santa  Anna,  with  the  hope  that  the  name  and 
reputation  of  this  great  Revolutionary  leader  would 
inspire  the  confidence  of  those  who  favored  the 
Republican  form  of  government. 

Guerrero  and  Bravo  followed  the  example  of  Santa 
Anna  and  Guadalupe  Victoria,  and  led  a  revolt  in  the 
north.  Notwithstanding  a  counter-pronunciamento 
by  Manuel  Pedraza,  the  Military  Commander  of 
Huasteca,  the  Emperor  was  unable  to  suppress  these 
formidable  insurrections.  Disaffection  was  fostered 
among  the  chiefs  of  the  Imperial  army,  and  the  "  Plan 
Casa  Mata''  was  promulgated,  in  February,  1823. 
The  leading  features  of  this  Plan  were  the  calling 
of  a  new  national  representative  Congress  and  the 
guarantee  of  a  Republican  form  of  government.     It 


96  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

was  fortunate  in  securing  the  adherence  of   all  the 
national  troops  in  the  Captaincies-General. 

The  opposition  to  the  Emperor  was  gaining  ground 
daily,  and  he  became  fully  aware  that  his  popularity 
was  subsiding  and  that  he  was  being  regarded  as  the 
enemy  of  the  people  and  of  the  national  life.  The 
feeling  against  him  was  aggravated  by  his  natural  in- 
capacity for  government,  by  the  character  of  the  min- 
isters whom  he  had  chosen,  —  men  who  were  not  in 
sympathy  with  a  popular  form  of  government,  —  and 
by  the  arrogance  of  his  military  adherents.  He  tried 
to  placate  his  opponents  by  releasing  the  Congressional 
deputies  whom  he  had  imprisoned,  and  by  recalling 
and  reinstating  the  Congress  he  had  dissolved.  But 
his  conciliatory  action  came  too  late,  and  proved  in- 
effectual. The  only  apparent  course  open  to  him  was 
to  abdicate ;  and  this  he  prepared  to  do.  He  had 
partisan  supporters  sufficient  to  have  won  at  least  a 
temporary  victory  over  his  opponents  had  he  sought 
an  appeal  to  arms,  and  no  imputation  rests  upon  the 
personal  courage  of  Iturbide.  But,  to  his  credit  be 
it  said,  he  preferred  to  abdicate,  and  not  to  involve  the 
country  in  civil  war. 

His  abdication  bore  date  the  twentieth  of  March, 
1823 ;  but  it  was  not  made  effective  without  some 
difficulty  and  delay.  It  Avas  impossible  at  once  to 
obtain  a  quorum  of  Congress  to  act  upon  it,  and  the 
question  arose  as  to  the  competency  of  Congress  and 
the  capacity  in  which  it  could  treat  with  Iturbide. 
All  technicalities  were  finally  waived,  and  a  treaty 
was  agreed  upon  by  which  Iturbide  recognized  the 
Congress  which  he  had  previously  dissolved,  as  being 
legally  convened  and  free  to  act.  The  command  of 
the  army  was  given  to  Manuel  Gomez  Pedraza.     The 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMPIRE  97 

abdication  of  the  Emperor  was  accepted,  and  Iturbide 
was  permitted  to  retire  from  the  capital.  Thus  the 
Empire  came  to  an  end.  IMexico's  first  attempt  to 
form  an  independent  government  had  proved  a  failure. 

The  wars  for  ]\Iexican  Independence  had  been  wars 
of  escape  from  oppressive  rulers.  They  had  settled 
no  principle,  nor  had  they  established  any  system  of 
government.  Now  that  the  old  order  of  things  was 
entirely  done  away,  and  the  question  arose  as  to  what 
the  form  of  government  should  be  in  the  future, 
there  was  neither  precedent  nor  experience  to  guide. 
Monarchy  had  proved  a  failure,  —  or,  at  least,  the 
Republican  partisans  were  for  the  time  being  in  the 
ascendancy ;  and  with  the  rest  of  the  world  open  to 
their  view,  the  people  resolved  to  adopt  the  form  of 
government  which  they  beheld  bearing  apparently 
desirable  fruits  in  the  United  States. 

Congress  met  in  March,  with  twenty-nine  deputies 
present.  By  way  of  a  provisional  government,  a  Poder 
Ejecutivo  was  created.  This  was  a  triumvirate,  com- 
posed of  Negrete,  Bravo,  and  Guadalupe  Victoria,  — 
representatives  respectively  of  the  Old  Spanish,  the 
Monarchical,  and  the  Republican  elements  in  the  some- 
what chaotic  politics  of  the  country.  This  arrange- 
ment would  seem  to  indicate  a  spirit  of  fairness,  but 
practically  it  was  found  to  be  most  inconvenient  and 
unwise.  The  three  members  were  to  alternate  monthly 
in  the  control  of  affairs.  It  was  an  unhappy  circum- 
stance that  the  three  alternating  rulers  should  have 
been  military  men,  for  it  has  since  been  found  difficult 
to  rescue  Mexico  from  the  hands  of  military  oligarchies. 

The  three  chosen  rulers  were  all  absent  from  the 
capital  at  the  time  (which  may  have  been  the  reason 
for  their  selection),  and  alternates  or  substitutes  were 

7 


98  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

appointed.  These  were  Mariano  Michelena,  Miguel 
Dominguez,  and  Guerrero.  It  was  the  only  promi- 
nence in  political  affairs  to  which  Michelena  and 
Dominguez  ever  attained,  and  they  served  as  scarcely 
more  than  figure-heads  in  the  provisional  government. 
Of  the  Cabinet  which  was  formed,  Lucas  Alaman, 
Minister  of  Foreign  and  Domestic  Relations  and  vir- 
tual Premier,  was  probably  one  of  the  best  and  the 
most  statesmanlike  of  the  Mexicans  of  his  time.  He 
was  a  political  economist  and  a  famous  historian  of 
his  comitry.  He  had  been  a  deputy  from  New  Spain 
to  the  General  C6rtes  which  sat  in  Cadiz  in  1820. 
He  was  committed  to  decidedly  monarchical  opinions, 
which  marked  him  out  for  the  ill-will  of  the  Republi- 
can partisans;  and  though  he  subsequently  attained 
to  a  post  in  the  cabinet,  after  the  establishment  of  the 
Republic,  he  was  never  a  popular  candidate  for  the 
chief  magistracy.  Nevertheless,  his  influence  in  shap- 
ing the  form  of  government  was  quite  marked  at  this 
time ;  for  he  was  almost  the  only  one  in  Mexico  who 
had  a  knowledge  of  the  science  of  government. 

When  General  Bravo  returned  to  the  capital  and 
took  charge  of  the  government,  the  Poder  Ejecutivo 
took  up  the  matter  of  the  final  disposition  of  the 
abdicated  Emperor.  A  liberal  pension  was  granted 
to  him  in  recognition  of  his  services  as  the  Liberator 
of  Mexico ;  but  the  condition  attached  to  it  was  that 
he  was  to  reside  in  Italy.  Thither  lie  went  with  his 
family,  departing  from  Vera  Cruz  in  an  English 
vessel,  in  May,  1823.  On  leaving  the  country,  he 
addressed  a  letter  to  Congress  explaining  his  conduct 
and  expressing  his  desire  that  the  Mexicans  might  be 
happy  under  the  new  order  of  things. 

The   fate   of   this  ambitious  man,  whose  previous 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMPIRE  99 

career  had  been  so  brilliant,  was  exceedingly  sad,  but 
quite  characteristic  of  this  period  of  Mexican  history. 
There  was  still  left  in  Mexico  a  party  favorable  to  the 
maintenance  of  a  monarchy.  There  were  also  many 
who  were  warmly  attached  to  the  ex-Emperor  per- 
sonally ;  for  with  all  his  ambition  and  vanity  he  seems 
to  have  been  a  man  of  great  attractiveness.  Natu- 
rally the  sympathy  of  these  friends  was  strengthened 
by  his  misfortunes  and  exile.  Iturbide  was  in  cor- 
respondence with  them,  and  received  frequent  reports 
from  them  of  the  state  of  affairs  at  home.  These 
reports  were  flattering  to  his  vanity,  and  misleading 
as  to  the  political  conditions  of  his  country. 

The  government  immediately  succeeding  the  Em- 
pire was,  as  the  result  of  the  mdely  divergent  politi- 
cal views  held  by  the  members  of  the  Poder  JEjecutivo, 
far  from  satisfactory ;  and,  taking  advantage  of  this, 
an  insurrection  in  favor  of  Iturbide  was  incited. 
These  and  other  matters  were  brought  to  the  ex- 
Emperor's  attention  in  his  exile,  and,  miscalculating 
their  significance  and  probable  results,  and  without 
being  informed  that  the  insurrection  in  his  favor  had 
been  promptly  suppressed  and  its  leaders  cast  into 
prison,  Iturbide  left  Italy  and  took  up  his  residence  in 
London.  There  he  began  to  plan  a  return  to  Mexico, 
where  he  hoped  to  regain  liis  former  poj)ularity  and 
be  restored  to  the  head  of  the  government,  if  not  as 
Emperor  at  least  as  Dictator,  or  perhaps  as  President 
of  the  Republic. 

In  view  of  this  contingency.  Congress  formally 
declared  him  a  traitor  and  condemned  him  to  death 
should  he  ever  return  to  the  country  whence  he  had 
been  banished.  In  ignorance  of  this  Congressional 
action,  Iturbide  sailed  from   Southampton  in   May, 


100  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

1824,  and  arrived  in  Soto  de  la  Marina,  near  Tampico, 
in  July.  He  was  by  the  military  commandant  at  that 
place  treacherously  invited  to  land ;  and  upon  accept- 
ing the  invitation,  he  was  escorted  to  Padilla,  some 
miles  inland,  and  was  there  notified  of  the  purport  of 
the  declaration  of  Congress  and  informed  that  he  had 
but  a  few  hours  to  live.  Five  days  later  (the  nine- 
teenth of  July)  he  was  executed  at  Padilla.  He  met 
death  like  a  hero ;  for,  though  a  weak  sovereign,  he 
was  a  brave  soldier.  With  his  last  words  he  exhorted 
the  Mexicans  to  observe  the  religion,  maintain  the 
peace,  and  obey  the  laws  of  their  country.  His  body 
v/as  first  buried  in  the  church  at  Padilla,  —  for  death 
for  a  political  offence  was  then  no  bar  to  Christian 
burial  or  to  mortuary  honors.  With  characteristic 
inconsistency,  the  Provincial  Assembly  that,  without 
a  particle  of  legal  support  for  their  action,  had  ordered 
his  execution,  followed  him  to  the  grave  and  mourned 
him  as  a  public  benefactor.  The  news  of  his  untimely 
end,  which  had  evidently  not  been  contemplated  by 
the  national  autliorities,  was  received  at  the  capital  a 
week  later,  and  caused  a  profound  sensation.  The 
government  and  the  pubhc  press  expressed  deep 
regret  at  the  means  that  had  been  employed  to  crush 
out  the  jMonarchical  party.  Immediate  steps  were 
taken  to  provide  for  the  family  of  the  late  Emperor, 
and  the  pension  then  granted  was  scrupulously  paid 
to  the  family  as  long  as  one  of  them  survived. 

In  1836  the  body  of  Iturbide  was  removed  to  the 
Cathedral  in  the  City  of  Mexico,  and  placed  in  the 
Chapel  of  San  Felipe  de  Jesus,  where  it  still  rests. 
In  the  inscription  upon  the  sarcophagus,  Iturbide  is 
called  "  The  Libeiutor."  It  is  the  title  by  which  his 
country  is  willing  to  remember  the  services  he  ren- 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMTIRE  101 

dered  the  cause  of  Independence,  and  by  which  he  is 
enrolled  among  the  national  heroes  of  Mexico. 

Upon  the  abdication  of  Iturbide,  Congress  declared 
that  Iris  administration  of  the  government  during  the 
continuance  of  the  short-lived  Empire  had  been  a  rule 
of  force  and  not  of  right;  that  his  government  was 
unworthy  of  recognition,  and  that  the  nation  was  free 
to  constitute  itself  at  its  pleasure,  maintaining  of  its 
free  will  the  three  guarantees  of  Religion,  Independ- 
ence, and  Union.  The  "  Plan  de  Iguala "  and  the 
Treaty  of  C6i'doba  were  repudiated  as  inconsistent 
in  their  expressed  principles  of  government.  The 
Captaincies-General  were  abolished,  and  Command- 
ancies  were  established  in  the  Provinces.  Political 
prisoners  were  set  at  liberty,  payment  of  the  paper 
money  issued  by  the  Jimta  was  suspended,  and  the 
exportation  of  precious  metals  was  permitted.  The 
Supreme  Tribunal  and  the  Council  of  State,  which 
the  Emperor  had  instituted,  were  dissolved,  and  all 
the  monarchical  machinery  of  the  State  was  undone. 

The  national  treasury  was  practically  empty  when 
the  provisional  government  was  installed.  Funds 
were  raised  by  the  sale  of  tobacco  in  the  government 
warehouses,  and  by  the  disposal  of  the  temporalities 
of  the  evicted  Jesuits  and  the  property  of  the  Hospi- 
tallers and  of  the  Inquisition ;  a  loan  of  sixteen 
million  dollars  was  negotiated  at  London,  and  the 
first  page  of  the  history  of  the  "English  Debt"  was 
opened.  The  national  flag  was  adopted,  in  the  form 
in  which  it  still  remains,  as  the  flag  of  the  Republic 
of  Mexico.  The  bars  of  green,  white,  and  red,  in  the 
flag  of  the  "  Three  Guarantees,"  had  been  horizontal ; 
they  were  now  changed  to  upright,  with  the  green 
bar    next   to   the   staff.     The   national   coat-of-arms 


102  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

then  adopted,  embraced  the  ever-famous  eagle  upon  a 
nopal,  strangling  a  serpent,  —  referring  to  the  legend- 
ary establishment  of  the  Aztecs  on  the  site  of  the  City 
of  Mexico. 

The  Iturbidistas  having  been  withdrawn  from  the 
active  politics  of  the  country  by  the  exile  and  death 
of  their  chief,  the  Republicans  began  to  be  divided 
into  factions  and  parties,  and  to  adopt  party  cries 
which  disturbed  the  peace  of  Mexico  for  nearly  half 
a  century.  The  public  press  oxcited  the  intense 
passions  of  the  people  in  those  cities  which  had 
always  been  revolutionary  centres.  Negrete,  Bravo, 
and  others,  declared  themselves  "Centralists,"  and 
as  their  party  comprised  the  remnants  of  the  old 
Monarchists'  party,  the  name  of  "  Borbonistas  "  was 
given  to  them  in  derision.  They  maintained  a 
paper,  M  Sol,  advocating  a  centralized  form  of 
government. 

Victoria  and  Guerrero  proclaimed  themselves  leaders 
of  the  "  Federalists."  Some  of  the  former  partisans 
of  Iturbide  chose  to  charge  his  overthrow  upon  the 
Centralists,  and  attached  themselves,  out  of  revenge, 
to  the  Federalist  party,  and  took  a  prominent  place 
therein,  despite  the  fact  that  the  Federalists  advo- 
cated the  maintenance  of  a  Federal  Constitution,  the 
adoption  of  a  distinctly  Federal  system  of  govern- 
ment, and  the  reduction  of  the  privileges  of  the  aris- 
tocracy and  clergy.  Their  organ  was  the  ArcJiivista, 
afterwards  M  Aguila  Mexicana.  It  was  edited  by 
Navarete,  who  had  been  Iturbide's  Government 
Attorney. 

A  Congress,  installed  in  November,  1823,  discussed 
the  adoption  of  a  fundamental  law  for  the  country. 
The  Federalists  were  largely  in  the  majority.    Among 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMPIRE  103 

their  deputies  was  Valentin  Gomez  Farias,  repre- 
senting tiie  State  of  Coahuila,  —  an  influential  man, 
destined  to  still  greater  prominence  in  public  affairs. 
Among  the  Centralist  leaders  were  Carlos  Maria 
Bustamante  the  historian,  and  Manuel  de  Mier  y 
Teran,  who  was  a  deputy  from  Nuevo  Le6n.  The 
article  of  the  proposed  Constitution  furnishing  the 
principal  subject  for  debate  was  one  declaring  that 
"  The  nation  adopts  the  Republican,  Federal,  Popular, 
Representative  form  of  Government."  Dr.  Mier  y 
Teran  (opposing  the  adoption  of  this  provision) 
showed  how  different  were  the  circumstances  of 
Mexico  from  those  of  the  United  States,  which  the 
Federalists  were  attempting  to  copy.  The  United 
States  had  been  separate  provinces  which  had  feder- 
ated to  resist  the  oppression  of  England.  They  first 
suppressed  the  King's  name  from  their  separate  State 
constitutions  ;  and  the  States  thus  established  were 
fitted  to  become  afterwards  the  components  of  the 
Republic.  But  Mexico  was  in  no  such  category  ;  and 
the  difference  between  the  two  cases,  in  the  opinion 
of  Dr.  Mier  y  Teran,  was  radical.  Mexico  had  suf- 
fered as  a  whole  the  yoke  of  an  absolute  monarch 
during  three  centuries,  and  neither  the  whole  nor  any 
part  had  any  experience  whatever  in  the  workings  of 
Republican  institutions.  He  might  well  have  called 
attention  also  to  the  racial  differences  between  the 
Mexican  amalgamation  of  Latin  and  Indian  peoples 
and  the  Anglo-Saxons  who  had  established  the  Repub- 
lic of  the  United  States. 

Among  the  newly  enfranchised  citizens  of  Mexico, 
there  were  few  who  had  any  knowledge  or  experience 
in  the  functions  of  civil  office  or  had  made  a  profound 
study  of  the  different  systems  of  government.     And 


104  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

whether  rightly  or  wrongly,  the  advice  and  influence 
of  the  American  Minister  to  Mexico  were  sought 
and  freely  exercised,  to  the  final  triumph  of  the 
Federalist  principles  over  the  opposition  of  the 
Centralists. 

Thirty-six  articles  were  adopted,  in  January,  1824, 
to  serve  as  the  basis  of  a  future  Constitution.  This 
tentative  or  provisional  Constitution  defined  the 
government  to  be  Popular,  Representative,  Federal, 
and  Kepublican.  Later  in  the  year  the  Acta  Consti- 
tutiva,  or  definitive  Constitution  (copied  in  most 
particulars  from  that  of  the  United  States),  was  sub- 
mitted to  the  people.  It  proclaimed  the  national 
sovereignty,  the  independence  of  the  States,  the 
organization  of  the  supreme  power,  the  independence 
of  the  judicial  powers,  and  guaranteed  to  the  clergy 
and  military  their  already  vested  rights  or  fueros,  and 
to  the  nation  the  same  religious  intolerance  which  had 
characterized  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala." 

The  Republic  thus  constituted  comprised  nineteen 
States  and  five  Territories.  Each  State  had  its 
governor  and  legislature,  and  a  tribunal  of  justice, 
Avith  its  own  proper  officers,  and  was  vested  with 
power  to  dispose  of  its  own  revenues.  The  rights 
given  to  the  several  States  marked  the  chief  char- 
acteristic of  this  Constitution  as  being  the  product 
of  Federalist  influence.  The  States  were  to  organize 
their  governments  in  conformity  to  the  Federal  act, 
and  each  State  was  to  protect  its  citizens  in  the  full 
enjoyment  of  their  liberties. 

The  general  powers  of  the  National  government 
resided  in  Mexico,  or  the  Federal  District ;  and  these 
powers  comprised  a  General  Congress,  a  Supreme 
Court  of  Judicature  or  Justice,  and  a  President  of 


THE  FALL  O-F  THE  EMPIRE  105 

the  Republic  with  four  Ministers.  The  Legislative 
power  was  vested  in  a  Congress  comprising  a  Senate 
and  House  of  Representatives.  The  Senate  was  to 
be  composed  of  two  Senators  from  each  State,  elected 
by  the  Legislature  for  the  term  of  four  years.  The 
House  of  Representatives  was  to  be  composed  of 
deputies  elected  by  the  direct  vote  of  the  citizens  for 
a  term  of  two  years.  The  Supreme  Executive  author- 
ity was  to  be  vested  in  one  individual,  who  was  to  be 
styled  "  The  President  of  the  United  Mexican  States." 
He  was  required  to  be  Mexican  born,  thirty-five  years 
of  age,  and  was  to  be  elected  by  the  legislatures  of 
the  several  States  for  the  term  of  four  years.  The 
Supreme  Court  was  to  be  composed  of  eleven  judges, 
elected  by  the  legislatures  of  the  several  States. 

The  third  article  of  the  Constitution  read  as  follows  : 
"The  ReUgion  of  the  Mexican  Nation  is  and  will 
perpetually  be  the  Roman  Catholic  Apostolic.  The 
nation  will  protect  it  by  wise  and  just  laws,  and 
prohibit  the  exercise  of  any  other  whatever."  Tliis 
was  one  of  the  inheritances  which  the  Constitution 
received  from  the  "  Plan  de  Iguala." 

Some  of  the  provisions  of  the  Constitution  might 
be  considered  chimerical  and  Utopian ;  as,  for  example, 
no  individual  was  to  begin  a  suit  at  law  until  after 
having  tried  to  settle  the  case  by  arbitration.  And 
the  defect  might  be  pointed  out  that  trial  by  jury  was 
not  provided  for,  nor  was  proper  publicity  given  to 
the  processes  of  the  courts  in  which  justice  was  to 
be  administered.  These  details  show  that  the  Latin 
rather  than  the  Anglo-Saxon  influence  was  predom- 
inant in  the  formation  of  this  organic  law. 

The  Constitution  was  proclaimed  on  the  fourth  of 
October,   and  was   received   with   great   enthusiasm. 


106  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Under  the  Constitution,  the  Republic  of  Mexico  pro- 
ceeded to  organize  its  government  by  the  election  to 
the  Presidency  of  Guadalupe  Victoria,  the  Federahst 
candidate  for  that  office,  by  a  majority  of  the  votes 
cast.  General  Nicolas  Bravo,  the  candidate  of  the 
Centrahsts,  receiving  the  next  highest  number  of 
votes,  was  chosen  Vice-President.  Upon  their  in- 
stallation into  their  respective  offices,  on  the  tenth  of 
October,  1824,  the  Poder  Ejecutivo  passed  out  of  ex- 
istence, and  Mexico  began  a  career  as  a  Constitutional 
Republic. 

Almost  simultaneously  with  some  of  the  events 
narrated  in  the  foregoing  chapters,  the  Spanish  prov- 
inces in  South  America,  by  a  revolutionary  move- 
ment somewhat  similar  to  that  of  Mexico,  threw  off 
the  yoke  of  Spain  and  estabhshed  their  Independence. 
All  the  Spanish- American  countries  were  therefore 
at  this  time  the  subject  of  the  especial  attention  of 
the  European  powers  and  of  the  United  States.  Dur- 
ing the  imprisonment  of  Fernando  VII.  there  had 
been  no  diplomatic  relations  existing  between  the 
United  States  and  any  of  the  rival  authorities  in 
Spain.  Joseph  Bonaparte  attempted  to  procure  the 
recognition  of  the  American  Congress  in  1809,  but 
failed  ;  and  the  agent  of  the  Central  Junta  was  never 
recognized  by  the  United  States  in  that  capacity.  But 
the  time  had  now  come  for  the  United  States  to  give 
up  the  position  of  strict  neutrality. 

The  message  of  President  Monroe  to  the  Congress 
of  the  United  States,  in  December,  1823,  contained 
declarations  to  the  following  effect :  (1)  that  "  The 
American  Continents,  by  the  free  and  independent 
condition  which  they  have  assumed  and  maintained, 


THE  FALL   OF  THE  EMPIRE  107 

are  henceforth  not  to  be  considered  as  subjects  for 
future  colonization  by  any  foreign  power  "  ;  (2)  that 
any  attempt  on  the  part  of  European  powers  to  ex- 
tend their  pohtical  systems  to  any  portion  of  the 
Western  Hemisphere  would  be  considered  dangerous 
to  the  peace  and  safety  of  the  United  States;  that 
any  interposition  by  such  powers  for  the  purpose 
of  opposing  or  controlling  the  governments  which 
have  declared  their  independence  and  maintained  it, 
and  whose  independence  had  been  acknowledged  by 
the  United  States,  could  not  be  viewed  in  any  other 
light  than  as  a  manifestation  of  an  unfriendly  dispo- 
sition towards  the  United  States ;  that  the  political 
system  of  European  powers  could  not  be  extended  to 
any  portion  of  either  of  the  American  continents 
without  endangering  the  peace  and  happiness  of  the 
United  States,  nor  would  such  extension  be  regarded 
with  indifference. 

This  is,  in  substance,  the  famous  "Monroe  Doc- 
trine "  to  which  appeal  is  made  whenever  a  conflict 
between  European  and  American  interests  on  the 
American  continent  is  threatened.  It  is  interesting 
to  note,  in  passing,  that  the  "  Doctrine  "  had  its  rise  in 
the  events  herein  briefly  narrated.  The  United  States 
government,  having  recognized  the  independence  of 
Mexico,  was  resolved  to  use  its  influence  to  secure  a 
like  recognition  from  the  governments  of  Europe. 

There  seems  to  have  been  at  no  time  in  the  United 
States  a  perfect  understanding  of  the  political  con- 
dition of  Mexico.  Iturbide  had  sent  an  envoy  to  the 
government  at  Washington,  but  he  was  not  received, 
nor  was  Mexico  recognized  as  a  nation  until  after  the 
fall  of  the  Empire.  But  the  United  States  could 
be  reUed  upon  to  sympathize  with  a  country  which 


108  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

had,  by  whatever  means,  gained  its  independence  of  a 
European  power,  —  and  without  examining  too  closely 
into  the  character  of  the  govermnent  established 
there.  The  government  at  Washington  was  no  less 
ready  to  recognize  the  Mexican  Republic  when  estab- 
lished than  it  had  been  to  recognize  the  vague  and 
uncertain  government  which  had  immediately  suc- 
ceeded the  Mexican  Empire  and  was  in  vogue  at  the 
time  that  Mexican  Independence  was  acknowledged. 

The  declaration  contained  in  President  Monroe's 
message  was  especially  gratifying  to  England,  whose 
Minister  of  Foreign  Affairs  had  long  been  urging 
upon  the  United  States  the  necessity  of  promulgating 
some  such  statement.  Information  of  its  promulga- 
tion, when  it  was  received  in  Europe,  was  doubtless 
effectual  in  preventing  Spain  from  making  further 
serious  attempts  to  reclaim  her  provinces  in  America, 
although  she  withheld  the  recognition  of  the  Republic 
of  Mexico  until  the  latter  part  of  1836. 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  109 


CHAPTER   VI 

SANTA  ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM 

THE  administration  of  Guadalupe  Victoria, 
the  first  President  of  the  United  Mexican 
States,  began  under  exceedingly  happy  aus- 
pices, was  wise  and  beneficent  in  its  intentions,  and 
proved  generally  popular.  It  was  permitted  to  last 
out  the  full  constitutional  period  of  four  years,  and 
the  country  was  prosperous  to  a  greater  degree  than 
it  ever  was  before,  or  ever  has  been  since  until  very 
recent  years.  The  new  Republic  had  apparently  been 
established  in  peace.  Partisan  feeling  was  as  yet  but 
partially  developed;  and  there  was,  for  the  time 
being,  no  one  to  question  the  authority  of  the  Presi- 
dent under  the  Constitution  just  adopted.  The  treas- 
ury was  replete  with  funds  from  the  loan  negotiated 
with  England  and  from  the  development  of  the  na- 
tional resources,  and  everything  promised  a  happy 
career  for  the  new  nation. 

In  1825  the  President  signalized  the  anniversary  of 
Hidalgo's  Grito  by  the  liberation,  in  the  name  of  the 
country,  of  certain  slaves  purchased  by  the  govern- 
ment with  a  fund  raised  for  that  purpose;  and  of 
other  slaves  given  up  by  their  owners  with  the  same 
object  in  view.  Thus  African  slavery  was  reduced 
to  narrow  limits  in  Mexico ;  the  slaves  remaining  in 
the  country  were  in  domestic  service,  and  were  gen- 
erally treated  more  like  members  of  the  families  they 
served  than  as  actual  chattels. 


110  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

For  two  years  the  country  succeeded  in  avoiding 
those  political  disturbances  which  were  destined  to 
break  out  sooner  or  later  among  a  people  trained, 
as  the  Mexicans  had  been,  under  Spanish  rule.  The 
Administration  and  Congress  were  chiefly  of  the 
Federalist  party,  and  through  the  exertions  of  that 
party  a  law  was  passed  in  1826  abolishing  all  titles 
of  nobility  and  restricting  parents  with  regard  to  the 
distribution  of  property  among  their  children,  thus 
striking  a  blow  at  the  Spanish  institution  of  mayo- 
rasgo,  or  primogeniture.  In  1827  the  natural  effects 
of  the  Spanish  domination  upon  the  popular  character 
asserted  themselves.  An  insurrection  broke  out, 
which  was  a  manifestation  of  the  "  Old  Spanish " 
feeling.  It  was  headed  by  two  Franciscan  friars,  who 
vainly  expected  to  restore  the  Spanish  rule,  and  who 
paid  for  their  temerity  with  their  lives.  The  incident 
excited  a  strong  anti-Spanish  feeling ;  and  in  March, 
1828,  the  Federalists,  who  had  always  been  more  or 
less  opposed  to  allowing  the  Spaniards  to  remain  in 
the  country,  secured  a  decree  for  their  expulsion. 

Shortly  afterwards  another  characteristic  insurrec- 
tion occurred.  It  was  headed  by  an  obscure  array 
officer,  who  "  pronounced  "  in  Otumba,  and  put  forth 
a  "plan"  for  a  new  constitution,  and  a  demand  for 
the  dismissal  of  the  Ministers  of  Victoria's  cabinet 
because  of  their  alleged  lack  of  virtue  and  capacity; 
for  the  expulsion  of  the  American  Minister,  Mr. 
Poinsett;  and  for  the  extinction  of  Freemasonry. 
The  feeling  against  Mr.  Poinsett  was  due  to  the 
active  and  prominent  part  he  had  taken  in  the  institu- 
tion of  the  York  Lodges  of  Freemasons  in  Mexico 

Freemasonry  had  been  introduced  into  Mexico 
in  1820,  at  the  time  of  the  restoration  of  the  Consti- 


SANTA  ANNA   AND  CENTRALISM  111 

tution  of  1812  in  Spain.  It  was  derived  from  the 
Scotch  branch  of  the  order,  and  was  called  Escoces. 
Many  of  the  "  Old  Spaniards,"  the  Creole  aristocracy, 
and  the  privileged  classes  —  the  Serviles  of  the  later 
days  of  Spanish  rule  in  Mexico  and  the  "  Borbon- 
istas  "  of  the  early  days  of  Mexican  Independence  — 
v\"ere  initiated  into  its  mysteries.  In  1822  Mr.  Poin- 
sett came  to  Mexico  as  Envoy  from  the  United 
States.  He  brought  with  him  a  charter  for  a  Grand 
Lodge  of  York  Masons,  and  some  of  the  leaders 
of  the  Republican  party  were  initiated  into  its 
rites.  The  names  of  the  two  rival  lodges  became 
the  rallying-cries  of  the  contesting  political  par- 
ties. The  "  Escoceses,"  consistent  with  their  Servile 
Borbonist  traditions,  became  Centralists;  while  the 
"  Yorkinos  "  were  identified  with  the  Federalist  party. 
The  "  Yorkinos,"  against  whom  the  "  Plan  "  of  1828 
was  launched,  protested  that  the  movement  was  in- 
tended "  to  prevent  the  banishment  of  the  Spaniards? 
to  destroy  Republican  institutions,  and  to  place  the 
country  under  the  yoke  of  the  Borbons." 

It  was,  in  fact,  time  for  the  two  rival  branches 
of  Freemasonry  to  try  conclusions  ;  for  by  the  end  of 
the  year  1826  the  "  Yorkinos  "  had  a  majority  in  Con- 
gress and  in  the  State  legislatures.  They  composed 
the  party  of  advanced  liberal  ideas,  and  hence  the 
popular  party.  The  "  Escoceses  "  were  losing  ground 
in  the  popular  favor,  were  envious  of  their  more 
prosperous  rivals,  and  were  determined  to  save 
themselves  and  ruin  the  "Yorkinos,"  if  possible,  by 
pronouncing  against  all  secret  societies.  It  was  one 
of  the  earliest  of  the  numerous  petty  quarrels  which 
are  dignified  by  the  title  of  "  Revolutions  "  in  Mexi- 
can liistory. 


112  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

The  scene  was  characteristic  of  Mexico,  and  of 
human  nature  as  exemplified  among  the  Mexicans. 
General  Bravo,  the  Vice-President  of  the  Republic, 
was  a  leader  of  the  "  Escoceses,"  having  been  the 
Centralist  candidate  for  the  Presidency.  He  issued 
a  bombastic  proclamation,  denouncing  the  President 
as  being  connected  with  the  "  Yorkinos,"  and  declar- 
ing that  as  a  last  resort  he  appealed  to  arms  to  rid 
the  Republic  of  the  "  pest "  of  secret  societies ;  and 
that  he  proposed  never  to  give  up  the  contest  until 
he  had  exterminated  them  root  and  branch.  Pre- 
viously, he  had  been  an  advocate  of  law  and  order. 
He  now  made  common  cause  with  the  insurrection 
already  in  progress,  and  took  up  a  position  with  some 
troops  at  Tulancingo,  thirty  miles  north  of  the  city 
of  Mexico.  Such  a  challenge  as  he  gave  is  usually 
accepted  in  Mexico. 

By  the  action  of  his  Vice-President,  Victoria  was 
compelled  openly  to  declare  his  affiliation  with  the 
"  Yorkinos,"  and  to  seek  their  aid.  He  appointed 
Guerrero  chief  of  the  government  forces,  and  sent  him 
out  to  attack  Bravo.  An  engagement  occurred  in 
January,  1828,  in  which  Guerrero's  forces  killed  eight 
of  the  insurgents,  wounded  six,  and  took  Bravo  and 
his  party  prisoners.  Bravo  and  some  of  his  followers 
were  exiled  by  Congress,  but  were  subsequently  al- 
lowed to  return  to  their  homes.  Thus  perished  the 
"Escoceses"  as  a  political  power.  Both  candidates 
for  the  Presidency  at  the  next  election  were  "  York- 
inos," which  caused  dissensions  in  their  own  ranks ; 
and  the  "  Yorkinos,"  as  a  political  party  distinct  from 
the  Federalists,  did  not  long  survive  their  triumph 
over  the  "  Escoceses." 

In  that  election  the  Federalists  began  to  call  them- 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  113 

selves  High  Liberals,  or  Radicals.  Their  candidate 
for  the  Presidency  was  the  old  Revolutionary  hero, 
General  Vicente  Guerrero.  Mr.  Poinsett,  the  Ameri- 
can Minister  (wlio  seems  to  have  taken  more  than  a 
proper  amount  of  interest  in  the  politics  of  Mexico), 
threw  the  weight  of  his  influence  into  the  scale  with 
Guerrero.  The  Centralists,  combined  with  the  Con- 
servatives and  Moderates,  put  forward  as  their  candi- 
date General  Manuel  Gomez  Pedraza,  a  former  friend 
of  Iturbide,  and  the  Minister  of  War  under  Victoria. 
He  was  a  man  of  strong  character,  though  somewhat 
arbitrary,  and  for  this  reason  unpopular  in  the  army. 
Nevertheless,  under  the  influence  of  the  Victoria  ad- 
ministration, and  by  the  aid  of  the  "  Old  Spanish  " 
element,  he  received  a  small  majority  of  the  votes  in 
the  State  legislatures. 

The  disappointed  Liberals  appealed  to  Congress  to 
reverse  the  decision  of  the  legislatures.  They  suc- 
ceeded in  getting  a  majority  of  the  deputies  of  the 
lower  House  to  vote  for  the  reversal,  but  in  the  Senate 
the  majority  voted  to  sustain  the  election  of  the 
legislatures.  The  partisans  of  Guerrero  thereupon 
established  what  proved  a  dangerous  precedent,  and 
appealed  to  that  always  potent  factor  in  Mexican 
politics  —  arms.  The  Governor  of  the  State  of  Mex- 
ico, and  other  pronounced  Liberals,  espoused  the 
cause  of  Guerrero,  in  a  pronunciameuto  issued  in 
November,  and  carried  the  war  directly  to  the  Na- 
tional Palace.  For  tliirty  days  the  capital  was  the 
scene  of  insurrection.  The  Liberal  leaders,  following 
precedents  established  by  both  sides  in  the  wars  for 
Independence,  executed  several  of  the  prisoners  taken. 

The  whole  course  of  Mexican  history  was  now 
changed.      General   Santa   Anna,    who   had  been   a 


114  FBOM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

leader  in  the  movement  for  the  overthrow  of  the  Em- 
pire of  Iturbide  and  the  establishment  of  the  Repub- 
lic, again  came  into  prominence.  He  claimed  that 
the  election  had  not  shown  the  real  will  of  the  people, 
and  sought  to  give  it  opportunity  for  more  genuine 
expression  by  taking  possession  of  the  Castle  of 
Perote,  a  strongly  fortified  position  on  the  eastern 
slope  of  the  Sierras,  commanding  the  road  from  the 
capital  to  Vera  Cruz.  He  published  an  address  declar- 
ing that  he  had  taken  it  upon  himself,  by  proclaiming 
Guerrero  President,  to  correct  the  fraud  by  which 
Pedraza's  election  had  been  procured,  and  to  main- 
tain the  character  and  assert  the  dignity  of  the  Mexi- 
can Nation. 

A  few  days  later,  President  Victoria  issued  a  procla- 
mation declaring  Santa  Anna's  acts  treasonable  and 
calling  upon  the  States  and  the  citizens  of  the  Repub- 
lic to  aid  in  arresting  Santa  Anna  and  his  followers. 
The  doughty  General  was  besieged  in  Perote,  and  a 
battle  was  fought  there.  Santa  Anna  escaped,  but 
was  pursued  and  captured.  But  with  that  fickleness 
which  has  ever  been  a  trait  in  the  Mexican  political 
character,  public  sentiment  suddenly  veered  around, 
and  the  command  of  the  army  that  had  captured  him 
was  given  to  Santa  Anna. 

Anarchy  prevailed  in  the  capital,  and  was  attended 
by  the  destruction  of  much  property  there  and  in  all 
the  large  cities  of  the  country.  The  Constitution  was 
tossed  aside.  Pedraza  escaped  by  flight,  first  sending 
in  his  resignation  to  Congress.  It  was  amidst  confu- 
sion such  as  this  that  the  administration  of  Guadalupe 
Victoria  came  to  an  end ;  and  it  was  to  be  many  years 
before  Mexico  was  to  see  another  President  fulfil  his 
constitutional  term  of  four  years. 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  115 

In  January,  1829,  Congress,  acting  not  as  a  repre- 
sentative body  and  within  the  restrictions  imposed 
upon  it  by  the  Constitution,  but  as  the  instrument  of 
a  political  faction,  undertook  to  adjust  the  Presi- 
dential question.  Tlie  partisans  of  Guerrero  held  the 
City  of  Mexico.  They  changed  their  former  war- 
cry  for  the  expulsion  of  the  Spaniards  to  "  Long  live 
Guerrero,"  and  they  proclaimed  him  President  by  a 
pronunciamento.  Congress  was  almost  wholly  under 
their  influence,  and  promptly  declared  the  election  of 
Pedraza  null  and  void,  and  elected  Guerrero  in  his 
place,  with  General  Anastasio  Bustamante  as  Vice- 
President. 

Bustamante  had  formerly  been  a  pronounced  "Itur- 
bidista  "  ;  but  after  the  fall  of  his  chief,  he  had  allied 
himself  with  the  Federalists.  Though  now  a  "  York- 
ino,"  he  was  virtually  a  Centralist.  He  was  a  native 
of  Mexico,  had  been  the  family  physician  of  F^lix 
Maria  Calleja  del  Rey  when  the  latter  was  Military 
Commander  of  San  Luis  Potosi,  and  when  the  emeute 
of  Iturrigaray  occurred,  in  1808,  he  had  received  a 
commission  in  a  regiment  of  militia  composed  of  the 
sons  of  wealthy  Creoles.  He  served  with  distinction 
in  all  of  the  campaigns  of  Calleja  against  the  Revolu- 
tionists until  1819,  and  rose  to  the  rank  of  Colonel. 
He  declared  for  the  Plan  de  Iguala  when  that  was 
proclaimed,  a,nd  gained  the  confidence  of  Iturbide, 
who  made  him  Commander-in-chief  of  Cavalry  and 
a  member  of  the  Provisional  Junta.  He  was  Field- 
Marshal  under  the  Regency,  and  "  Captain-General  of 
the  Eastern  and  Western  Provinces  of  the  Interior  " 
under  the  Empire.  After  the  overthrow  of  the  Em- 
pire, he  was  among  those  who  held  the  Monarchists 
responsible  for  Iturbide's  misfortunes,  and  so  allied 


116  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIG 

himself  with  the  Federalist  party.  He  was  appointed 
Military  Governor  of  a  Province  by  President  Vic- 
toria, with  the  highest  rank  in  the  Mexican  army  — 
that  of  General  of  a  Division. 

Such  was  the  man  of  rather  doubtful  political  prin- 
ciples, but  of  undoubted  intellectual  ability,  who  was 
now  linked  with  Guerrero,  the  stanch  Federalist 
and  Republican,  in  the  Government  of  Mexico.  Guer- 
rero took  possession  of  the  Presidential  office  on  the 
first  of  April,  1829.  He  favored  the  "  Yorkinos  "  in 
making  up  his  cabinet,  though  his  appointees  were 
of  rather  dubious  politics.  Lucas  Alaman,  the  theo- 
retical Monarchist,  vv^as  made  his  Premier ;  and  Santa 
Anna,  the  future  Centralist  and  Absolutist,  was  made 
his  Minister  of  War. 

This  strange  Cabinet  was  intended  to  be  conciliatory, 
and  a  compromise  with  the  various  political  factions ; 
but  it  failed  to  restore  order  to  the  Republic.  Yet 
despite  the  continuance  of  the  chaotic  state  in  which 
the  new  administration  found  affairs,  and  the  dis- 
organization which  fettered  every  branch  of  the  gov- 
ernment in  the  latter  part  of  1829,  Guerrero  was  able 
to  place  himself  on  record  as  a  reformer  and  as  a 
friend  of  human  liberty.  He  decreed  several  impor- 
tant progressive  measures,  one  of  which  was  the  total 
abolishment  of  slavery.  The  decree  was  signed  on 
the  fifteenth  of  September,  and  proclaimed  the  next 
day,  being  the  anniversary  of  Hidalgo's  Crrito.  That 
the  law  met  with  opposition  in  Coahuila  and  Texas, 
and  was  never  fully  enforced,  does  not  detract  from 
the  honor  due  to  Guerrero  and  his  administration  for 
furthering  such  a  cause. 

The  President  and  his  Vice-President,  however, 
were  not  in  full  political  accord,  and  it  was  not  long 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  117 

before  an  opportunity  came  for  the  latter  to  exhibit 
his  opposition  and  jealousy.  In  July,  Spanish  troops 
from  Cuba  landed  in  Tampico,  ostensibly  to  retaliate 
upon  Mexico  for  banishing  the  Spaniards  from  the 
country,  but  really  to  make  an  effort  to  regain  the 
lost  Spanish  provinces.  Guerrero  was  invested  by 
Congress  with  dictatorial  powers,  and  instituted  a 
vigorous  and  successful  campaign  against  the  invad- 
ers. He  proved,  however,  disinclined  to  relinquish 
the  dictatorial  powers  that  had  been  conferred  upon 
liim  for  meeting  an  especial  emergency,  even  after  the 
emergency  had  been  successfully  met.  Bustamante, 
his  Vice-President,  thus  found  an  opportunity  to 
charge  him  with  a  desire  to  exercise  arbitrary  and 
unconstitutiona]  powers. 

Santa  Anna's  opposition  to  Bustamante  was  mild  at 
the  first,  and  he  did  not  allow  his  relations  with  the 
administration  of  Guerrero  to  interfere,  with  his  early 
desertion  to  Bustamante ;  and  his  "  Plan  de  Jalapa  " 
brought  about  a  very  interesting  situation.  Busta- 
mante was  in  command  of  troops  at  Jalapa,  held 
in  reserve  in  the  campaign  that  had  just  closed.  By 
the  "  Plan  de  Jalapa,"  which  Santa  Anna  put  forth, 
these  troops  virtually  rebelled  against  the  govermnent 
of  Guerrero.  Leaving  Jos^  Maria  Bocanegra  in  the 
capital  as  Acting  President  by  the  provision  of  Con- 
gress, Guerrero  set  out  to  quell  the  disturbance  in 
Jalapa.  Thereupon  Bocanegra,  taking  possession  in 
December,  1829,  usurped  the  full  powers  of  the  Presi- 
dency, and  Guerrero  was  forced  to  abandon  the  office 
to  be  a  bone  of  contention  between  Bocanegra  and 
Bustamante. 

Bocanegra  was  President  for  only  five  days.  He 
was  ousted  by  a  pronunciamento  headed  by  General 


118  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

Luis  Quintanar.  Pending  the  full  establishment  of 
the  government  of  Bustamante,  the  President  of  the 
Supreme  Court  of  Justice,  Pedro  Velez  (whose  con- 
stitutional right  to  succeed  to  the  Presidency  in  case 
of  a  vacancy  in  that  office  appears  to  have  been  over- 
looked until  then)  took  charge  of  the  Presidential 
office,  and  associated  with  him  two  persons  designated 
by  the  Cabinet  or  Government  Council.  They  were 
General  Quintanar,  the  author  of  the  pronunciamento, 
and  Lucas  Alaman. 

Thus  was  Mexico  over-supplied  with  rulers,  and  the 
question  of  the  constitutional  status  of  the  several 
claimants  to  the  chief  magistracy  was  one  that  was 
well-nigh  impossible  to  decide.  Congress  found  it  a 
puzzling  question,  when  it  tried  to  settle  it.  It  had 
no  pov/er  to  declare  the  election  of  Guerrero  illegal, 
for  that  would  be  to  render  a  like  judgment  in  the  case 
of  his  Vice-President,  who  was  in  the  same  category 
with  liim.  So  it  was  declared,  as  the  only  way  out 
of  the  difficulty,  that  Guerrero  was  "  morally  in- 
capacitated." He  was  formally  deposed  upon  those 
grounds,  and  Anastasio  Bustamante  was  elevated  to 
the  Presidency. 

Bustamante  took  up  the  reins  of  government  on  the 
first  of  January,  1830,  and  a  brief  season  of  quiet  en- 
sued. He  retained  Alaman  as  his  Minister  of  Foreign 
and  Domestic  Relations,  —  practically  the  Premier- 
ship of  the  Cabinet.  The  administration  was  sup- 
ported by  the  military,  the  clergy,  and  the  wealthy 
Creoles,  for  whose  advantage  it  existed.  It  should, 
however,  be  said,  that  Alaman,  the  able  Minister  of 
Foreign  and  Domestic  Relations,  set  out  upon  the 
discharge  of  his  duties  with  the  determination  to  re- 
form some  of  the  branches  of   the  government,  and 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  119 

unquestionably  began  a  new  era  of  public  order  and 
morality  in  1830  and  1831.  This  was,  unfortunately, 
but  temporary  ;  and  things  went  back  to  their  former 
condition  after  Alaman  left  office. 

Guerrero,  upon  abandoning  the  Presidency,  retired 
to  private  life  upon  his  hacienda  among  the  mountains 
of  the  south.  There  were  some  people  who,  recaUing 
the  part  he  had  taken  in  the  struggle  for  Independ- 
ence, resented  the  outrage  that  they  felt  had  been 
perpetrated  upon  him.  There  were  demonstrations 
in  his  favor,  sufficiently  open  to  alarm  the  adminis- 
tration ;  and  a  member  of  Bustamante's  cabinet  began 
to  plot  the  downfall  of  the  Revolutionary  hero.  Par- 
don was  offered  to  six  criminals  under  sentence  of 
death,  on  condition  that  they  would  make  it  their 
duty  to  assassinate  Guerrero.  Learning  of  these  ef- 
forts upon  his  life,  Guerrero  retired  still  further  into 
the  mountains.  In  the  spring  of  1830,  the  old  Revo- 
lutionary hero  ventured  from  his  hiding-place  and 
attempted  to  establish  his  government  in  Valladolid. 
He  was  driven  thence  by  government  troops,  to  Aca- 
pulco ;  and  at  the  latter  place  he  fell  into  the  hands 
of  his  enemies.  Being  entertained  at  a  complimentary 
dinner  on  board  a  Sardinian  ship  in  the  harbor,  the 
captain  of  the  ship,  who  was  his  host,  betrayed  him, 
for  a  bribe,  to  Bustamante's  Secretary  of  War.  He 
was  taken  to  Oaxaca,  tried  by  a  court-martial,  and  in 
February,  1831,  was  executed. 

Rightly,  the  name  of  Vicente  Guerrero  belongs  in 
the  list  of  Mexican  heroes  and  of  the  martyrs  to  the 
cause  of  good  government  in  that  much  misgoverned 
land.  He  was  of  low  birth  and  humble  parentage, 
belonging  to  that  mixed  caste  which  under  Spanish 
rule  had  no  political  or  social  rights  whatever.     It 


120  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

had  been  a  matter  of  deep  personal  interest  to  him, 
therefore,  to  fight  in  the  wars  for  Independence ;  and, 
as  we  have  seen,  so  great  was  the  rank  to  which  he 
attained,  and  so  brilliant  his  success  in  those  wars, 
that  it  was  necessary  for  Iturbide's  plans  to  secure  his 
allegiance  and  cooperation. 

Yet  he  was  ignored  by  Iturbide,  under  the  Regency 
and  in  the  Empire.  He  was  one  of  the  men  to  whom 
was  intrusted,  tentatively,  the  charge  of  the  govern- 
ment after  the  fall  of  Iturbide.  I^e  maintained  his 
former  rank  in  the  army  of  the  Republic.  Generally 
he  acquitted  himself  with  credit  in  whatever  station 
he  was  placed.  He  was  bold,  honest,  and  frank; 
but  he  was  not  intellectually  strong,  and  was  much 
better  qualified  for  war  than  politics.  The  charges 
upon  which  he  was  deposed  from  the  Presidency 
were  notoriously  unjust.  His  unconstitutional  strug- 
gle for  the  Presidential  office  was  certainly  not  credit- 
able, and  was  fraught  with  deplorable  consequences  to 
the  nation  —  retarding  its  progress  toward  enlighten- 
ment and  self-government.  His  career  shows  him  to 
have  been  an  apt  scholar  in  the  school  of  Spanish 
politics,  and  marked  him  as  one  of  the  restless,  am- 
bitious class,  so  prominent  in  the  history  of  Mexico. 
During  his  brief  term  of  political  office,  Guerrero 
exhibited  liberal  ideas  in  advance  of  his  times.  His 
humble  origin  made  him  hated  by  the  Spaniards  and 
the  aristocratic  Creoles ;  while  the  clergy  hated  him 
for  his  pronounced  Republicanism.  He  was  there- 
fore, from  the  beginning  of  his  public  career,  doomed 
to  failure.  The  treacherous  manner  of  his  death,  re- 
minding us  of  that  of  Iturbide,  with  whose  life  his  own 
had  been  so  fatefuUy  linked,  disposes  us  to  regard  his 
faults  with  leniency  and  his  virtues  with  respect. 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  121 

The  tranquillity  purchased  by  the  death  of  Guerrero 
did  not  last  long.  In  January,  1832,  Santa  Anna  pre- 
tended dissatisfaction  with  the  arbitrary  measures  of 
Bustamante,  whom  he  had  formerly  supported,  and 
demanded  that  the  cabinet  be  reorganized.  He  led  a 
revolt  in  Vera  Cruz,  declaring  himself  in  favor  of  the 
restoration  of  the  Constitution  and  the  enforcement 
of  the  laws  passed  in  accordance  therewith.  Such  a 
proclamation  naturally  drew  to  liis  standard  the  ad- 
herents of  the  Federal  system  of  government,  and 
Bustamante  in  person  took  the  field  in  command  of 
the  army  which  was  supposed  to  be  intent  upon  crush- 
ing out  this  new  menace  to  his  administration.  Con- 
gress, meanwhile,  appointed  General  Melchor  Musquiz 
Acting  President.  He  occupied  the  Presidential  chair 
from  the  fourteenth  of  August  until  Christmas  Eve, 
while  Bustamante  was  maintaining  his  struggle  with 
the  insurgents  in  Vera  Cruz. 

The  conflict  between  Bustamante  and  Santa  Anna 
resulted  in  the  defeat  of  the  former  near  Puebla,  and 
the  "  Capitulation  of  Zavaleta "  was  signed  on  the 
twenty-third  of  September.  By  this  document,  Busta- 
mante agreed  to  resign  the  Presidency  in  favor  of 
General  Manuel  Gomez  Pedraza,  in  whose  interests 
Santa  Anna  claimed  to  have  been  fighting.  The  lat- 
ter's  advocacy  of  Pedraza  was  based  upon  the  elec-' 
tion  of  1828,  notwithstanding  the  fact  that  Santa 
Anna  had  himself  been  the  cause  of  the  overthrow  of 
that  election,  and  of  the  exile  of  Pedraza,  whom  he 
now  declared  entitled  to  the  Presidential  office.  It 
was  not  by  any  means  the  first  manifestation  of  incon- 
sistency in  the  political  character  of  Santa  Anna; 
nor  was  it  to  be  the  last. 

General  Pedraza   was   a   man    of    elevated   ideas, 


122  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

severe  morals,  and  ardent  patriotism,  —  considering 
the  times,  the  country,  and  the  circumstances  in 
which  he  lived.  He  was  distinguished  for  wise  and 
intelligent  measures  in  his  former  positions  in  the 
government,  although  his  arbitrary  management  of 
the  War  portfolio  in  the  cabinet  of  Victoria  had  been 
an  offence  to  the  military  class  whose  favor  it  was 
generally  deemed  necessary  to  court.  His  present 
support  was  expected  to  be  derived  from  the  Con- 
servatives, who  were  apparently  in  the  ascendant. 
He  was  already  in  the  country,  ready  to  take  charge 
of  the  national  government  in  Puebla,  on  the  twenty- 
fourth  of  September,  the  day  after  the  signing  of 
the  Capitulation  of  Zavaleta.  In  liis  inaugural  ad- 
dress he  reviewed  the  events  of  the  preceding  years, 
eulogized  Santa  Anna,  —  who,  though  once  his  foe, 
was  now  his  friend  and  supporter,  —  and  by  his 
references  to  him  as  his  predestined  successor  he  dis- 
closed the  purpose  of  his  own  brief  elevation  to  the 
power  which  he  had  once  resigned.  This  purpose 
was  intended  ultimately  to  serve  the  personal  ends  of 
Santa  Anna,  rather  than  to  serve  the  State  and  the 
people. 

At  the  end  of  three  months  a  new  election  was 
held.  It  was  the  proper  time  for  the  third  election 
under  the  Constitution.  General  Mier  y  Teran,  the 
old  Revolutionary  leader,  was  the  candidate  of  the 
Centralists,  or  Conservatives ;  and  General  Bravo 
(strange  to  say !)  stood  for  the  Liberals  whom  he  had 
previously  opposed.  Bravo  received  the  votes  of  a 
majority  of  the  States ;  and  from  mortification  Mier  y 
Teran  committed  suicide.  These  "  sad  circumstances  " 
were  accepted  by  Congress  (which  was  Centralist  or 
Conservative  in  its  constituency)  as  a  pretext  for  set- 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  123 

ting  aside  the  election  by  the  State  legislatures  ;  and 
this  act,  though  in  accord  with  the  Constitutional  pro- 
vision, was  distasteful  to  a  Centralist  Congress.  In 
the  revision  of  the  election  proceedings,  Congress 
promptly  returned  General  Antonio  Lopez  de  Santa 
Anna  as  President,  and  Valentine  Gomez  Farias  as 
Vice-President. 

There  was  a  wide  difference  between  the  characters 
and  careers  of  these  two  men  into  whose  hands  the 
government  of  Mexico  was  now  committed,  as  well  as 
of  the  parties  they  represented  and  the  political  ideas 
they  respectively  advanced.  Santa  Anna  was  the  son 
of  a  wealthy  Creole  who  possessed  large  estates  lying 
on  the  road  between  Vera  Cruz  and  Jalapa.  At  a 
very  early  age  he  had  raised  on  his  estates  a  body  of 
light  cavalry,  composed  of  farmers  and  Indians ;  and 
after  distinguishing  liimself  with  these  in  guerrilla  war- 
fare, and  commending  himself  by  his  courage  and  ad- 
dress to  the  Mexican  people,  he  had  become  a  supporter 
of  Iturbide.  His  wealth,  his  handsome  person,  win- 
ning manners,  and  fine  command  of  language  (which 
latter  accomplishment  seems  to  have  been  afterwards 
exercised  chiefly  in  writing  manifestos  and  similar 
documents  designed  to  hoodwink  liis  countrymen  and 
deceive  them  as  to  his  political  intentions),  all  tliese 
peculiarly  fitted  him  to  be  a  party  leader  in  Mexico. 
And  as  he  was  never  troubled  by  any  scruples  of  con- 
science, or  by  any  respect  for  the  truth,  he  entered 
with  all  the  eagerness  of  a  gambler  upon  the  political 
game  being  played  in  his  native  land,  in  which  the 
highest  interests  of  his  country  were  the  stakes. 

From  the  first,  Santa  Anna  showed  himself  ready 
to  espouse  any  cause  which  promised  to  advance  his 
personal  interests.     He  had  not  long  remained  faithful 


124  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

to  Iturbide;  and  upon  the  removal  of  that  political 
schemer  from  power,  Santa  Anna  had  not  been  more 
obedient  to  Congress  when  it  assumed  direction  of 
affairs,  or  to  the  constitutional  government  when  that 
was  establislied.  His  mind  was  fertile  in  the  device 
of  plans  and  pronunciamentos  of  the  most  varied  and 
even  contradictory  character.  He  was  so  thoroughly 
acquainted  with  the  disposition  of  his  fellow-country- 
men, and  so  fertile  in  resources,  that  he  proved  him- 
self the  beau-ideal  of  a  guerrilla  chieftain.  It  was  in 
vain  that  apparently  superior  forces  were  sent  against 
him,  whenever  he  chose  to  "  pronounce  "  against  the 
government.  By  stratagems,  of  which  he  was  an  ac- 
complished master,  he  was  usually  enabled  to  elude 
them.  His  influence  and  popularity  were  at  times 
invincible. 

He  was  ignorant  of  the  science  of  government, 
never  able  to  submit  himself  to  any  recognized  politi- 
cal authority,  without  fixed  principles,  arbitrary,  rest- 
less, ambitious,  adventurous,  anxious  for  power  yet 
using  power  when  once  obtained  for  his  own  ends, 
though  it  might  be  for  the  ruin  of  his  country.  After 
his  personal  interest  had  been  gratified,  his  next 
thought  was  always  the  Church,  for  which  he  had  a 
superstitious  and  not  altogether  disinterested  regard. 
The  Church  was  by  this  time  fully  identified  with 
the  Conservative  or  Centralist  party.  Although  re- 
peatedly able  to  deceive  his  fellow-countrymen  into 
believing  him  otherwise,  Santa  Anna  was  always 
thoroughly  in  sympathy  with  that  party. 

Yet  Santa  Anna  was  but  a  type,  —  a  conspicuous 
type  indeed,  but  still  a  type,  —  of  the  politician  of 
those  days,  not  only  in  Mexico  but  throughout  all 
Spanish   America;    brought   up   under  the   political 


SANTA   ANNA   AND  CENTRALISM  125 

training  offered  by  Spain  in  her  colonial  government ; 
depending  for  success  upon  the  strength  of  an  army 
for  the  moment  under  his  control,  or  upon  chicane 
and  bribery;  one  to  whom  no  constitution  furnished  a 
law  of  restraint.  The  life  of  Santa  Anna  admirably 
illustrates  the  political  condition  of  Mexico  during 
the  early  years  of  the  Republic.  His  plots  against 
the  government  began  during  the  First  Empire. 
They  continued  almost  to  the  time  of  his  death,  in 
1876,  when  he  had  reached  the  age  of  eighty. 

Gomez  Farias,  the  Vice-President,  was,  on  the  other 
hand,  a  high  Liberal,  —  honorable,  intelligent,  and  of 
thoroughly  democratic  ideas.  As  such,  he  was  a  type 
and  forerunner  of  a  new  era  that  was  dawning  upon 
Mexico  —  a  type  of  the  new  statesman,  of  whom  other 
examples  were  soon  to  come  into  view.  He  was  a 
patriot  as  well  as  a  statesman,  and  with  him  began 
the  active  effort  to  establish  liberal  ideas  and  firm 
constitutional  rule  in  Mexico.  His  name  appears  in 
the  record  of  every  important  patriotic  movement 
since  the  Revolution.  He  was  a  deputy  to  the  earli- 
est Congresses ;  he  was  a  defender  of  popular  liberties, 
and  always  ready  to  stand  by  any  one  who  would  take 
a  step  toward  the  advancement  of  popular  government. 

This  eminent  statesman  was  a  native  of  Guadala- 
jara. He  was  largely  seH-taught,  but  was  skilled  in 
medicine  and  science,  and  at  the  time  of  his  elevation 
to  the  Vice-Presidency  was  in  his  fifty-second  year. 
He  had  sacrificed  a  fortune  in  the  cause  of  Inde- 
pendence, had  organized  a  battalion  in  the  army  of 
Hidalgo,  and  had  sat  as  a  deputy  in  the  first  Congress 
of  the  Republic.  Under  the  Constitution  of  1824,  he 
had  organized  the  State  of  Zacatecas.  He  was  active 
in  promulgating  the  liberal  ideas  then  beginning  to 


126  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

gain  a  liearing  in  the  land.  He  was  now  joined  in 
the  govermnent  to  a  person  of  almost  directly  oppo- 
site character  and  political  aims,  because,  under  the 
exceedingly  pernicious  constitutional  provision,  the 
Vice-Presidency  was  conferred  upon  the  candidate 
for  the  Presidential  office  receiving  next  to  the  high- 
est number  of  votes,  and  he,  of  course,  was  of  the 
party  opposing  the  successful  candidate  for  the  Presi- 
dency. The  provision  was  an  apparently  fair  one,  but 
in  practice  it  worked  out  badly  in  every  case. 

These  two  men  were  installed  in  their  respective 
offices  on  the  sixteenth  of  May,  1832,  and  alternated 
in  ruling  the  destinies  of  the  nation  until  January, 
1835,  when  a  revolution  occurred  which  will  claim 
our  attention  in  its  proper  place.  It  was  character- 
istic of  Santa  Anna  that,  with  all  his  love  of  power, 
he  disliked  the  exercise  of  it  in  the  appointed  way, 
and  was  inclined  to  relinquish  the  responsibilities  of 
office  to  a  deputy  whenever  he  could  find  one ;  and  he 
interfered  with  his  deputy  in  such  a  case  only  when 
the  deputy  acted  independently,  and  not  in  accordance 
with  his  principal's  ideas.  Santa  Anna's  idea  of  gov- 
ernment was  to  occupy  some  secluded  place  where  he 
could  wield  the  supreme  power  entirely  unseen  by  the 
world,  and  to  possess  some  willing  tool,  who  remained 
in  the  plain  view  of  the  people,  and  would  bear  the 
odium  of  any  unpopular  measure,  while  Santa  Anna 
was  ready  to  appear  at  any  time,  to  take  the  credit  for 
any  popular  measure,  or  to  check  his  deputy  should 
he  transcend  his  supposed  powers. 

In  accordance  with  this  plan  of  governing  by 
deputy,  Santa  Anna,  on  the  first  of  April,  1833,  re- 
tired from  the  caj)ital  to  his  hacienda  of  Mango  de 
Clava,  on  the  road  between  Jalapa  and  Vera  Cruz, 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  127 

leaving  the  government  in  the  hands  of  Vice-Presi- 
dent Gomez  Farias.  On  the  first  of  June  following, 
a  shrewd  observer  of  political  affairs  might  have  dis- 
covered the  object  he  had  in  view  in  thus  relinquish- 
ing the  exercise  of  the  Presidential  functions  and 
retiring  from  the  public  view.  On  that  day,  General 
Duran  pronounced  and  put  forth  the  "Plan  de  San 
Agustin,"  in  favor  of  the  Church  and  Army,  and  de- 
claring Santa  Anna  "  Supreme  Dictator  of  Mexico," 
There  can  be  but  little  doubt  that  Santa  Anna  had 
instigated  this  movement,  preferring  to  accomplish 
his  purposes  by  an  indirect  and  dramatic  method 
rather  than  by  openly  announcing  them  wliile  in  the 
discharge  of  the  office  of  Chief  Magistrate. 

Santa  Anna  resumed  the  Presidency,  appointed 
General  Mariano  Arista  his  second  in  military  com- 
mand, and  went  with  him  to  suppress  the  revolt  of 
Duran.  They  had  not  proceeded  far  before  Arista 
declared  in  favor  of  the  "  Plan  de  San  Agustin,"  se- 
cured the  person  of  the  President,  and  proclaimed  him 
Dictator.  News  of  this  movement  was  received  with 
enthusiasm  by  the  military  in  the  capital,  and  the  air 
was  filled  with  shouts  of  "  Santa  Anna  for  Dictator." 
The  most  curious  pliase  of  the  incident  is  that  it 
should  have  deceived  any  one.  But  the  Mexican 
people  were  always  susceptible  subjects  for  Santa 
Anna's  duplicity. 

Gomez  Farias,  however,  rallied  the  Federalists,  and 
compelled  the  President  to  declare  himself  more  i^osi- 
tively  against  the  insurgents.  Santa  Anna  thereupon 
pretended  to  make  an  escape  from  his  captors,  re- 
turned to  the  capital,  and  compelled  the  surrender  of 
the  insurgents.  He  pardoned  Arista  and  banished 
Duran.     The  Mexican   people,   too  readily  imposed 


128  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

upon  by  such  theatrical  play,  hailed  him  upon  his 
return  to  the  capital  as  the  champion  of  Federahsm. 
He  left  the  Presidency  again  in  the  hands  of  Gomez 
Farias,  and  again  retired  to  Mango  de  Clava. 

Gomez  Farias,  thus  left  to  handle  the  reins  of 
government,  embraced  the  opportunity  to  put  in  prac- 
tice some  of  the  theories  of  reform  and  popular  gov- 
ernment which  he  had  long  been  cogitating.  The 
liberal  principles  he  sought  to  promulgate  included, 
(1)  the  absolute  liberty  of  the  press ;  (2)  the  abolish- 
ment of  special  class  privileges,  or  fueros,  as  they  were 
called,  whereby  the  clergy  and  the  army  gained  great 
advantages  over  the  masses  of  the  people ;  (3)  the 
separation  of  Church  and  State,  including  the  sup- 
pression of  monastic  institutions,  and  more  particu- 
larly the  abolition  of  the  right  of  ecclesiastics  to 
interfere  in  secular  affairs ;  (4)  the  restoration  and 
maintenance  of  the  national  credit  by  a  readjustment 
of  the  public  debt ;  (5)  the  improvement  of  the  moral 
condition  of  the  popular  classes,  more  particularly  in- 
struction in  colleges  by  lay  professors  in  place  of,  or 
at  least  in  addition  to,  the  priests,  who  had  heretofore 
claimed  the  sole  right  to  teach,  and  whose  curriculum 
was  far  from  broad  or  edifying ;  (6)  the  abolition  of 
capital  punishment  for  political  offences ;  (7)  laws  en- 
couraging immigration  and  colonization,  and  for  the 
better  protection  of  territorial  property,  and  guaran- 
teeing the  integrity  of  the  national  territory  —  a  dis- 
position having  been  manifested  on  the  part  of  Santa 
Anna  to  alienate  it. 

In  accordance  Avith  this  programme,  Gomez  Farias 
issued  a  decree  abolishing  the  system  of  tithes  levied 
as  a  tax  for  the  support  of  ecclesiastical  institutions ; 
and  another,  enjoining  the  civil  courts  from  maintain- 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  129 

ing  the  binding  force  of  monastic  vows — thus  leav- 
ing members  of  religious  orders  legally  free  to  abandon 
their  convents  if  they  chose  to  do  so.  As  the  head 
of  the  University  faculty,  he  instituted  some  wise  re- 
forms in  that  institution,  and  excluded  the  clergy 
from  teaching  in  educational  institutions  supported  by 
national  funds.  Thus  he  began  the  system  of  govern- 
ment reforms  which  it  took  the  remainder  of  the  nine- 
teenth centuiy  to  see  accomplished. 

These  attempted  reforms  were  not,  of  course,  with- 
out violent  opposition,  and  Gomez  Farias  was  even 
criticised  by  some  of  the  friends  of  his  administration 
for  being  too  timid  on  occasions  when  strong  and 
positive  action  was  needed.  Yet  that  he  was  no  mere 
political  doctrinaire  he  showed  by  some  of  his  more 
vigorous  actions,  —  for  example,  by  consigning  Bus- 
tamante  to  exile  as  a  disturber  of  the  peace  and  quiet 
of  the  country ;  and  by  expelling  the  Spanish  refu- 
gees and  monks,  who,  after  being  driven  out  of  Guate- 
mala and  Central  America,  flocked  to  Mexico,  to  the 
demoralization  of  political  affairs  there. 

AU  this  was  occurring  in  the  early  months  of  1834. 
Meanwhile  Santa  Anna,  the  wily  political  schemer, 
was  busy  in  his  hacienda  of  Mango  de  Clava,  concoct- 
ing the  "  Plan  de  Cuernavaca,"  intended  to  confer 
dictatorial  powers  upon  him  in  the  Presidency  —  in 
fact,  to  do  all  that  the  emeute  of  June,  1833,  had 
failed  to  accomplish.  The  professed  purpose  of  the 
new  "Plan"  was  to  reorganize  the  government,  to 
repeal  certain  laws  offensive  to  the  Church,  to  se- 
cure the  banishment  of  certain  persons  obnoxious  to 
the  Conservatives,  and  to  "  sustain  the  peace  and 
order"  which  were  represented  as  being  threatened 
by  Congress. 


130  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

In  accordance  with  this  programme,  Santa  Anna 
returned  to  office  in  April,  1834,  and  at  once  repu- 
diated the  Federal  principles  he  had  formerly  pre- 
tended to  entertain.  By  a  mihtary  order,  issued  by 
him  as  President,  Congress  was  dissolved,  on  the 
grounds  that  it  had  abused  the  right  of  free  discus- 
sion,—  as  in  fact  it  had  from  Santa  Anna's  point  of 
view,  for  he  had  very  plainly  intimated  that  if  it  did 
not  comply  with  his  wishes  he  would  silence  it  by 
force.  By  another  military  order,  a  new  Congress 
was  assembled,  without  having  so  much  as  a  shadow 
of  constitutionality  to  rest  under.  Pending  its  as- 
sembling, the  entire  government  was  in  the  hands 
of  Santa  Anna,  and  he  used  the  power  thus  obtained 
for  the  destruction  of  the  Constitution  which  at  his 
inauguration  he  had  sworn  to  support  and  defend. 

The  liberal  decrees  of  Gomez  Farias  were  quickly 
annulled,  and  that  able  official  was  deposed  from  the 
Vice-Presidency  without  the  formality  of  an  impeach- 
ment or  trial,  and  was  compelled  to  leave  the  country. 
A  faithful  adherent  of  Santa  Anna  was  found,  in 
General  Miguel  Barragan,  to  take  the  place  of  Gomez 
Farias,  and  to  serve  as  Vice-President  whenever 
Santa  Anna  should  again  see  fit  to  retire  from  the 
capital  and  rule  the  country  by  deputy.  In  a  word, 
the  nation  became  retrogressive  under  the  "  Plan  de 
Cuernavaca,"  and  the  lovers  of  liberal  institutions 
and  good  government  looked  on  with  dismay  but 
without  power  to  interfere.  Mexico  had  already 
gained  a  world-wide  reputation  for  unstable  govern- 
ment and  for  frequent  political  changes.  Its  people 
were  regarded  as  restless  and  revolutionary,  and  in 
some  quarters  as  being  savage  and  uncivilized.  The 
elevation  of  Santa  Anna  to  such  unlimited  power  was 


SANTA   ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  131 

destined  to  confirm  this  evil  reputation.  The  coun- 
try was  agitated  to  the  verge  of  anarchy.  Petitions 
and  declarations  in  favor  of  a  centralized  government, 
emanating  from  the  clergy  and  the  military,  were 
poured  in  upon  the  so-called  "  Constitutional  Con- 
gress," which,  when  finally  convened  in  January, 
1835,  set  out  to  revise  the  Constitution  and  to  bring 
it  into  accord  with  the  ideas  of  the  Conservatives. 
These  petitions  and  declarations  were  received  as  the 
"  Voice  of  the  Nation."  At  the  same  time,  protests 
and  remonstrances  on  behalf  of  the  Federal  Constitu- 
tion, sent  in  by  some  of  the  State  Legislatures  and  by 
the  people,  received  no  further  notice  than  to  involve 
their  supporters  in  persecution  and  imprisonment. 

Congress  asserted  the  principles  of  Centralism  in 
one  of  its  fh'st  acts,  intended  to  reduce  and  disarm  the 
militia  of  the  several  States.  The  State  of  Zacatecas 
refused  to  disband  its  militia,  taking  its  stand  on  the 
rights  vested  in  it  by  the  Constitution  of  1824.  The 
organization  of  that  State  had  been  effected  by  Gomez 
Farias,  and  it. had  imbibed  his  Federal  ideas,  and  was 
always  ready  to  assert  its  sovereign  rights  as  a  State. 
It  was  now  ready  to  resort  to  arms  to  resist  the  over- 
throw of  Federalism.  The  insurrection  which  re- 
sulted was  regarded  as  of  sufficient  importance  for 
Santa  Anna  to  proceed  tliither  in  person  to  put  it 
down. 

A  few  days  later  (May,  1885)  the  "  Plan  de  Toluca  " 
was  promulgated,  whereby  the  Federal  system  was 
declared  changed  into  a  Centralized  govermnent.  A 
new  Constitution  was  adopted  by  Congress,  known 
as  Las  Siete  Leyes  (The  Seven  Laws).  It  was  the 
confirmation  of  the  Centralized  System,  with  but 
one  house  of  Legislature  for  the  entire  country.     The 


182  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

Executive  was  to  be  furnished  with  a  "  Council "  in 
place  of  a  Cabinet.  The  States,  their  legislatures 
wholly  abolished,  were  changed  into  Departments, 
under  the  control  of  Military  Commandants  who 
were  responsible  to  the  chief  authority  of  the  nation, 
and  that  authority  was  concentrated  in  the  hands  of 
an  individual  whose  word  was  to  be  law.  General 
Barragan,  as  Acting  President,  issued  a  decree,  on 
the  thirtieth  of  October,  proclaiming  the  Constitution 
of  Las  Siete  Leyes  as  that  of  what  was  termed  the 
"  Central  Republic." 

The  openly  avowed  opinion  that  Congress  had 
power  to  change  the  Constitution  at  will,  and  with- 
out consulting  the  several  State  legislatures  or  the 
wishes  of  the  people,  was  vigorously  combated  by 
several  of  the  Mexican  States.  They  asserted  their 
purpose  of  taking  up  arms  for  the  reestablishment  of 
the  Constitution  of  1824.  None  of  them  were  suc- 
cessful, however,  save  one,  Texas,  to  whose  struggle 
against  absolutism  we  shall  shortly  give  some  con- 
sideration. 

The  Siete  Leyes  were  only  a  sample  of  what  was 
to  follow,  and  a  new  Fundamental  Law  was  adopted, 
in  1836,  which  explicitly  rejected  the  Federal  princi- 
ple of  government.  The  change  of  the  States  into 
Departments  being  recognized,  they  were  thereby 
divided  into  districts,  and  subdivided  into  Partidos, 
and  the  functions  of  the  Central  Government  w^ere 
still  further  enlarged.  The  Republic  became  a  mili- 
tary oligarchy ;  and  thenceforth,  until  1847,  the  su- 
preme power  in  JMexico  was  vested  in  whoever  might 
be,  at  the  time,  the  most  successful  military  leader. 

The  Federalists  did  not  tamely  submit  to  this  new 
order  of   things,  and   it   was  because  of   conditions 


SANTA  ANNA   AND   CENTRALISM  133 

almost  anarchical  in  Mexico  that  the  revolt  of  the 
immense  territory  of  Texas  became  necessary  and 
that  its  independence  of  Mexico  was  made  possible. 
That  territory  had  been  colonized  by  Americans 
under  charters  made  to  Empresarios  as  early  as 
1821,  and  renewed  from  time  to  time  by  the  suc- 
cessive governments  of  Mexico.  There  was  every 
prospect  of  the  formation  and  development  of  a 
prosperous  State  in  Texas;  but  as  the  colonists  of 
Anglo-Saxon  traditions  were  unaccustomed  to  Span- 
ish institutions,  and  particularly  to  such  fickle  gov- 
ernment as  that  which  was  over  them  in  the  City  of 
Mexico,  it  was  impossible  for  this  prospect  to  be  real- 
ized. The  colonists  were  especially  outraged  by  the 
actions  of  Santa  Anna,  in  despoiling  them  of  rights 
vested  in  them  by  the  charters  and  by  the  Consti- 
tution of  1824.  The  Constitution  of  1836  had  been 
adopted  wholly  without  their  consent,  and  their  rep- 
resentatives to  the  Mexican  government  had  been 
shamefully  treated  and  cast  into  prison  without  being 
allowed  means  of  getting  a  hearing  for  their  personal 
claims  or  for  those  which  they  had  come  to  present. 
The  Texans  were  by  these  means  goaded  into  rebel- 
hon;  and  in  a  convention  of  citizens  held  in  1836, 
they  published  a  manifesto  declaring  themselves  no 
longer  bound  to  support  the  Government  of  Mexico, 
and  offering  their  assistance  to  such  of  the  Mexican 
States  as  would  take  up  arms  in  defence  and  support 
of  their  rights  guaranteed  under  the  Constitution  of 
1824. 

Santa  Anna,  intoxicated  by  what  he  was  pleased  to 
consider  his  "  uninteri'upted  military  successes,"  and 
glorying  in  his  seK-assumed  title  of  the  "  Napoleon 
of  the  West,"  set  out,  in  February,  1836,  at  the  head 


134  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

of  an  army  of  eight  thousand  of  the  best  troops  of 
Mexico,  to  suppress  this  rebellion.  He  concentrated 
his  entire  army  at  San  Antonio  de  Bexar,  and  fol- 
lowed up  the  atrocious  cruelties  practised  in  other 
places  by  putting  the  whole  garrison  of  the  Alamo  to 
the  sword.  He  was  about  to  Avithdraw  his  army  from 
the  territory  wliich  he  supposed  had  been  completely 
subdued,  when  he  met  with  a  totally  unexpected  ex- 
perience. The  Texans,  goaded  now  to  desperation 
by  the  fresh  instances  of  barbaric  despotism  furnished 
by  the  Mexican  Dictator,  prepared  for  a  final  struggle. 
Only  783  strong,  under  the  command  of  General  Sam 
Houston,  they  met  Santa  Anna  at  San  Jacinto  River, 
on  the  twenty -third  of  April ;  and  after  a  battle  which 
lasted  but  twenty  minutes,  they  succeeded  in  captur- 
ing the  whole  Mexican  army,  including  Santa  Anna 
and  General  Juan  N.  Almonte,  who  was  destined  to 
some  future  notoriety  in  the  history  of  the  Republic 
of  Mexico. 

The  majority  of  the  Texans  demanded  the  execu- 
tion of  Santa  Anna,  in  retaliation  for  the  cruelties 
practised  by  him  upon  their  countrymen ;  and  nothing 
but  the  firmness  of  General  Houston  saved  him  from 
the  fate  which  he  had  so  often  meted  out  to  his  po- 
litical enemies.  But  to  General  Houston,  a  Mexican 
Dictator  alive  was  worth  far  more  than  one  executed, 
however  justly.  A  treaty  was  entered  into,  by  which 
the  entire  Mexican  forces  were  to  be  withdrawn  from 
the  territory,  the  independence  of  Texas  was  ac- 
knowledged, and  Santa  Anna  was  allowed  to  return 
to  Mexico  by  way  of  the  United  States.  This,  how- 
ever, he  was  in  no  hurry  to  do ;  and  he  did  not  reach 
his  native  State  until  nearly  a  year  after  he  had  left 
the  capital  of  his  country,  and  ten  months  after  his 


SANTA  ANNA   AND  CENTRALISM  135 

capture  by  the  Texans.  He  then  addressed  a  letter 
to  the  Mexican  Secretary  of  War,  disavowing  all  trea- 
ties and  stipulations  with  the  Texans  made  under 
duress ;  and  having  delivered  himself  of  this  com- 
munication, he  retired  to  his  hacienda,  where  he 
remained  in  deserved  obscurity  for  two  years. 

General  Barragan  was  Acting  President  of  the  Re- 
public of  Mexico  at  the  time  of  the  Texan  revolt. 
He  died  before  the  battle  of  San  Jacinto  was  fought, 
and  was  succeeded  by  Jos^  Justo  Corro,  whom  Con- 
gress appointed  Acting  President.  Corro,  being  an 
insignificant  and  obscure  person,  was  a  very  suitable 
tool  of  the  Conservative  rulers  at  the  capital.  One 
notable  event  characterized  his  brief  administration. 
Notice  was  received  that  Spain  had  at  last  recognized 
the  independence  of  Mexico,  and  had  sent  a  Minis- 
ter to  represent  her  in  the  capital  of  the  supposed 
Republic. 


136  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 


CHAPTER  VII 

CENTRALISM    UNDER    THE   "BASES    ORGANICAS " 
OF   1843 

IN  1837  Anastasio  Bustamante  returned  from  his 
exile  in  France,  whither  he  had  been  sent  by 
Gomez  Farias,  and  was  elected  by  liis  friends  in 
Congress  to  supersede  Corro  in  the  titular  Presidency. 
One  plot  after  another  against  the  government  dis- 
turbed his  administration.  Almost  immediately  after 
his  accession  there  was  a  movement  in  favor  of  Fed- 
eralism, and  designed  to  restore  Gomez  Farias,  (who 
was  being  held  as  a  political  prisoner)  to  liberty 
and  to  put  him  into  the  Presidency  in  Bustamante's 
place.  Another  plot  had  for  its  supposed  object  the 
division  of  the  country  and  the  setting  up  of  "  The 
Republic  of  Sierra  Madre  "  upon  the  eastern  slope  of 
the  mountains  so  named.  The  Republic  was  to  be 
composed  of  the  States  of  that  locality,  which  were 
largely  Federalist  in  their  political  principles.  Doubt- 
less if  all  the  States  in  which  Federalist  principles 
predominated  had  been  contiguous,  the  disruption 
of  the  country  would  have  ensued,  or  the  Centralists 
would  have  been  earlier  forced  to  yield  to  the  demands 
of  the  Federalists.  These  insurrections  were,  how- 
ever, put  down  before  they  had  gained  any  headway. 
In  1838  General  Mexia  made  a  brilliant  effort  for 
the  emancipation  of  Mexico  from  the  rule  of  Abso- 
lutists. He  advanced  as  far  as  Puebla  with  a  brave 
band  of  patriots,  and  with  the  purpose  of  proceeding 


CENTRALISM  137 

to  the  capital,  but  he  was  encountered  by  General 
Santa  Anna,  who  had  crept  forth  from  his  retirement 
to  recover  his  lost  popularity  by  some  daring  exploit 
of  arms,  and  was  intrusted  by  Bustamante  with  the 
command  of  the  government  troops  sent  out  against 
Mexia.  Mexia  was  taken  captive,  not  by  superiority 
of  military  skill,  but  by  treachery ;  and  was  executed 
by  his  inhuman  captor  upon  the  field  of  battle. 

It  was  in  the  same  year  that  a  French  squadron 
blockaded  Vera  Cruz  in  pursuit  of  what  is  known  in 
Mexican  history  as  the  "  Pie  Claim."  Santa  Anna, 
taking  advantage  of  this  opportunity  to  recover  the 
military  and  political  prestige  lost  at  San  Jacinto, 
took  command  of  the  Mexican  troops  and  drove  the 
French  back  to  their  vessels.  In  this  battle  he  re- 
ceived wounds  that  necessitated  the  amputation  of  a 
leg.  The  loss  of  this  member  became  thenceforth  a  new 
and  important  element  in  Mexican  politics.  Santa 
Anna  was  able  to  plead  with  his  fellow-countrymen, 
when  it  became  necessary  to  send  forth  one  of  those 
manifestos  for  which  he  was  famous,  that  his  patri- 
otic sacrifices  had  been  greater  than  those  of  Napoleon 
(with  whom  he  was  fond  of  comparing  himseK),  as  he 
had  lost  a  limb  in  defence  of  his  native  land. 

In  1839  President  Bustamante  left  the  care  of  the 
government  to  Santa  Anna,  and  put  himself  at  the 
head  of  the  army  to  repel  another  insurrection.  This 
was  likewise  a  Federalist  movement,  and  was  headed 
by  Gomez  Farias  and  one  of  his  military  friends.  It 
started  at  some  distance  from  the  capital,  but  soon 
spread  in  that  direction;  and  the  following  year, 
when  Bustamante  returned  to  the  capital  and  to  the 
exercise  of  his  presidential  functions,  he  found  him- 
self at  one  time  a  prisoner  in  the  hands  of  the  insur- 


138  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

gents.  Some  sort  of  an  understanding  was  reached 
by  which  hostilities  were  suspended,  the  lives  of  the 
insurgents  were  spared  under  a  general  amnesty,  and 
this  insurrectionary  movement  came  to  an  end  with- 
out accomplishing  anything  for  the  improvement  of 
Mexico. 

It  was  evident,  however,  that  a  more  serious  struggle 
was  pending.  In  1842  General  Mariano  Paredes  y 
Arrillaga  pronounced  against  the  government.  He 
was  followed  by  General  Valencia  and  General  Lom- 
bardini  in  the  capital,  and  by  the  irrepressible  General 
Santa  Anna  in  Vera  Cruz.  Among  various  indefinite 
causes  alleged  for  this  insurrection  was  the  inade- 
quacy of  the  Constitution  of  1836.  There  was  also  a 
well-recognized  popular  discontent  over  certain  oner- 
ous duties  and  taxes  imposed  by  the  Conservative 
government. 

Bustamante  occupied  the  National  Palace  at  the 
capital,  and  with  his  troops  held  certain  other  portions 
of  the  city.  General  Valencia,  in  opposition  to  him, 
controlled  the  ciudadela  from  which  he  cannonaded 
the  city.  For  months  the  city  was  in  a  state  of  siege, 
with  frequent  contests  in  the  streets,  and  some  more 
harmless  conflicts  between  the  rival  troops  on  the 
adjacent  plains.  The  chief  damage  was  done  to  inno- 
cent non-combatants  in  the  city,  upon  whom  shot 
and  shell  occasionally  descended. 

The  President  finally  decided  upon  a  more  vigorous 
campaign,  and  took  the  field  against  the  insurgents, 
leaving  the  government  in  the  hands  of  the  Senior 
Member  and  President  of  the  Government  Council, 
who  was  virtual  Vice-President  under  the  Constitu- 
tion of  1836.  Javier  Echavarria,  who  thus  became 
Acting  President  of  the  Republic,  was  a  merchant  of 


CENTRALISM  139 

Vera  Cruz,  and  a  notable  exception  to  the  military 
character  of  the  Mexican  rulers.  After  fruitless  bat- 
tles, and  after  interviews  and  negotiations  equally 
fruitless,  between  the  chiefs  of  the  different  parties, 
the  revolution  was  terminated  by  a  meeting  at  Tacu- 
baya  in  September.  A  "  Plan,"  inspired  by  the  fol- 
lowers of  Santa  Anna,  was  agreed  upon  and  signed 
by  one  hundred  and  ninety-one  persons,  by  which  the 
then  existing  Constitution  was  superseded. 

The  "  Plan  de  Tacubaya,"  as  it  was  called,  pro- 
clauned  a  general  amnesty  to  political  offenders  on 
both  sides,  and  provided  that  a  Congress  should  be 
called  to  frame  a  new  Constitution  for  the  better  gov- 
ernment of  the  Republic.  A  "  Junta  of  Notables  " 
was  formed,  the  members  to  be  named  by  the  General- 
in-chief  of  the  army.  The  junta  was  to  elect  a 
Provisional  President,  who,  by  one  of  the  articles  of 
the  "  Plan,"  was  to  be  "  clothed  with  all  power  neces- 
sary to  reorganize  the  nation  and  all  branches  of 
administration"  —  in  other  words,  to  be  invested  with 
supreme  power.  The  General-in-chief  of  the  army, 
by  the  appointment  of  Bustamante,  was  Santa  Anna. 
He  selected  the  junta  in  accordance  with  the  terms 
of  the  "  Plan."  The  junta  returned  the  compliment, 
and  elected  Santa  Anna  Provisional  President. 

The  "  Plan  de  Tacubaya  "  was  so  far  successful 
that  Bustamante  left  the  Presidency  and  departed  for 
Europe,  and  Echevarria  was  superseded  as  Provisional 
President  by  Santa  Anna,  who  thus,  after  defeat,  dis- 
grace, and  capture  by  his  enemies,  now  recovered  the 
Supreme  power  in  the  land.  A  Congress,  composed 
of  "  patriotic  citizens  "  chosen  by  the  people,  met  in 
June,  1842,  and  was  opened  by  a  speech  from  the 
Provisional  President,  in  which  he  positively  declared 


140  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

his  preference  for  a  firm  and  centralized  government, 
but  intimated  his  readiness  to  acquiesce  in  the  deci- 
sions of  that  deliberative  body. 

After  Congress  had  made  two  unsuccessful  attempts 
to  devise  a  system  of  government  that  would  be  ac- 
ceptable to  both  parties,  Santa  Anna  thought  it  best  to 
retire  from  the  scene.  He  placed  the  affairs  of  the  gov- 
ernment in  the  hands  of  General  Nicolas  Bravo  and 
Valentin  Canalizo,  who  were  by  turns  to  execute  his 
mandates  during  his  absence  from  the  capital.  Bravo 
promptly  dissolved  Congress  and  revived  the  "  Junta 
of  Notables  "  created  under  the  "  Plan  de  Tacubaya." 
The  junta  put  forth  a  new  Constitution,  known  as 
the  "  Bases  Organicas  Politicas  de  la  Republica  Mexi- 
cana."  It  was  dated  on  the  thirteenth  of  June,  1843, 
and  centralized  the  government  still  further  than  the 
Constitution  of  1836  had  done. 

By  its  first  section,  the  new  Constitution  declared 
that  Mexico  adopted  the  form  of  a  popular  represen- 
tative system  for  its  government ;  that  the  territory 
was  divided  into  departments ;  that  the  political 
power  resided  not  in  the  people  but  in  the  nation; 
that  the  Holy  Roman  Catholic  and  Apostolic  Creed 
was  professed  and  protected  to  the  exclusion  of  all 
other  forms  of  religion.  The  second  section  abolished 
slavery,  and  declared  that  no  one  should  be  molested 
for  his  opinions  or  called  upon  for  contributions  or 
govermnent  loans  excepting  such  as  were  regularly 
imposed  by  law.  The  third  section  declared  citizens 
all  persons  born  in  Mexican  territory,  or  born  else- 
where of  a  Mexican  father,  as  well  as  all  who  were  in 
Mexico  in  1821  who  had  not  renounced  their  alle- 
giance ;  also  all  natives  of  Central  America  at  the 
time  it  belonged  to  Mexico,  who  had  continued  to 


CENTRALISM  141 

reside  in  Mexico,  and  all  who  had  obtained  or  should 
thereafter  obtain  letters  of  naturalization.  It  limited 
the  right  of  suffrage  to  male  citizens  of  eighteen  years 
and  upwards  if  married,  or  twenty-one  or  upwards  if 
not  married,  provided  they  were  in  the  enjoyment  of 
an  annual  income  of  at  least  two  hundred  dollars  de- 
rived from  actual  capital,  industiy,  or  honest  personal 
labor ;  and  after  1850  the  suffrage  was  to  be  further 
restricted  to  those  who  were  able  to  read  and  write. 
The  rights  of  citizenship  were  to  be  forfeited  by  enter- 
ing into  domestic  servitude,  by  habitual  intemperance, 
by  the  taking  of  religious  vows,  the  keeping  of  prohib- 
ited gambling-houses,  and  by  fraudulent  bankruptcy. 
The  legislative  power  was  to  reside  in  a  Congress 
divided  into  a  Chamber  of  Deputies  and  a  Senate. 
The  first  branch  was  to  consist  of  individuals  elected 
by  Electoral  Colleges  in  the  departments,  in  the  ratio 
of  one  for  every  seventy  thousand  inhabitants,  ex- 
cept that  every  department  should  have  at  least  one 
deputy.  There  was  also  to  be  a  deputy  in  any  de- 
partment having  a  population  of  thirty-five  thousand 
in  excess  of  the  seventy  thousand  or  a  multiple 
thereof.  The  Senate  was  to  consist  of  sixty-three 
members,  —  forty-two  to  be  elected  by  the  Depart- 
mental Assembhes,  and  the  remaining  twenty -one  by 
the  Chamber  of  Deputies,  the  President  of  the  Repub- 
lic, and  the  Supreme  Court  of  Justice.  The  Depart- 
mental Assemblies  were  to  select  five  persons  each 
from  the  classes  of  agriculturists,  miners,  merchants, 
and  manufacturers,  and  the  rest  of  them  from  the 
class  called  "  Distinguished  Individuals."  Those  ap- 
pointed by  the  President  and  by  the  Supreme  Court 
were  to  be  men  who  had  signalized  themselves  in  a 
civil,  military,  or  ecclesiastical  career. 


142  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

The  Executive  Power  was  to  be  confided  for  five 
years  to  a  President,  who  was  to  be  a  Mexican  by 
birtli,  in  full  enjoyment  of  the  rights  of  citizenship, 
over  forty  years  of  age,  and  a  resident  of  the  Republic 
at  the  time  of  his  election.  Among  the  duties  pre- 
scribed for  him  were  the  following :  He  was  to  impose 
fines,  not  exceeding  five  hundi'ed  dollars,  on  those 
who  disobeyed  his  orders,  and  were  wanting  in  respect 
and  obedience  to  the  laws ;  to  see  that  prompt  justice 
was  administered ;  to  visit  the  tribunals  whenever 
informed  of  delays  or  of  the  existence  of  disorders  in 
those  bodies ;  to  require  that  precedence  be  given  in 
the  courts  to  causes  concerning  the  public  welfare; 
to  demand  information  regarding  the  same  whenever 
deemed  proper ;  and  he  had  the  right  to  veto,  within 
thirty  days,  any  laws  passed  by  Congress  not  meeting 
his  approval,  said  veto  subject  to  being  overruled  by 
the  vote  of  two-thirds  of  the  members  of  both  houses 
of  Congress ;  he  might  declare  war,  and  dispose  of 
the  armed  forces  of  the  nation  as  he  saw  fit,  in  accord- 
ance with  the  purposes  for  which  they  were  created ; 
he  might  expel  from  the  Republic  unnaturalized  for- 
eigners who  were  deemed  dangerous ;  and  he  might 
name  speakers  from  the  Council  to  defend  the  opinions 
of  the  government  before  the  legislative  chambers. 

A  Council  of  the  Government,  composed  of  seven- 
teen persons  to  be  named  by  the  President,  was  to 
perform  certain  duties  in  aid  of  the  government  in  all 
matters  required  by  the  "  Bases,"  and  in  other  matters 
upon  which  it  might  be  deemed  proper  to  consult. 
It  was  to  be  the  privilege  of  this  Council  to  propose 
to  the  government  any  regulations  that  might  be 
deemed  necessary  for  the  public  welfare  in  any  branch 
of  the  administration.     The  judicial  power  was  de- 


CENTRALISM  143 

clared  to  reside  in  a  Supreme  Court,  in  Departmental 
tribunals  and  others  already  established  by  law,  and 
in  a  perpetual  Court  Martial  chosen  by  the  Presi- 
dent. Each  Department  was  to  have  an  Assembly, 
but,  as  defined,  this  amounted  to  scarcely  more  than 
a  species  of  municipal  police  subject  to  review  by  the 
President  and  the  Departmental  Governor  appointed 
by  him. 

The  population  of  Mexico  was  divided  into  sections 
of  five  hundred  inhabitants  each  for  the  election  of 
"  Primary  Juntas,"  and  the  members  of  each  junta 
were  to  vote  by  ballot  for  one  elector.  These  pri- 
mary electors  were  to  name  the  secondary,  —  one  for 
every  twenty  primaries ;  and  these  latter  were  to 
form  the  Electoral  College  of  the  Department.  The 
Electoral  College  was  to  elect  Deputies  to  Congress 
and  Members  of  the  Departmental  Assembly.  Each 
Departmental  Assembly  was,  every  five  years,  to  select 
a  person  for  President  of  the  Republic.  The  person 
receiving  the  vote  of  the  majority  of  the  Assemblies 
was  to  be  declared  elected.  The  number  of  terms  for 
which  a  person  was  eligible  was  not  stated,  nor  was 
the  mode  of  supplying  a  vacancy  caused  by  death, 
resignation,  or  incompetency,  provided  for. 

Thus  had  Santa  Anna  succeeded  in  forcing  upon  the 
country  his  favorite  scheme  of  government  by  Con- 
tralization  of  power.  He  was  fortified  in  his  position, 
and  his  power  was  intrenched  on  every  side.  He  was 
absolutely  removed  from  the  people.  Four  millions 
of  Indians  among  his  subjects  were  utterly  unrepre- 
sented in  the  government,  and  were  without  hope  of 
advancement  or  of  any  improvement  in  their  condition. 
Nothing  could  be  less  "  popular  "  than  the  government 
organized  upon  the  Bases  of  Political  Organization  of 


144  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

the  Mexican  Republic,  proclaimed  in  June,  1843,  as  a 
"  Popular  Representative  Government." 

The  people  were  divided  into  classes  of  "  citizens  " 
and  "  inhabitants."  Property  qualifications  were  cre- 
ated. The  voter  must  have  an  annual  income  of  at 
least  two  hundred  dollars,  the  Deputy  to  the  Depart- 
mental Assembly  five  hundred  dollars,  the  Deputy  to 
the  Congressional  Chamber,  twelve  hundred  dollars, 
and  the  Senator  two  thousand  dollars.  Domestic  ser- 
vants and  the  clergy  were  disfranchised  in  the  same 
category  with  gamblers  and  drunkards.  The  direct 
vote  of  the  people  for  men  to  represent  them  in  the 
Departmental  Assemblies,  and  in  Congress  or  in  the 
Presidency,  was  abolished.  The  opinions,  sentiments, 
and  preferences  of  the  people  were  to  be  filtered 
through  three  or  more  bodies  of  electors  before  their 
representatives  could  be  chosen;  and  the  Supreme 
Power  was  vested  in  a  Central  government,  the  people 
being  left  with  scarcely  a  shadow  of  authority  over 
their  homes  and  their  political  interests  in  the  Depart- 
ments. Thus,  all  the  revolutions  that  had  gone  on 
in  Mexico  for  twenty  years,  in  which  there  had  ap- 
peared now  and  then  some  slight  evidence  of  a 
progressive  principle,  had  culminated  in  the  estab- 
lishment of  what  was  really  a  retrogressive  system  of 
government ;  and  so  far  from  getting  nearer  to  liberty 
and  enlightenment,  the  country  had  at  last  reached 
the  acme  of  Centralism  and  Oligarchy. 

A  glance  at  the  social  conditions  of  Mexico  at  this 
time  will  in  a  measure  account  for  this  strange  situa- 
tion. The  people  were  forced  to  submit  to  a  twofold 
domination  especially  fostered  by  the  "  Bases,"  that 
of  a  military  rule  and  that  of  the  Church.  Eight 
million   dollars   were    annually  expended   upon   the 


CENTRALISM  145 

military  establishment,  and  this  sum  went  to  the 
support  of  the  younger  members  of  those  families 
whose  influence  it  was  deemed  wise  to  secure  for 
the  government.  Almost  every  respectable  man  met 
upon  the  streets  of  the  larger  cities  wore  military 
dress.  But  while  to  a  partially  informed  observer 
Mexico  might  thus  have  appeared  as  a  military 
nation,  to  the  better  informed  this  military  strength 
was  known  to  be  created  and  maintained,  not  to 
protect  the  nation  from  foreign  aggressions,  but  to 
guard  the  government  from  the  assaults  of  the  peo- 
ple. Although  for  twenty  years  the  country  had  been 
one  vast  camp  and  battlefield,  the  contests  had  been 
between  the  possessors  of  power  and  the  aspirants 
therefor.  The  miUtary  strength  of  the  nation  was 
not  only  being  dissipated,  but  was  working  a  positive 
injury  to  the  country. 

The  Church  had  accumulated  a  large  share  of  the 
real  property  of  the  country,  in  addition  to  the  untold 
wealth  which  swelled  its  coffers ;  and  its  influence 
was  naturally  in  favor  of  that  branch  of  government 
which  preserved  its  property  and  protected  the  re- 
ligious orders  through  which  it  derived  its  power. 
These  were  direct  inheritances  from  the  Spanish 
system,  which  lingered  in  spite  of  the  efforts  that 
had  been  made  to  cast  it  off.  The  result  was  that 
there  was  in  the  country  no  numerous  and  distinctive 
body  of  enlightened  lawyers  or  merchants,  or  educated 
mechanics  or  agriculturists,  to  counterbalance  the  in- 
fluence of  the  two  really  influential  classes  of  people, 
—  the  clergy  and  the  military.  An  aristocracy  of 
arms  and  of  the  spiritual  power  having  been  created, 
agriculture  was  regarded  as  a  menial  occupation.  A 
few  Mexicans  there  were  who  loved  liberty  and  strove 

10 


146  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

to  secure  the  well-being  of  the  people.  Every  Con- 
gress that  assembled  contained  some  of  these.  They 
were  looked  upon  as  obstructionists  by  the  aspirants 
to  political  power,  and  their  efforts  were  in  a  large 
measure  thwarted  by  the  people  at  large,  who,  hope- 
lessly unhappy  in  the  condition  in  which  they  were 
placed,  were  indifferent  as  to  the  kind  of  government 
that  was  over  them. 

A  Congress  was  installed  in  accordance  with  the 
"  Bases,"  on  New  Year's  day,  1844,  and  an  election  by 
this  Congress  confirmed  Santa  Anna  in  the  Presidency. 
He  at  once  began  to  enjoy,  to  the  fullest  extent,  the 
pomp  and  circumstance  of  royalty,  rather  than  the  sim- 
plicity presumed  to  inhere  in  a  Republic.  The  state 
he  observed  as  President  was,  in  fact,  altogether  in- 
consistent with  the  Republican  institutions  he  pro- 
fessed to  observe.  He  rode  abroad  from  the  National 
Palace  in  a  coach  richly  decked  with  crimson  velvet 
and  gold,  drawn  by  four  white  horses,  accompanied  by 
a  troop  of  gaily  cajDarisoned  hussars,  and  with  six 
mounted  aide s-de-c amp  at  the  sides.  He  wore  the  rich 
gold-embroidered  dress  of  a  General  of  Division.  A 
number  of  decorations  were  about  his  neck,  and  a 
medal  of  great  brilliancy  upon  his  breast.  In  his  per- 
sonal character  he  was  thoroughly  inconsistent.  He 
was  the  habitue  of  the  cock-pit,  as  he  had  been  before ; 
for  it  was  not  at  this  time  considered  beneath  the 
dignity  of  the  grandees  of  the  country  to  interest 
themselves  in  cock-fighting  and  other  low  sports.  As 
with  the  government,  so  with  the  people ;  and  the 
morality  of  the  country  was  at  a  lower  ebb  under  the 
"  Bases  "  than  ever  before. 

Congress  was  at  first  disposed  to  sustain  the  views 
of  Santa  Anna  in  regard  to  the  re-conquest  of  Texas, 


CENTRALISM  147 

and  granted  four  million  dollars  of  the  ten  millions 
lie  desired  for  that  purpose.  But  when  it  was  dis- 
covered that  the  first-named  sum  was  impossible  of 
realization,  Congress  refused  to  sustain  his  plans  any- 
longer.  In  point  of  fact,  Congress  had  become  sus- 
picious of  the  honesty  of  the  President,  and  was  un- 
willing to  intrust  so  large  a  sum  to  his  control.  And 
this  was  but  an  indication  of  the  bitter  opposition  to 
the  absolutism  of  Santa  Anna,  manifested  all  over 
the  country.  Public  opinion  was  being  aroused  and 
was  resulting  in  popular  uprisings.  So  threatening 
was  the  aspect  of  affairs  that  the  President,  fearing 
a  serious  outbreak  and  always  ready  to  fly  before  a 
coming  storm,  asked  permission  of  Congress  to  retire 
to  his  estate  at  Mango  de  Clava,  to  arrange  his  private 
affairs.  The  "  Bases  "  had  made  no  provision  for  the 
selection  of  a  President  ad  interim  in  such  an  exi- 
gency, and  Congress  took  the  matter  in  hand.  Santa 
Anna  was  shrewd  enough  to  interpret  the  meaning  of 
the  bare  majority  by  which  Canalize,  his  candidate 
for  the  office  of  President  ad  interim,  was  elected. 
Canalizo  took  charge  of  affairs  at  the  capital,  and 
Santa  Anna  retired  to  Vera  Cruz  to  indulge  in  further 
intrigues  against  the  country. 

He  had  taken  the  precaution,  however,  to  mobilize 
the  better  part  of  the  army  (ostensibly  for  his  pro- 
posed expedition  upon  Texas)  eastward  of  the  capi- 
tal, where  he  might  avail  himself  of  its  services  in 
case  of  need.  But  his  plans  were  disconcerted  by 
a  movement  in  a  most  unexpected  quarter.  General 
Mariano  Paredes  y  Arrillaga  had  been  one  of  the  chief 
instruments  of  Santa  Anna  in  the  overthrow  of  Busta- 
mante  and  the  establishment  of  the  ultra-Centralized 
government,  and  he  had  received  as  the  reward  of  his 


148  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

efficient  services  the  position  of  Military  Commandant 
of  the  Department  of  Jalisco.  He  disagreed  with 
Canalizo,  the  President  ad  interim,  and  did  not  hesi- 
tate to  express  his  disapproval  in  a  most  pubHc  and 
official  manner.  He  had  the  Departmental  Junta,  or 
Assembly  of  Jalisco,  publish  an  "  Initiative,"  or  "Con- 
stitutional Act,"  as  it  was  called,  demanding  that  the 
National  Congress  "  make  the  provisional  government 
amenable  to  the  Plan  of  Tacubaya;"  that  it  repeal 
a  certain  law  imposing  extraordinary  contributions 
(forced  loans);  and  that  it  reform  those  articles  of  the 
Constitution  which  were  inimical  to  the  prosperity  of 
the  Departments.  All  the  civil  and  military  authori- 
ties of  Jalisco  indorsed  this  initiative,  and  the  De- 
partments of  Aguas  Cahentes,  Zacatecas,  Sinaloa  and 
Sonora  concurred.  Paredes,  who  was  on  his  way  to 
take  command  of  the  Department  of  Sonora,  stopped 
at  Guadalajara  with  his  troops,  and  from  that  city 
dated  his  pronunciamento  against  Santa  Anna  and 
"  assumed  the  functions  of  Military  Chief  of  the 
Revolution."  He  took  up  his  position,  with  fourteen 
hundred  men,  at  Lagos,  on  the  borders  of  Jalisco. 
Between  him  and  the  City  of  Mexico  were  the  Depart- 
ments of  Queretaro  and  Guanajuato.  In  the  latter 
Department,  General  Cortazar  was  established  with 
two  thousand  men,  and  Paredes  depended  upon  him 
for  support. 

Santa  Anna,  however,  started  for  the  City  of  Mexico 
with  eight  thousand  five  hundred  men,  received  some 
additional  troops  in  Puebla,  and  fixed  his  headquar- 
ters at  Guadalupe,  a  suburb  of  the  capital.  The  sit- 
uation was  interesting.  The  Departments  of  Puebla, 
Vera  Cruz,  Mexico,  Queretaro,  and  Guanajuato  pro- 
fessed loyalty  to  the  Santa  Anna  government,  and 


CENTRALISM  149 

Santa  Anna  seemed  abundantly  able  to  march  into 
Queretaro  with  thirteen  thousand  men  and  crush  the 
little  army  of  Paredes.  But  he  was  confronted  by 
constitutional  questions.  By  the  "  Bases  Organicas  " 
the  President  was  prohibited  from  commanding  the 
mihtaiy  forces  in  person  without  previously  obtaining 
the  consent  of  Congress.  Such  constitutional  ques- 
tions, however,  were  not  wont  to  trouble  Santa  Anna ; 
and  this  Constitution,  being  of  his  own  creation,  one 
would  think  could  easily  be  made  to  stand  aside. 
But  he  was  likewise  confronted  by  a  Congress  which, 
while  not  professedly  supporting  Paredes,  was  dis- 
posed to  support  the  Constitution.  Santa  Anna  and 
Paredes  were  both  alike  engaged  in  revolutionary  acts. 

Santa  Anna  marched  into  Queretaro  under  an  order 
signed  by  the  Minister  of  War.  Congress  at  once 
passed  a  resolution  impeaching  the  Minister  of  War 
for  issuing  such  an  order,  and  voted  to  receive,  print, 
and  proclaun,  and  thus  to  indorse,  the  pronuncia- 
mento  of  Paredes.  Meanwhile  the  Departmental 
Junta  of  Queretaro  adopted  the  "  Initiative "  of 
Jalisco.  Santa  Anna  threatened  to  imprison  the 
members  of  the  Junta  of  Queretaro  if  they  did  not 
pronounce  in  his  favor.  He  carried  out  his  threat 
upon  three  of  them,  sending  them  under  a  strong 
guard  in  the  direction  of  the  capital. 

Congress,  mth  great  promptness,  summoned  the 
Minister  of  War  before  it,  and  demanded  of  him 
whether  he  had  authorized  General  Santa  Anna  to 
imprison  the  members  of  the  Junta  of  Queretaro. 
The  proceedings  of  Congress  were  of  such  a  menac- 
ing character  that  Canalizo,  after  consultation  with 
Santa  Anna,  determined  upon  extreme  measures. 
The  Deputies,  who  repaired  to  the  National  Palace 


150  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

on  the  first  of  December,  found  tlie  doors  closed  and 
a  guard  of  soldiers  to  prevent  access  to  the  Palace. 
The  following  day  a  proclamation  was  issued  by 
Canalizo  declaring  Congress  dissolved  indefinitely, 
and  all  powers  of  the  government,  legislative  as  well 
as  executive,  conferred  upon  Santa  Anna  as  Presi- 
dente  Proprietario,  with  Canalizo  as  Presideiite  Interino 
until  otherwise  ordered  by  Santa  Anna. 

Popular  indignation  rose  to  its  greatest  height. 
The  Commandant  General  of  the  Department  of 
Puebla,  aided  and  abetted  by  the  municipal  author- 
ities, pronounced  against  Santa  Anna,  and  a  few 
days  later  the  garrison  and  people  of  the  City  of 
Mexico  rose  up,  imprisoned  Canalizo  and  his  ministers, 
and  thus  permitted  Congress  to  assemble.  General 
Jos^  Joaquin  Herrera,  President  of  the  Government 
Council,  was  advanced  by  Congress  to  the  place  of 
Canalizo. 

The  situation  increased  in  interest.  Santa  Anna 
was  constitutional  President,  but  was  unconstitu- 
tionally in  command  of  troops  and  (in  conjunction 
with  Cortazar)  in  military  possession  of  two  Depart- 
ments of  the  country.  The  Departments  farther  north 
were  in  a  state  of  revolution  under  Paredes.  Puebla 
and  Vera  Cruz  adhered  to  Santa  Anna.  The  Minis- 
ter of  War,  under  instructions  from  Congress,  now 
ordered  Santa  Anna  to  give  up  the  command  of  the 
military  forces,  with  the  understanding  that  if  he  re- 
fused, he  would  be  considered  a  rebel  and  a  traitor, 
for  the  new  provisional  government  was  unquestion- 
ably constitutional.  If  he  chose  to  disobey  this  man- 
date, and  was  successful  in  his  opposition  to  Congress 
and  the  constitutional  government,  he  became  at  once 
the  Military  Dictator  of  the  country.    To  obey  the  man- 


CENTRALISM  151 

dates  of  Congress  was  to  relinquish  his  military  sup- 
port and  place  himself  at  the  mercy  of  his  opponents. 

The  Senate  acted  with  great  dignity  and  firmness. 
In  a  document  signed  by  all  but  four  of  the  Senators, 
it  protested  against  the  absolutism  of  Santa  Anna. 
The  Chamber  of  Deputies  also  protested  in  like 
manner  ;  and  both  houses  of  Congress  resolutely  ex- 
pressed a  determination  to  resist  any  military  or  other 
encroachments  upon  the  rights  of  popular  govern- 
ment. An  exchange  of  letters  between  Herrera  and 
his  ministers  on  one  side,  and  Santa  Anna  on  the 
other,  brought  no  results  ;  and  on  the  seventeenth 
of  December  a  decree  was  issued  declaring  that  the 
government  no  longer  recognized  Santa  Anna's  au- 
thority as  President  of  the  Republic,  pronouncing 
all  his  acts  as  President  null  and  void,  and  calling 
upon  the  army  under  him  to  submit  at  once  to  the 
authority  of  Congress. 

Continuing  his  march  toward  the  Capital  and  his 
messages  to  the  government,  Santa  Anna  proceeded 
in  his  now  clearly  unconstitutional  course.  But  the 
government  cause  gained  ground  steadily.  The  capi- 
tal was  put  in  a  state  of  defence,  and  General  Bravo 
was  placed  in  command,  with  General  Valencia  as  his 
lieutenant.  The  approach  of  Santa  Anna  was  antici- 
pated with  no  httle  concern,  and  all  the  roads  leading 
up  to  the  capital  were  torn  up  to  impede  his  progress  ; 
and  although  Herrera,  in  his  letters  to  Santa  Anna, 
had  urged  him  to  yield  to  the  will  of  the  people 
and  avoid  bloodshed,  preparations  were  made  for  a 
desperate  struggle. 

Paredes  followed  Santa  Anna,  and  gave  to  his  ad- 
vance somewhat  the  character  of  a  retreat.  Santa 
Anna  was  before  the  gates  of  the  capital  throughout 


152  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

the  holiday  week,  but  the  battle  waged  was  one  of 
gasconade ;  and  Santa  Anna  withdrew  to  Puebla. 
From  the  first  to  the  seventh  of  January,  1845,  he 
made  daily  attacks  on  the  latter  city ;  but  the  Gen- 
eral in  command  of  it  replied  to  his  demands,  that  he 
would  never  surrender  the  city  so  long  as  he  had  a 
man  left  to  fire  a  shot.  Santa  Anna  made  an  assault 
while  the  Poblanos  were  considering  propositions  made 
to  them  under  a  flag  of  truce,  but  was  finally  repulsed 
with  the  loss  of  two  hundred  of  his  men. 

Thus  foiled  at  Puebla,  Santa  Anna  sent  General 
Cortazar,  Antonio  Haro  y  Tamaris,  and  others,  to  the 
capital,  to  arrange  terms,  while  he  retreated  towards 
Jalapa.  His  troops  surrendered  a  week  later,  and  an 
effort  was  made  to  create  the  impression  that  Santa 
Anna  had  escaped  from  the  country.  He  was  cap- 
tured, however,  and  conveyed  under  a  strong  guard 
to  Perote.  There  he  was  imprisoned,  though  treated 
with  all  consideration  due  to  a  distinguished  soldier 
in  misfortune. 

The  capture  was  treated  by  Congress  and  by  the 
press  at  the  capital  very  considerately.  Only  the 
papers  of  Vera  Cruz,  Santa  Anna's  own  Department, 
cried  aloud  for  "  the  blood  of  the  tyrant."  Congress 
proceeded  in  a  dignified  manner  with  his  impeach- 
ment for  high  treason  in  attempting  to  subvert  the 
Constitution  and  to  elevate  himself  to  the  supreme 
authority  in  Mexico  as  Emperor;  for  violating  the 
Constitution  by  an  arbitrary  exercise  of  power  not 
conferred  upon  him;  for  malfeasance  in  office  in 
applying  funds  of  the  government  to  his  own  use, 
and  in  sending  out  of  the  country,  on  his  individual 
account,  several  millions  of  the  public  money;  for 
violating  the  usages  of  war  at  Puebla;  for  robbing 


CENTRALISM  153 

the  mint  at  Guanajuato;  for  pillaging  cities,  and 
appropriating  public  and  private  property  to  his  own 
use ;  and  for  refusing  to  deliver  up  the  command  of 
the  army  when  ordered  by  the  government  to  do  so. 

Some  of  these  charges  might  not  have  been  sub- 
stantiated in  all  their  details,  yet  there  were  ample 
grounds  for  all  of  them ;  and  they  furnished  a  com- 
mentary upon  the  character  of  the  man  whose  highest 
ambition  was  to  rule  Mexico  as  dictator,  and  also 
upon  the  low  moral  state  of  the  country  where  such 
acts,  as  he  was  unquestionably  guilty  of,  could  go  on 
unchecked  as  long  as  they  had  in  his  case.  Mexico 
was  learning  her  need  of  a  wholesome  public  opinion, 
—  of  a  quickened,  educated  public  conscience,  —  and 
of  the  necessity  of  preventing  such  atrocious  crimes 
being  committed  against  her  by  those  to  whom  she 
intrusted  the  oversight  of  her  highest  interests.  It 
was  a  hopeful  sign  that  the  country  was  awakening 
to  a  determination  to  purge  the  government  of  iniq- 
uity in  high  places.  It  was  especially  encouraging 
to  those  who  longed  for  a  reformation  in  Mexican 
public  affairs,  to  see  the  government  proceed  in  a 
constitutional  manner  in  such  a  case  of  malfeasance, 
and  not  as  Santa  Anna  himself  would  have  done. 
The  efforts  of  such  men  as  Gomez  Farias  were  begin- 
ning to  bring  good  results. 

Perhaps  it  was  well  not  to  deal  with  the  case  as  it 
would  have  been  dealt  with  in  an  Anglo-Saxon  coun- 
try. In  May,  a  general  amnesty  was  agreed  upon,  from 
which  were  excepted  Santa  Anna,  Canalizo,  Haro  y 
Tamaris,  the  corrupt  Minister  of  War,  and  others  who 
were  regarded  as  members  of  the  "ring."  It  was, 
however,  extended  to  Santa  Anna,  upon  condition  of 
his   leaving   the  national  territory  forever;    and  to 


154  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Canalizo  and  others,  upon  condition  of  their  leaving 
Mexico  for  ten  years.  The  government  was  to  ap- 
point the  place  where  Haro  y  Tamaris  was  to  reside. 

While  Congress  and  the  public  press  acted  with 
moderation  in  bringing  something  like  order  out  of 
the  chaos  which  Paredes  and  Santa  Anna  had  pre- 
cipitated upon  the  country,  it  was   quite  otherwise 
with  the  people,  who  but  a  short  time  before  had 
dared  speak  the  name  of  Santa  Anna  only  in  praise. 
A  wild  scene  ensued  upon  his  overthrow.     A  statue 
of  him  was  destroyed  by  an  infuriated  mob,  and  the 
leg  he  had  lost  at  Vera  Cruz,  and  which  had  been 
entombed  with  much  pomp  at  the  capital  while  he 
was  at  the  height  of  his  power,  was  taken  from  its 
tomb  and  dragged  about  the  streets.     Ribald  songs 
about  him  were  sung  in  the  streets,  and  caricatures 
v/ere  hawked  about  holding  him  up  to  the  most  scur- 
rilous ridicule.     This  proved  the  bitterest  potion  in 
the  cup  of  mortification  that  the  fallen  chieftain  had 
to  drink.     It  aroused  all  the  vindictiveness  of  his 
nature.     The    treatment    he    had    received  while   a 
prisoner  in  the  hands  of  the  Texans,  was  infinitely 
more  humane,  he  declared,  than  that  which  he  experi- 
enced at   the  hands  of  his  own  countrymen  in  the 
hour  of  his  misfortmie.     To  some  intimate  friends  he 
announced  his  intention  not  to  allow  a  Mexican  to 
govern  the  country  if  he  could  prevent  it,  but  to  use 
his  influence  to  establish  a  foreign  dynasty  to  be  sup- 
ported by  European  bayonets.     He  established  him- 
self in  Cuba.     On  arriving  in  Habana  he  met  General 
Bustamante,  who,  taking  advantage  of   the  general 
amnesty  proclaimed  at  this  time,  was  returning  to 
his  native  land  from  the  exile  to  which  he  had  been 
condemned  by  the  "  Plan  de  Tacubaya." 


TFAR   WITH  THE    UNITED  STATES  155 


CHAPTER   VIII 

WAR  WITH   THE   UNITED   STATES,    AND  ITS 
CONSEQUENCES 

TEXAS  had  been  independent  of  Mexico  for 
nine  years,  had  estabhshed  a  RepubHc,  and 
had  been  recognized  as  such  by  the  United 
States  and  by  the  principal  nations  of  Europe.  All 
the  plans  of  Santa  Anna  for  its  re-conquest  had  come 
to  naught.  It  was  now  applying  for  admission  to  the 
United  States.  The  project  for  annexation  was  re- 
garded with  feelings  of  great  bitterness  in  Mexico ; 
for  not  only  did  this  project  place  the  United  States 
in  the  position  of  an  oppressive  neighbor  taking  ad- 
vantage of  the  unhappy  conditions  that  had  prevailed 
in  Mexico  and  enabled  Texas  to  gain  her  independ- 
ence, but  it  also  made  the  United  States  a  party  to 
the  dispute  over  the  claim  of  Texas  (under  the  Treaty 
of  Peace  concluded  between  General  Houston  and 
Santa  Anna)  to  the  Rio  Grande,  and  not  the  Nueces, 
as  her  boundary.  Diplomatic  relations  between  Mex- 
ico and  Texas  were  suspended ;  and  immediately  upon 
the  passage  of  the  act  of  annexation  by  the  Congress 
of  the  United  States,  General  Almonte,  who  had  been 
Santa  Anna's  fellow-prisoner  at  the  battle  of  San 
Jacinto  and  was  now  Envoy  to  the  United  States, 
demanded  his  passports  and  returned  to  Mexico. 
President  Herrera  issued  a  proclamation  declaring 
the  annexation  a  breach  of  international  faith,  and 


156  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

called  upon  the  citizens  of  Mexico  to  rally  to  the 
defence  of  the  territorial  integrity  of  the  country. 

Troops  were  sent  to  the  Rio  Grande  to  enforce  the 
claims  of  Mexico  to  the  territory  in  dispute.  This 
prepared  the  way  for  the  United  States  government 
to  send  troops,  under  General  Zachary  Taylor,  to  take 
up  a  position  at  Corpus  Christi.  Herrera  was  evi- 
dently convinced  of  the  inability  of  Mexico,  in  her 
then  crippled  condition,  to  carry  on  a  successful  war 
■with  the  United  States,  and  he  showed  a  disposition 
to  negotiate  for  a  peaceable  settlement  of  the  terri- 
torial dispute.  Nevertheless  troops  were  forwarded 
to  the  frontier;  and  among  the  officers  in  command 
was  General  Mariano  Paredes  y  Arrillaga. 

During  the  progress  of  the  war  that  ensued,  the 
changes  in  the  government  of  Mexico  were  unusually 
frequent.  The  Federalists  were  in  the  ascendant  in 
1845,  and  Gomez  Farias  and  Herrera  were  promi- 
nent candidates  for  the  Presidency.  The  latter  was 
almost  unanimously  elected,  A  certain  weakness  in 
declaring  his  Federalism  alienated  him  from  his  own 
party,  without  attracting  to  him  the  Church  and  the 
Centralists  who  were  the  natural  enemies  of  his  gov- 
ernment. In  addition  to  this,  his  efforts  to  avoid  a 
conflict  with  the  United  States  raised  a  popular  clamor 
against  his  administration,  and  speedily  brought  it  to 
an  end. 

General  Paredes,  on  his  way  to  the  seat  of  war, 
"  pronounced "  in  San  Luis  Potosi,  in  December, 
1845,  and  returned  to  the  capital  at  the  head  of 
about  six  thousand  men.  A  pronunciamento,  eman- 
ating from  the  army  in  San  Luis  Potosi  and  Tam- 
pico,  expressed  the  discontent  that  was  becoming 
general  over  the  administration  of  Herrera.     But  no 


WAR   WITH  THE    UNITED  STATES  157 

acts  of  violence  occurred,  and  arrangements  were 
made  for  the  surrender  of  the  capital  without  dis- 
order or  bloodshed.  Paredes  reached  the  capital  on 
the  second  of  January,  1846.  He  called  together  a 
Junta  of  Notables,  comprising  two  representatives 
from  each  Department;  and  by  this  Junta  he  was 
elected  President  two  days  later. 

He  took  an  oath  at  his  inauguration  to  "  sustain 
the  independence  and  integrity  of  the  national  terri- 
tory against  any  foreign  aggressions  whatever,  and 
to  maintain  the  Republican  popular  representative 
system  of  government  according  to  the  Plan  of  Ad- 
ministration of  the  Republic  agreed  to  by  the  act  of 
the  army  on  the  second  of  January."  The  acts  of 
the  junta  were  signed  by  Bravo,  Valencia,  Almonte, 
and  other  professed  enemies  of  Paredes.  In  the 
cabinet  appointed  by  him,  Almonte  held  the  post  of 
Secretary  of  War. 

The  man  who  had  once  built  up  and  now  destroyed 
Herrera's  administration  was  a  strangely  contradic- 
tory character.  Many  supposed  him  to  be  acting  at 
this  time  under  the  influence  of  Santa  Anna.  He 
declined  to  take  up  his  residence  in  the  National 
Palace,  avoided  all  ostentatious  display,  and  moved 
about  the  capital  unattended  by  any  military  or  other 
escort.  But  he  was  nevertheless  an  advocate  of  mon- 
archy; and  to  the  neglect  of  subjects  of  greater 
importance  then  prominently  before  the  people,  and 
of  the  war  then  in  progress,  he  used  his  position 
to  further  a  retrogressive  movement  and  to  propa- 
gate his  monarchical  ideas.  Lucas  Alaman,  the  pro- 
nounced monarchist,  was  intrusted  by  Paredes  with 
the  task  of  drawing  up  a  new  Constitution  similar 
in   form   to   the   "  Bases    Organicas."     Paredes  was 


158  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

favored,  in  his  monarchical  plans,  by  the  Spanish 
minister  then  in  Mexico.  He  supported  a  paper 
called  El  Tiempo,  edited  by  eminent  persons  of  the 
Conservative  party,  and  made  it  the  organ  of  his 
government.  He  was  intolerant  to  the  extent  of 
active  persecution  of  the  Liberal  writers  on  the  staff 
of  El  Monitor  Repuhlicano,  who  were  outspoken  in 
their  opposition  to  his  administration.  It  is  remark- 
able that  it  should  have  escaped  suspicion  at  the 
time,  that  he  was  in  collusion  with  Santa  Anna  to 
destroy  the  Republic  and  to  carry  out  the  threats 
which  Santa  Anna  is  alleged  to  have  made  when  he 
entered  upon  his  exile. 

A  revival  of  monarchical  ideas  in  an  extreme  wing 
of  the  Conservative  party  was  scarcely  to  be  regarded 
as  a  novel  phase  of  Mexican  politics.  It  had  mani- 
fested itself  before  to  such  an  extent  as  to  attract  the 
attention  of  publicists.  It  was  one  of  the  phases  of 
political  life  to  be  taken  into  serious  consideration  by 
any  one  who  would  attempt  to  study  the  constitutional 
history  of  Mexico  or  the  various  efforts  to  establish 
constitutional  government  therein. 

When,  as  late  as  1851,  a  political  pamphleteer 
attempted  to  describe  the  various  parties  and  factions 
in  Mexico,  he  accorded  recognition  to  the  Monarchists, 
but  flippantly  referred  to  them  as  "  calling  themselves 
Conservatives,"  and  stated  that  they  had  assumed  the 
task  of  propagating  their  "peculiar  political  heresies," 
and  stirring  up  feeling  against  the  Republic.  He 
pointed  out,  however,  the  impossibility  of  the  Mon- 
archists making  any  headway  toward  the  accomphsh- 
ment  of  their  purposes  as  long  as  the  United  States 
maintained  a  Republic.  In  according  to  Lucas  Ala- 
man,  the  celebrated  historian  and  publicist  of  Mexico, 


WAR   WITH  THE    UNITED  STATES  159 

the  chief  place  in  the  Monarchical  wing  of  the 
Centralist  or  Conservative  party,  the  pamphleteer 
ignored  a  more  outspoken  Monarchist  than  Alaman, 
Paredes,  or  any  of  the  contributors  to  M  Tiempo,  and 
overlooked  an  event  quite  worthy  of  his  attention 
and  of  ours,  being  not  without  its  bearing  upon  the 
events  now  under  consideration  and  upon  others  to 
which  we  must  shortly  pass. 

In  AuD-ust,  1840,  Jos6  Maria  Gutierrez  de  Estrada 
addressed  from  his  home,  in  one  of  the  suburbs  of 
the  capital,  a  letter  "  to  the  President  of  the  Eepublic, 
upon  the  necessity  of  seeking  in  a  Convention  the 
possible  remedy  for  the  evils  which  afflict  the  Repub- 
lic." The  letter  reviewed,  with  unsparing  frankness 
and  with  great  accuracy,  the  attempts  and  the  failures 
of  the  Mexicans  to  govern  themselves,  and  proposed 
the  establishment  of  a  monarchy  under  the  rule  of 
some  European  prince.  In  order  to  write  this  letter, 
Gutierrez  de  Estrada  resigned  the  office  of  Minister 
of  Foreign  Relations  in  the  Cabinet  of  Bustamante, 
and  also  his  seat  in  the  Mexican  Senate.  When  read 
in  Congress,  the  letter  created  a  profound  sensation. 
The  writer's  position  in  society,  his  respectable  ante- 
cedents, and  the  widespread  popular  confidence  in 
the  sincerity  of  his  convictions,  prevented  his  being 
dealt  with  in  accordance  with  the  customs  prevailing 
in  Mexico  at  that  time.  But  the  feeling  against  him 
was  so  strong  that  he  concluded  that  it  was  best  for 
him  to  reside  in  Europe,  which  he  did  until  near  the 
end  of  his  life. 

Paredes  was  a  good  soldier  but  an  indifferent  ex- 
ecutive, and  utterly  incapable  of  inspiring  the  people 
with  any  respect  for  him  or  any  enthusiasm  for  the 
measures  he  desired  to  have  adopted.     He  summoned 


160  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

a  "  Constituent "  Congress,  as  it  was  called,  in  May, 
1846,  and  it  sat  until  July.  On  the  sixteenth  of 
June  it  went  into  a  formal  election  of  President,  as  a 
result  of  which  Paredes  was  declared  elected  President, 
and  General  Nicolas  Bravo  became  Vice-President. 

In  the  meantime,  in  March,  1846,  General  Taylor 
of  the  United  States  Army  had  begun  his  advance 
from  Corpus  Christi  toward  the  Rio  Grande.  On  the 
twenty-sixth  of  that  month  he  was  on  the  banks  of 
that  river  opposite  Matamoras,  within  the  territory  in 
dispute  between  the  United  States  and  Mexico.  On 
that  soil  the  battles  of  Palo  Alto  and  Resaca  de  la 
Palma  were  fought  in  May,  resulting  in  victories  for  the 
superior  arms  of  the  Americans.  President  Polk,  who 
had  been  elected  chief  magistrate  of  the  United  States 
upon  the  issue  of  the  projected  annexation  of  Texas, 
asserted  in  a  message  to  Congress  that  "  by  the  act 
of  the  Republic  of  Mexico,  war  existed  between  that 
government  and  the  United  States."  From  the  pres- 
ent point  of  view,  and  studied  in  the  light  of  subse- 
quent events,  the  statement  of  the  Whig  members  of 
the  American  Congress  is  verified,  —  that  the  war 
was  really  begun  by  General  Taylor,  who  sought  an 
opportunity  to  cross  the  Rio  Grande  and  take  posses- 
sion of  Matamoras,  which  was  in  undisputed  Mexican 
territory.  This  he  did  immediately  afterward,  and 
proceeded  to  the  capture  of  Monterey  the  following 
September,  Upper  California  had  already  submitted 
to  the  navy  of  the  United  States,  commanded  by  Com- 
modore Sloat ;  and  Santa  F^,  the  key  to  New  Mexico, 
was  in  the  possession  of  General  Kearney.  All  this 
is  now  proved  to  have  been  part  of  the  programme 
upon  which  Polk  had  been  elected  President  of  the 
United  States.     The  remainder  of  the  programme  was 


TFAR    WITH    THE    UNITED  STATES  161 

carried  out  in  a  war  of  aggression  which  few  histo- 
rians now  attempt  to  justify,  with  the  acquisition  of 
territory  in  view  from  tlie  start. 

Paredes  was  at  the  head  of  the  party  in  Mexico 
favorable  to  prosecuting  the  war,  as  opposed  to  the 
poUcy  of  Herrera,  who,  seeing  that  it  was  impossible 
for  Mexico  to  gain  anything  from  a  struggle  with  a 
superior  power,  had  been  disposed  to  submit  the  ques- 
tions at  issue  to  arbitration  and  arrangement.  Again 
lack  of  unity  proved  the  curse  of  Mexico,  and  internal 
feuds  opened  the  way  for  the  success  of  the  invading 
army,  and  brought  the  whole  land  to  the  feet  of  the 
government  of  the  United  States. 

Paredes,  when  elected  President,  received  the  per- 
mission of  Congress  to  lead  the  army  against  the 
United  States ;  and,  also  with  the  permission  of  Con- 
gress, he  left  the  government  in  the  hands  of  General 
Bravo  in  July.  A  pronunciamento  at  the  Ciudadela, 
in  the  capital,  a  few  days  later,  brought  the  administra- 
tions of  both  Paredes  and  Bravo  to  an  end,  and  made 
General  Mariano  Salas  President.  This  pronuncia- 
mento had  evidently  been  instigated  by  letters  written 
by  Santa  Anna,  in  his  Cuban  exile.  All  who  had 
been  banished  for  their  political  opinions  since  1821 
were  by  the  pronunciamento  invited  to  return  and 
cooperate  with  the  Mexicans  in  driving  the  invaders 
out  of  the  country;  Congress  was  to  take  all  nec- 
essary action  relative  to  the  war  with  the  United 
States,  and  Mexicans  were  to  be  guided  accordingly. 
General  Santa  Anna  was  declared  to  have  had  the 
glory  of  establishing  the  Republic,  and,  whatever  his 
errors,  he  was  still  the  firm  supporter  of  public  liberty 
and  of  national  honor.  Hence  he  was  proclaimed 
leader  of  the  enterprise  proposed  in  the  pronuncia- 

11 


162  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

mento ;  and  Mexico  was  prepared  for  another  exhibi- 
tion of  political  inconsistency,  and  for  surrender  to  a 
man  who  was  acting  as  the  agent  of  the  United  States 
with  scarcely  an  effort  at  concealment. 

Salas  was  chief  of  the  army  at  the  capital  when  he 
took  charge  of  the  executive  office.  He  was  a  Mod- 
erate Liberal,  and  his  administration  was  in  the  direc- 
tion of  Federalism.  He  succeeded  in  reconciling  the 
various  parties  and  factions,  in  the  face  of  the  peril  in 
which  all  were  placed  ;  Paredes  was  put  under  arrest, 
and,  though  treated  with  respect,  was  imprisoned  in 
Castle  Perote  for  a  time,  and  finally  sent  into  exile. 
The  Constitution  of  1824  was  reestablished,  by  the 
decree  of  Salas,  upon  the  recommendation  of  Santa 
Anna.  Having  done  this,  Salas  attempted  to  extri- 
cate the  Presidential  office  from  the  tangle  in  which  it 
was  found,  and  convened  Congress  for  a  new  election. 
Santa  Anna  was  recalled  from  his  exile  as  the  military 
leader  most  competent  to  cope  with  the  difficulties 
then  presenting  themselves. 

It  seems  to  have  escaped  the  attention  of  the  Mexi- 
cans at  the  time  that  for  Santa  Anna  then  to  land  at 
Vera  Cruz  it  would  be  necessary  for  him  to  run  the 
blockade  which  the  United  States  army  under  General 
Scott  had  establislied  in  front  of  that  city ;  and  it  was 
not  until  afterwards  that  it  was  seen  that  his  presence 
in  Mexico  at  such  a  juncture  was  only  possible  through 
the  collusion  of  the  United  States  government.  The 
interest  of  that  government  in  having  him  at  the 
head  of  the  armies  of  Mexico  lay  in  the  understand- 
ing that  the  wily  and  unscrupulous  politician  would 
be  sure  to  add  to  the  discord  at  the  capital  of  Mexico, 
and  thus  render  the  victory  of  the  United  States  an 
easier  one. 


WAR    WITH  THE    UNITED  STATES  163 

Accordingly  Santa  Anna  landed  at  Vera  Cruz,  on 
the  sixteenth  of  August.  He  was  received  by  but 
few  friends,  and  liis  welcome  was  of  neither  a  public 
nor  a  popular  character,  nor  was  it  marked  by  any 
enthusiasm.  His  personal  vanity  received  a  wound. 
He  was  chilled  and  disappointed  by  the  coldness  of 
his  fellow-countrymen.  He  entertained  at  a  public 
dinner  in  Vera  Cruz  a  large  number  of  civil  disni- 
taries  and  military  officers,  and  tlius  succeeded  in 
securing  something  in  the  way  of  a  demonstration 
and  some  show  of  enthusiasm.  He  was  placed  in 
communication  with  Salas,  and  letters  passed  between 
them  filled  with  bombastic  expressions  of  patriotism. 
Santa  Anna  was  nothing  if  not  theatrical.  He  had 
learned,  however,  to  be  cautious  of  liis  countrymen. 
He  tarried,  on  the  plea  of  ill-healtli,  until  General 
Almonte  could  go  to  the  capital  and  make  sure  what 
was  the  popular  feeling,  and  whether  his  advent  in 
the  City  of  Mexico  would  be  safe. 

He  then  issued  a  long  manifesto,  apologizing  for 
his  conduct  since  1834,  and  criticising  Herrera  and 
Paredes  very  severely.  He  denounced  the  proposal 
for  monarchy,  despite  the  ugly  stories  that  had  ap- 
peared in  a  French  paper  to  the  effect  that  he  had 
sent  a  memorial  to  the  courts  of  France,  Spain,  and 
England,  "  offering  to  put  himself  at  the  head  of  an 
expeditionary  army  to  plant  a  monarchy  on  the  Mexi- 
can soil,  and  to  place  all  his  influence  and  resent- 
ments at  the  disposal  and  for  the  service  of  a  foreign 
dynasty."  He  had  denied  this  story  most  emphati- 
cally from  the  place  of  his  exile  in  Cuba;  but  the 
evidence  seems  clear  that  he  had  actually  entered 
into  negotiations  of  that  character.  He  recom- 
mended  that   Congress,  about  to   be   assembled,  be 


164  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

empowered  to  regulate  all  branches  of  the  govern- 
ment, and  that  the  Provisional  Executive  be  entirely 
under  its  control,  and  that,  until  a  new  Constitution 
could  be  adopted  and  proclaimed,  the  Constitution  of 
1824  be  revived  for  the  internal  administration  of  the 
Departments. 

On  the  twenty-second  of  August,  Salas  issued  a 
Bando  Nacional,  or  edict,  embodying  the  views  of 
Santa  Anna,  and  at  the  same  time  sent  word  to  him 
to  hasten  his  appearance  at  the  capital.  After  further 
correspondence  between  them,  Santa  Anna  left  his 
hacienda,  and  reached  Ayolla  on  the  fourteenth  of 
September.  It  is  so  usual  to  find  Mexican  leaders 
consulting  the  dramatic  features  of  a  situation,  that 
we  fully  understand  the  selection  of  this  date  for 
Santa  Anna's  proclamation,  wherein  he  hoped  to 
enter  the  City  of  Mexico  on  the  following  day  at 
noon,  that  he  might  "celebrate  with  the  people  the 
two  great  blessings  which  had  fallen  upon  the  nation, 
—  her  independence  and  her  liberty,  —  the  Crrito  de 
Dolores  and  the  Constitution  of  1824."  The  procla- 
mation was  otherwise  filled  with  bombastic  profes- 
sions of  disinterested  patriotism,  which  are  ludicrous 
in  view  of  his  well-known  love  of  power  and  of  the 
strong  dictatorial  character  of  his  government.  But 
it  was  characteristic  of  the  Mexican  people  that  they 
should  accept  the  proclamation  in  good  faith ;  and, 
forgetting  the  manner  in  which  they  had  driven 
Santa  Anna  out  a  year  and  a  half  before,  under  accu- 
sations of  treason  and  robbery  (which  charges  had 
never  been  so  much  as  denied  on  his  part),  that  they 
should  now  receive  him  in  their  capital  with  rejoic- 
ings more  enthusiastic  than  had  ever  before  been 
witnessed    in    that   city.     The    people   were    almost 


IFAR    WITH  THE    UNITED  STATES  165 

frantic  with  joy,  and  seemed  to  behold  in  Santa  Anna 
their  national  savior. 

The  prosecution  of  the  war  with  the  United  States 
was  very  popular  at  this  time,  and  Santa  Anna's  pref- 
erence was  to  be  at  the  head  of  the  army.  He  wisely 
shrank  from  openly  assuming  the  political  manage- 
ment of  the  government.  He  had  been  placed  in 
power  by  means  of  a  coalition  between  the  Federalists 
and  his  special  partisans.  But  the  division  of  the 
parties  had  then  recently  changed.  It  was  assumed 
that  the  old  Centralists,  the  "Escoceses,"  and  the 
Conservatives,  had  gone  out  of  existence.  All  were 
now  Federalists.  But  the  Federalists  were  divided 
into  two  factions.  One  was  called  "Puro,"  or  Ultra 
Liberal ;  the  other  comprised  the  "  Moderados,"  or 
Moderates,  who  were  scarcely  in  advance  of  the  Con- 
servatives. These  two  factions  were  now  in  a  conflict 
quite  as  bitter  as  any  that  had  formerly  existed  be- 
tween Conservatives  and  Federalists.  Santa  Anna 
was  shrewdly  aware  that  he  could  retain  his  hold  upon 
the  popular  regard  only  so  long  as  dissensions  were 
kept  alive  between  these  opposing  factions. 

The  election  provided  for  by  Salas  was  eventually 
held  in  Congress.  Each  State  cast  one  vote,  which 
was  determined  by  the  majority  of  its  deputies.  Santa 
Anna  received  a  majority  of  four  votes  for  President. 
A  separate  vote  for  Vice-President  resulted  in  the 
election  of  Gomez  Farias.  This  election  by  no  means 
signified  that  the  popularity  of  Santa  Anna  had  been 
fully  or  permanently  restored,  or  that  he  had  the  full 
confidence  of  those  who  were  in  public  life.  He  was 
at  San  Luis  Potosi,  with  a  poorly  equipped  and  un- 
disciplined amiy,  and  with  but  scanty  means  of  sup- 
port.    The  condition  of  the  country  was  deplorable. 


166  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

The  army  of  the  United  States  was  rapidly  advancing 
upon  Buena  Vista.  Large  territories  had  been  sub- 
jugated by  the  invaders.  Santa  Anna's  position  was 
far  from  an  enviable  one.  He  issued  despatch  after 
despatch  and  proclamation  after  proclamation,  to  stim- 
ulate Congress  and  the  people  to  uphold  him  in  the 
defence  of  the  country. 

While  Santa  Anna  was  thus  in  the  field,  Gomez 
Farias  was  left  in  charge  of  the  government.  In 
January,  1847,  he  proposed,  as  a  means  of  raising 
money  for  the  conduct  of  the  war,  a  forced  loan  of 
four  million  dollars  from  the  Church.  The  Church 
was  in  possession  of  all  the  available  wealth  of  the 
country.  Her  interests  were  quite  as  much  imper- 
illed as  any  in  the  land,  by  the  invasion  of  the  army 
of  the  United  States  ;  and  she  was  receiving  the  pro- 
tection of  the  army  of  Mexico  quite  as  much  as  any 
other  of  the  constituents  of  the  nation.  It  was  but 
right,  therefore,  that  she  should  assist  the  govern- 
ment in  the  prosecution  of  the  war.  The  Moder- 
ates, however,  with  their  Conservative  antecedents 
and  clerical  sympathies,  opposed  the  measure  when 
it  was  brought  before  Congress ;  and  both  "  Moder- 
ados  "  and  Clericals  were  greatly  exasperated  when, 
in  spite  of  their  opposition,  the  measure  was  adopted. 
They  succeeded,  however,  in  creating  dissensions  in 
the  troops  raised  for  the  defence  of  the  country. 
They  not  only  resisted  all  attempts  of  the  govern- 
ment to  disarm  mutinous  soldiers,  but  they  furnished 
resources  for  the  maintenance  of  a  struggle  against 
the  government,  and  sought  to  prevent  the  decrees 
from  being  carried  into  effect  by  which  the  Church 
was  to  be  made  to  disgorge  her  wealth  for  the  relief 
of  the  national  distress. 


WAR    WITH  THE    UNITED  STATES  167 

Thus  arose  the  "  Polkos  Pronunciamento,"  as  it 
was  called,  taking  its  name  from  the  President  of  the 
United  States,  who  was  regarded  in  Mexico  as  hav- 
ing precipitated  this  war  upon  a  defenceless  country. 
The  name  "  Polkos  "  was  applied  to  the  "  Modera- 
dos,"  who,  under  the  leadership  of  General  Salas, 
were  practically  assisting  the  United  States  in  their 
war  of  aggression.  For  a  month  the  streets  of  the 
capital  were  scenes  of  wild  confusion  and  violence. 
The  efforts  of  Gomez  Farias  to  obtain  the  assistance 
of  the  Church  in  the  prosecution  of  the  war  was 
resisted  by  the  "Polkos."  While  the  squadron  of 
the  United  States  was  in  the  Gulf  of  Mexico,  and 
preparing  to  land  soldiers  in  Vera  Cruz  to  march 
upon  the  capital  of  Mexico,  the  "  Polkos  "  were  seek- 
ing to  make  terms  of  peace  with  the  United  States, 
without  even  attempting  to  preserve  the  integrity 
of  the  national  territory.  It  was  the  action  of  the 
"  Polkos"  that  made  the  war,  on  the  part  of  the  army 
of  the  United  States,  a  mere  military  progress  through 
Mexico  from  the  borders  of  the  land  to  the  capital. 

The  adoption  of  the  measure  proposed  by  Gomez 
Farias  brought  Santa  Anna  back  to  the  capital  from 
the  battlefield  of  Buena  Vista,  where  he  had  suffered 
defeat.  He  removed  Gomez  Farias  from  office,  and 
himself  resumed  the  functions  of  chief  magistrate  for 
a  few  days.  When  he  was  called  again  to  the  seat  of 
war,  in  April,  he  ignored  Gomez  Farias,  abolished  the 
office  of  Vice-President,  and  appointed  General  Pedro 
Anaya  as  Acting  President,  or  Presidential  Substi- 
tute. Anaya  was  a  man  of  the  highest  probity,  and 
his  period  of  rule,  though  brief,  was  honorable.  Lead- 
ing Liberals  offered  him  their  services  in  defence  of 
the  country. 


168  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Santa  Anna  suffered  another  defeat  at  Cerro  Gordo, 
and  returned  with  the  Mexican  army  to  the  capital, 
where  he  resumed  control  of  the  government  until 
the  occupation  of  the  city  by  the  victorious  army 
under  General  Scott.  Then  he  turned  the  command 
of  the  Mexican  army  over  to  General  Lombardini, 
resigned  the  Presidency,  and,  as  one  who  had  ac- 
complished all  that  he  had  intended,  left  the  coun- 
try. He  was  succeeded  in  the  Chief  Magistracy  by 
the  President  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Justice,  Manuel 
de  la  Pena  y  Pena,  who  took  charge  of  the  govern- 
ment in  Caneleja,  near  Toluca,  and  then  removed  it 
to  Queretaro.  Congress,  when  convened  in  Quere- 
taro,  appointed  General  Anaya  Acting  President,  in 
November,  1847.  He  remained  in  office  until  the 
following  January,  when  Manuel  de  la  Peiia  y  Pena 
resumed  the  office,  and  held  it  until  the  third  of  June, 
1848.  Then,  by  virtue  of  an  election,  General  Jos^ 
Joaquin  Herrera  became  President  a  second  time,  and 
something  like  order  was  restored  for  a  while  to  the 
government  of  Mexico. 


THE  "PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  169 


CHAPTER   IX 
THE   "PLAN   DE  AYOTLA" 

HERRERA  was  installed  in  the  Presidency, 
in  Queretaio,  on  the  third  of  June,  1848. 
The  first  important  act  of  his  administra- 
tion was  to  conclude,  by  a  treaty  of  peace  with  the 
United  States  (the  Treaty  of  Guadalupe-Hidalgo),  the 
war  which,  though  he  had  tried  to  avert  it,  had  be- 
gun in  his  former  term  of  office.  As  a  result  of  this 
treaty,  Mexico  was  deprived  of  what  might  have  been 
made  her  fairest  and  wealthiest  province,  compris- 
ing 522,955  square  miles  of  territory,  including  New 
Mexico  and  California. 

As  the  armies  of  the  United  States  retired,  Herrera 
removed  the  seat  of  his  government  to  the  City  of 
Mexico,  the  rightful  capital  of  the  nation.  The  tasks 
confronting  his  administration  were  exceedingly  diffi- 
cult. The  country  had  been  sadly  demoralized  by  the 
war,  though  it  had  been  less  devastated  thereby,  even 
in  the  track  of  the  victorious  army,  than  by  the  almost 
incessant  wars  that  had  resulted  from  the  political 
turmoils  to  which  the  unhappy  nation  was  subject. 
It  was  necessary  to  reorganize  the  various  depart- 
ments of  government ;  to  replenish  the  national  treas- 
ury, depleted  notwithstanding  the  fifteen  million 
dollars  paid  by  the  United  States  for  the  territory 
acquired  as  the  spoils  of  war;  to  establish  credit 
abroad,  and  to  reunite  a  divided  country,  before  the 
prosperity  of  the  nation  could  be  advanced. 


170  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

In  the  face  of  all  these  difficulties,  Herrera  succeeded 
in  pursuing,  in  his  administration,  a  course  that  was 
wise,  economical,  tolerant,  and  moral.  His  cabinet 
was  composed  of  men  of  honor.  He  was,  however, 
unpopular  with  the  clergy,  Avho  lost  no  opportunity 
for  expressing  their  disapproval  of  his  liberal  and  pro- 
gressive ideas  ;  and,  in  order  to  delay  the  accomplish- 
ment of  the  tasks  confronting  him  in  his  government 
of  the  country,  General  Paredes  "  pronounced "  in 
Aguas  Calientes,  using  as  a  pretext  for  his  revolt  his 
dissatisfaction  with  the  terms  on  which  peace  had 
been  concluded  with  the  United  States.  The  out- 
break was  quickly  suppressed  by  government  troops, 
and  the  land  had  peace  for  a  time.  But  the  disturb- 
ing elements  in  the  social  economy  of  Mexico  were 
only  quiescent  in  order  that  they  might  regain  their 
wonted  strength. 

General  Mariano  Arista  was  constitutionally  elected 
President  in  1850  and  was  installed  in  office  in 
January,  1851.  He  had  been  commander  of  the  Mexi- 
can army  at  the  battle  of  Resaca  de  la  Palma,  and  had 
subsequently  held  the  post  of  Minister  of  War  in 
Herrera's  cabinet.  He  was  a  man  of  no  scholastic 
attainments,  but  was  possessed  of  correct  judgment, 
having  sought  to  supply  the  deficiencies  in  his  educa- 
tion by  consulting  the  wisdom  of  others.  He  was  at 
least  capable  of  impressing  foreign  nations  as  being 
liberal-minded,  patriotic,  honest,  and  as  one  of  the 
best  men  of  his  time  and  country. 

It  was  impossible  long  to  hold  in  check  the  restless 
spirit  of  the  Mexican  political  leaders.  Arista  had 
begun  certain  reforms  in  the  army,  without  which  it 
was  impossible  to  reform  the  state.  Interference  with 
the  military  branch  of  the  government,  like  meddling 


THE   ''PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  171 

with  the  religion  of  the  people,  was  a  fruitful  source 
of  disturbance  in  Mexico ;  and  the  clergy  had  already 
taken  alarm  at  his  liberalism.  Arista  made  tlie  fur- 
ther mistake  of  trying  to  bring  tlie  various  political 
factions  into  accord.  Congress  was  at  the  time  de- 
cidedly Liberal,  and  united  with  him  in  a  policy 
of  opposition  to  Centralism.  Arista  was  himself  a 
"  Moderado."  In  a  conscientious  endeavor  to  concili- 
ate the  parties,  he  appointed  to  his  cabinet  persons 
who  were  not  fully  in  accord  with  the  Federal  idea  of 
government.  This,  like  compromises  attempted  on 
former  occasions,  failed  of  its  purpose,  and  served  to 
hasten  the  downfall  of  his  administration. 

In  July,  1852,  a  revolution  broke  out  in  Guadala- 
jara, in  the  State  of  Jalisco,  and  spread  to  Chihuahua, 
and  even  as  far  south  as  Oaxaca.  It  took  the  name 
of  the  "  Plan  del  Hospicio,"  and  was  clearly  in  the 
interests  of  the  Conservative  element.  The  Governor 
of  the  State  of  San  Luis  Potosi  was  assassinated,  and 
the  revolution  otherwise  assumed  alarming  propor- 
tions. Arista  found  it  impossible  to  act  in  accordance 
^dth  the  advice  of  his  friends  without  violating  what 
he  regarded  as  the  law  of  the  land,  and  he  was  averse 
to  assuming  the  responsibility  of  involving  the  country 
in  another  civil  war.  Disheartened  at  the  course  af- 
fairs were  taking,  he  resigned  the  Presidency,  without, 
however,  dissolving  Congress.  Thus  Mexico  lost,  in 
an  important  crisis,  one  of  the  best  of  her  rulers,  —  an 
eminent  patriot,  a  model  soldier,  and  citizen.  He  left 
the  country  immediately,  and  died  a  year  later,  in 
poverty  and  obscurity,  at  Lisbon,  Portugal. 

Congress  installed,  as  Arista's  successor,  Don  Juan 
Bautista  Ceballos,  who  was  President  of  the  Supreme 
Court  of  Justice  and  a  pronounced  Moderado.     This 


172  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

meant,  in  his  case,  that  he  was  strongly  inclined  to  be 
a  Conservative.  In  accordance  with  former  usages  in 
such  crises.  Congress,  after  releasing  all  prisoners  held 
by  the  government  for  political  offences,  conferred  full 
discretionary  powers  in  all  branches  of  the  govern- 
ment upon  the  President,  which  was  equivalent  to 
constituting  Ceballos  Dictator. 

But  Congress  was  far  too  liberal  in  its  principles  to 
suit  Ceballos,  and  he  forthwith  dissolved  the  body 
from  which  he  derived  both  his  office  and  his  au- 
thority. Congress  immediately  reassembled  in  the 
house  of  one  of  the  deputies  in  the  capital,  passed 
resolutions  branding  the  doughty  President  as  a 
traitor,  and  proceeded  to  elect  Juan  Mugica  y  Osorio 
to  the  Presidency ;  and  Mexico  returned  once  more  to 
a  state  of  anarchy  and  political  chaos.  Mugica  was  a 
merchant  of  the  capital,  serving  at  tlie  time  as  Gov- 
ernor of  the  State  of  Puebla.  He  declined  the  rather 
shadowy  office  thus  offered  him  (a  rare  instance  of 
self-abnegation  in  the  history  of  Mexican  public  life), 
and  Ceballos,  realizing  the  seriousness  of  the  opposi- 
tion to  his  arbitrary  administration,  resigned  the  Presi- 
dency. A  military  demonstration  was  made  in  favor 
of  General  Manuel  Maria  Lombardini  and  Centralism, 
coupled  with  a  demand  for  a  national  convention  to 
frame  a  new  Constitution.  Lombardini  was  seated 
as  Acting  President;  and  Ceballos,  to  relieve  him- 
self of  further  responsibility  and  to  insure  the  accept- 
ance of  his  resignation,  went  through  the  formalit)""  of 
appointing  him  President. 

Lombardini  had  been  reared  a  soldier,  had  partici- 
pated in  the  struggle  between  the  "  Yorkinos  "  and 
"  Escoceses  "  in  1828,  and  had  suffered  banishment 
by  Arista  after  the  war  with  the  United  States.     He 


THE  ''PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  173 

was  a  clear-headed  man,  but  without  any  ability 
as  a  statesman. 

The  purposes  of  the  leaders  of  the  revolution  which 
was  now  in  progress  became  apparent  when  a  com- 
mittee of  public  men  started  out  for  New  Granada  in 
search  of  Santa  Anna.  That  irrepressible  person  had 
throughout  his  exile  maintained  a  correspondence  with 
the  Conservative,  Centralist,  and  Clerical  leaders,  and 
no  one  could  be  more  successful  than  he  in  influenc- 
ing the  minds  of  the  Mexicans  by  means  of  letters. 
He  was  far  more  successful  in  managing  the  domestic 
affairs  of  Mexico  when  abroad  than  he  had  been  in 
efforts  to  control  them  at  home.  General  Lombardini 
had  no  difficulty  in  securing  the  election,  by  the  States, 
of  General  Santa  Anna  as  President  of  Mexico. 

He  landed  in  Mexico  on  the  first  of  April,  1853,  and 
almost  before  the  people  were  aware  of  his  presence 
among  them  he  began  a  journey  which  was  in  the 
nature  of  a  triumphal  procession  from  the  coast  to  the 
capital.  Banners  and  bells,  cannon,  triumphal  arches 
and  flowers,  were  all  called  into  requisition  in  welcom- 
ing the  man  who  had  repeatedly  threatened  Mexico's 
destruction,  and  who  had  never  yet  answered  the 
charges  of  robbery  and  treason  brought  against  him ; 
who  had  been  engaged  in  secret  negotiations  with  the 
United  States  government,  through  which  the  issue 
of  the  war  between  that  nation  and  Mexico  had  been 
disastrous  to  the  latter  country;  who  had  intrigued 
with  European  powers  for  the  institution  of  monarchy 
in  his  native  land ;  and  whom  the  Mexican  people  had 
more  than  once  declared  worthy  of  death,  and  had  not 
suffered  to  remain  in  their  land. 

At  Guadalupe- Hidalgo,  he  took  the  oath  as  Presi- 
dent  on  the  fifteenth  of   April.     He  organized  his 


174  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

government,  with  Lucas  Alaman,  the  avowed  mon- 
archist, at  its  head  as  Secretary  of  State;  and  with 
Conservatives,  in  full  accord  with  his  plans  of  abso- 
lutism, in  charge  of  the  other  portfolios.  Five  days 
later  he  entered  the  capital,  and  issued  a  proclamation 
of  general  amnesty  to  all  who  had  been  charged  with 
political  offences.  It  was  an  appropriate  afterpiece 
to  the  farce  he  had  been  acting ;  for  nothing  could  be 
more  ludicrous  than  Santa  Anna,  guilty  as  he  was  of 
every  political  crime,  offering  pardon  to  those  who 
had  fallen  under  the  displeasure  of  his  adherents 
because  of  their  efforts  to  support  the  Constitutional 
Government  of  Mexico. 

The  Centralists  and  Conservatives  were  again 
everywhere  triumphant.  The  nation  had  volunta- 
rily placed  itself  at  the  feet  of  its  oppressors,  and 
was  really  entitled  to  little  sympathy.  An  era  of 
the  most  despotic  absolutism  ensued.  Congress  was 
dissolved,  and  the  legislatures  of  the  several  States 
were  abolished.  The  government  of  every  city 
having  less  than  ten  thousand  inhabitants  was  sup- 
pressed, and  the  administration  of  the  revenue  was 
centralized.  Public  employees  Ave  re  deprived  of  the 
right  to  express  an  opinion  upon  public  affairs.  The 
liberty  of  the  press  was  curtailed  to  such  an  extent 
as  to  be  virtually  destroyed.  The  militia  was  dis- 
banded, and  the  army  was  increased.  The  Jesuits 
v/ere  reestablished  by  decree,  dated  May  first,  1853. 
The  Dictator  provided  himself  with  ample  funds,  by 
the  sale  to  the  United  States,  for  ten  millions  of 
dollars,  of  a  tract  of  land  known  as  the  Gadsden 
Purchase.  Of  this  amount,  very  little  found  its  way 
into  the  national  treasury  of  Mexico.  While  thus 
depriving   the  Mexicans  of  their  rights,  and  using 


THE  ''PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  175 

his  position  for  his  personal  aggrandizement,  Santa 
Anna  sought  some  means  to  flatter  certain  classes. 
He  reestabHshed  the  Order  of  Guadalupe,  originally 
instituted  by  the  Emperor  Iturbide,  retaining  for 
himself  therein  the  office  of  Grand  Master.  Throw- 
ing aside  all  pretentions  to  Republican  simplicity, 
he  demanded  that  he  be  addressed  as  "  Serene  High- 
ness." 

At  the  same  time,  plans  for  the  establishment  of  a 
monarchy  in  Mexico  were  being  revived,  as  though  in 
fulfilment  of  his  alleged  threat ;  and  in  July,  1854, 
Santa  Anna  appointed  Gutierrez  de  Estrada  (who 
had  been  maintaining  an  active  correspondence  with 
the  Clerical  and  Monarchical  leaders  in  Mexico)  a 
special  commissioner  to  negotiate  with  the  govern- 
ments of  France,  England,  Austria,  and  Spain,  for 
the  establishment  of  a  European  prince  upon  a  throne 
to  be  erected  in  Mexico,  But  for  the  sudden  and 
timely  fall  of  Santa  Amia,  some  results  might  have 
been  obtained  from  these  negotiations.  "  Whom  the 
gods  would  destroy  they  fii"st  make  mad."  Santa 
Anna's  personal  vanity  carried  him  to  the  extent  of 
madness.  To  many  persons  who  by  no  means  sanc- 
tioned liis  acts,  his  assumptions  of  grandeur  were  the 
subject  of  ridicule.  The  army  was  naturally  pleased 
with  his  policy  of  Centralism,  and  some  of  the  garri- 
sons were  ready  at  any  time  to  proclaim  him  Em- 
peror. There  were  some  who  actually  believed  that 
his  strong  personal  government  was  necessary  to  save 
Mexico  from  anarchy  and  ruin.  He  had  a  body  of 
sychophants  about  him  who  held  him  up  before  the 
people  as  a  self-sacrificing  hero  who  was  giving  up 
his  all  to  the  public  good.  But  his  pride  and  arro- 
gance caused  his  final  downfall. 


176  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

On  the  sixteenth  of  December,  1853,  he  issued  a 
decree  declaring  himself  Perpetual  Dictator.  A  gov- 
ernment was  thereby  established  more  absolute  than 
any  Mexico  had  ever  yet  known.  The  press  was 
muzzled,  and  a  system  of  espionage  was  instituted 
by  which  the  enemies  of  the  Dictator  could  be  dis- 
covered and  brought  to  punishment.  The  Dictator- 
ship was  to  be  largely  a  government  by  intrigue. 
High  Liberals  were  imprisoned,  and  the  "  court "  of 
the  Dictator  was  filled  with  the  most  vicious  members 
of  society. 

-  Alaman  promptly  resigned  the  portfolio  of  State. 
Monarchist  as  he  was,  he  was  disgusted  with  the 
prospect  of  Mexico  under  the  Imperial  rule  of  such 
a  man  as  Santa  Anna.  A  revolution  long  brewing  in 
Acapulco  finally  broke  out.  The  leader  was  the  old 
revolutionary  hero,  General  Juan  Alvarez.  A  new 
order  of  things  was  dawning  upon  Mexico. 

Alvarez  was  a  full-blooded  Indian,  who  exerted  a 
great  influence  over  the  people  of  his  race.  He  had 
served  under  Morelos,  and  had  never  ceased  to  love 
liberty.  At  this  time  he  was  over  sixty-three  years 
of  age,  and  was  serving  as  governor  of  the  State  of 
Guerrero.  The  Dictatorship  of  Santa  Anna  proposed 
to  deprive  him  of  his  governorship  and  destroy  the 
sovereigntj'  of  his  State. 

The  new  revolutionary  movement  was  called  the 
"  Plan  de  Ayotla."  It  called  for  a  Congress  to  form 
a  new  Constitution,  by  which  a  Federal  Republican 
system  would  take  the  place  of  the  Dictatorship  estab- 
lished by  Santa  Anna.  The  "  Plan  "  as  originally 
set  forth  was  somewhat  modified,  in  order  that  it 
might  commend  itself  to  the  "  Moderados,"  or  less 
extreme  Conservatives,  and  gain  their  support,  which 


THE  ''PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  111 

seemed  to  mean  its  eventual  success ;  and  more  par- 
ticularly that  it  might  gain  the  support  of  General 
Ignacio  Comonfort,  who  was  destined  to  be  a  leader 
in  the  affairs  of  Mexico  at  a  critical  period  of  her 
history. 

Comonfort  was  in  many  respects  a  remarkable  man. 
He  was  at  this  time  about  forty  years  of  age,  and  in 
addition  to  his  military  training  (he  was  a  captain  of 
cavalry  as  early  as  1832,  and  had  risen  to  the  rank 
of  General  since)  he  had  some  knowledge  of  public 
affairs.  He  was  prefect  of  Tlalpa  when  scarcely  more 
than  of  legal  age,  and  at  the  age  of  thirty  was  a  deputy 
to  Congress  ;  and  again,  four  years  later,  was  sitting  in 
the  Congress  at  Queretaro.  He  was  then  chosen  Sena- 
tor by  the  State  of  Puebla,  and  served  until  1851. 
He  was  a  third  time  elected  to  Congress  in  1852, 
and  served  subsequently  as  Custom-House  director. 
His  dismissal  from  this  post  by  Santa  Anna  was  the 
direct  cause  of  his  joining  Alvarez  and  attaching  him- 
self to  the  "  Plan  de  Ayotla."  He  was  of  the  Liberal 
party,  but  was  disposed  to  be  conciliatory,  and  pro- 
posed the  modification  of  the  original  "  Plan  "  which 
was  intended  to  attract  the  "  Moderados." 

Comonfort  organized  and  reinforced  the  troops  iden- 
tified with  the  new  movement,  and  found  himself  at 
the  head  of  an  army  ready  to  assume  the  aggressive 
and  make  itself  formidable  to  the  Dictator  at  the 
capital.  The  "  Plan  "  received  jubilant  support  from 
every  quarter.  It  was  seconded  by  distinguished  lead- 
ers in  Michoacan,  in  Nuevo  Le6n,  in  TamauHpas,  in 
San  Luis  Potosi,  in  Vera  Cruz,  and  in  the  State  of 
Mexico.  Santa  Anna,  being  unsuccessful  in  his  efforts 
to  suppress  the  revolution,  now  tried  to  conciliate  the 
malcontents  by  changing  his  policy.     He  removed  the 

12 


178  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

Conservatives  from  his  cabinet,  and  appointed  "  Mod- 
erados  "  in  their  places.  But  it  was  all  to  no  purpose. 
His  changres  of  front  while  he  was  in  office  deceived 
nobody.  It  was  only  when  he  was  out  of  the  coun- 
try that  his  professions  of  conversion  to  Liberalism 
affected  the  popular  mind.  The  "  Plan  de  Ayotla  " 
continued  to  gain  ground.  The  popular  elections, 
proposed  by  Santa  Anna  to  determine  whether  or  not 
his  government  by  Dictatorship  should  continue,  were 
so  fraudulently  manipulated  by  the  Conservatives  as 
to  increase  the  popular  discontent  and  contribute  to 
the  success  of  the  cause  of  Alvarez  and  of  the  "  Plan 
de  Ayotla." 

Santa  Anna  gave  up  the  governmental  experiment 
as  hopeless.  He  appointed  a  triumvirate,  composed 
of  the  President  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Justice, 
General  Salas,  and  General  Martin  Carrera,  to  admin- 
ister the  government  during  his  proposed  absence 
from  the  capital ;  then  he  secretly  left  the  city,  on  the 
night  of  the  ninth  of  August,  1855,  and  was  escorted 
by  Haro  y  Tamaris  to  Perote.  There  he  issued  a  mani- 
festo —  the  last  of  the  remarkable  papers  of  that  class 
by  which  he  was  to  address  the  Mexican  people.  It 
commended  his  own  services,  and  laid  upon  others  the 
culpability  of  having  ruined  the  country.  On  the  thir- 
teenth of  August  he  went  into  voluntary  exile.  He 
was  never  again  permitted  to  take  a  prominent  part 
in  the  politics  of  Mexico. 

According  to  the  new  "  Plan,"  Santa  Anna  was  to 
be  deprived  of  the  Presidency ;  a  President  ad  interim 
was  to  be  appointed  by  a  Junta,  or  Assembly  of  Rep- 
resentatives from  all  the  States ;  and  a  Congress  was 
to  be  convened  for  the  purpose  of  adopting  a  consti- 
tution by  which  Mexico  was  thenceforth  to  be  gov- 


THE  ''PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  179 

erned.  Santa  Anna  had,  by  his  own  act,  obviated 
the  necessity  of  taking  the  first  step  in  this  pro- 
gramme ;  and  the  leaders  of  the  "  Plan  "  proceeded 
forthwith  to  convene  a  "Constituent  Congress,"  as 
it  was  called.  In  the  anarchy  which  followed  the 
flight  of  Santa  Anna  from  the  capital,  General  Rom- 
nlo  Diaz  de  la  Vega  became  Acting  President,  by  the 
nomination  of  the  garrison  at  the  capital  and  with  the 
consent  of  the  governing  triumvirate  appointed  by 
Santa  Anna,  He  was  quickly  succeeded  by  General 
Martin  Carrera,  who  resigned  within  a  month,  and 
the  duties  of  the  Executive  office  again  devolved  upon 
General  Diaz  de  la  Vega,  who  practically  represented 
the  party  sustaining  the  "  Plan  de  Ayotla,"  and  he  ap- 
pointed a  cabinet  composed  of  Liberals  and  adherents 
of  the  "  Plan." 

The  Junta  of  Representatives  was  convened  in 
Cuernavaca,  for  the  election  of  a  President  ad  in- 
terim until  the  whole  programme  of  the  "  Plan  de 
Ayotla "  could  be  accomplished  and  a  Constitutional 
President  could  be  elected  and  installed.  General 
Juan  Alvarez,  General  Ignacio  Comonfort,  Melchor 
Ocampo,  and  Santiago  Vidaurri,  were  candidates  for 
the  office  of  President  ad  interim.  The  choice  fell 
upon  General  Alvarez,  and  he  received  the  recogni- 
tion of  the  representatives  of  the  foreign  governments 
at  the  capital. 

Two  distinct  factions  among  the  professed  adher- 
ents to  the  "  Plan  de  Ayotla  "  made  themselves  con- 
spicuous as  soon  as  the  adherents  of  the  "  Plan " 
entered  seriously  upon  the  tasks  they  had  set  them- 
selves to  accomplish.  Comonfort  and  his  immediate 
followers,  calling  themselves  "  Moderados,"  were  dis- 
posed to  compromise  somewhat  with  the  past,  and  to 


180  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

invite  the  cooperation  of  the  parties  then  in  existence 
and  lately  in  power-  As  a  result  of  their  conciliatory 
action,  some  pronounced  Conservatives  had  professed 
adherence  to  the  "  Plan."  Antonio  de  Haro  y  Tama- 
ris,  F^lix  Zuloaga,  and  others,  were  among  them. 
These  afterwards  proved  utterly  unfaithful  to  the 
party  supporting  tlie  "  Plan,"  and  withdrew  to  organ- 
ize the  party  of  the  Reactionaries,  which  included  the 
clericals  and  clerical  sympathizers,  and  the  Ultra-Con- 
servatives. The  other  faction  was  thoroughly  radical, 
and  would  make  no  compromises  whatever  with  the 
past  misgovernment  of  the  country.  The  members 
called  themselves  "  Puros,"  and  came  to  be  known  as 
High  Liberals,  Advanced  Liberals,  and  later  as  the 
Reform  Party.  They  brought  new  names  into  promi- 
nence in  the  history  of  Mexico,  —  Melchor  Ocampo, 
Miguel  Lerdo  de  Tejada,  and  Benito  Juarez,  among 
them. 

General  Diaz  de  la  Vega  tried  to  harmonize  these 
two  factions  in  the  interests  of  the  "  Plan  de  Ayotla," 
b}^  appointing  representatives  of  both  upon  his  cabi- 
net ;  but  this  experiment  resulted  as  similar  ones  had 
done  before  in  Mexican  public  affairs,  though  the 
administration  of  Diaz  de  la  Vega  was  of  too  short 
duration-  to  bring  about  the  disasters  that  had  pre- 
viously ensued  from  such  attempted  concihatory 
measures. 

The  Advanced  Liberals  sent  to  Alvarez,  immedi- 
ately after  his  election,  begging  him  to  come  at  once 
to  the  capital  and  begin  his  plans  for  the  reorganiza- 
tion and  reformation  of  the  nation.  The  "  Moder- 
ados,"  or  less  advanced  wing  of  the  new  Liberal 
party,  showed  themselves  still  under  the  spell  of  the 
Conservatives,  by  seconding  the  appeal  of  the  clergy 


THE  "PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  181 

and  aristocrats  for  Comonfort  to  take  charge  of  the 
government  and  "free  society  from  the  invasion  of 
the  barbarians."  For  Alvarez,  himself  a  pnre  Indian, 
was  being  accompanied  upon  his  march  to  the  capital 
by  a  body-guard  of  Indians.  Between  these  and  the 
hordes  of  savage  Indians  whom  Hidalgo  had  aroused, 
the  Conservative  alarmists  sought  to  establish  analo- 
gies; and  they  were  not  averse  to  arousing  a  race 
feeling  to  carry  their  ends. 

Alvarez  arrived  in  the  capital,  with  his  body-guard 
of  Indians,  in  November,  1855,  and  organized  his  gov- 
ernment with  Comonfort  as  his  Minister  of  War,  and 
Benito  Juarez  as  Minister  of  Justice  and  Ecclesiasti- 
cal Relations.  These  appointments  were,  in  effect,  a 
notice  to  Centrahsts,  Conservatives,  Clericals,  and  the 
Militar}^  Power,  and  even  to  the  "  Moderados,"  that 
Mexico  was  to  be  free  from  their  control,  and  was  to 
be  supplied  with  a  government  based  upon  a  funda- 
mental law  seeking  the  highest  welfare  of  the 
governed. 

The  Advanced  Liberals  had  formulated  a  definite 
programme  for  the  constitutional  regeneration  of  the 
country,  and  it  was  one  of  the  steps  in  the  reform  of 
the  government  that  was  promulgated,  on  the  twenty- 
third  of  November,  1855,  in  what  is  known  as  the 
"Ley  Juarez."  This  law  (taking  its  name  from 
Benito  Juarez,  its  author)  was  intended  to  regulate 
the  administration  of  justice  and  the  organization  of 
courts  of  law.  By  certain  articles  of  this  law,  special 
courts  were  suppressed,  and  jurisdiction  in  civil  cases 
was  removed  from  military  and  ecclesiastical  courts. 

This  might  seem  like  beginning  at  the  wrong  end 
to  work  a  great  reform  in  the  constitutional  gov- 
ernment of  a  nation;  and  the  measure  was,  indeed, 


182  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

censured  by  tlie  enemies  of  the  Liberal  government 
as  an  attempt,  from  ulterior  motives,  to  humiliate 
the  clergy  and  limit  their  influence.  The  fact  is 
that  these  measures  were  in  strict  conformity  to 
the  "Plan  de  Ayotla,"  and  were  necessary  to  pre- 
vent political  disturbances  already  threatening ;  they 
formed,  therefore,  an  important  part  of  the  Liberal 
programme  of  reform.  It  was  felt,  after  long  and 
patient  study  of  the  subject,  that  this  measure  would 
strike  at  the  yqyj  source  of  some  of  the  greatest  evils 
from  which  the  country  had  long  suffered.  For  one 
of  the  inheritances  Mexico  had  received  from  the 
period  of  Spanish  rule  was  the  exclusive  jurisdiction 
claimed  by  ecclesiastical  and  military  courts  in  all 
cases,  civil  and  criminal,  in  which  clerics  or  soldiers 
were  involved.  The  evils  of  such  a  system  are  easily 
seen  when  it  is  considered  that  half  the  crimes  com- 
mitted in  Mexico  were  by  men  amenable  only  to 
military  courts,  and  that  these  courts  were  exceed- 
ingly lax  in  the  administration  of  justice.  More 
than  a  quarter  of  the  landed  property  in  the  country 
belonged  to  clerics,  and  even  the  women  who  kept 
house  for  them,  and  their  servants,  evaded  the  pay- 
ment of  just  debts  because  the  tradesmen  could  not 
enforce  their  claims  in  the  civil  courts. 

The  ecclesiastical  authorities  saw  at  once,  in  the 
passage  of  the  "  Ley  Juarez,"  an  attack  upon  the  rights 
of  the  Church,  —  their  petted  fueros,  —  and  they  pro- 
tested most  vigorously  against  the  passage  of  the  law 
and  against  the  means  which  the  Liberals  proposed 
should  be  provided  for  the  administration  of  justice 
and  for  equalizing  the  operations  of  law.  This  cleri- 
cal opposition  brought  into  prominence  the  Bishop  of 
Michoacan,  the  Rt.  Rev.  Antonio  Pelagio  de  Labastida 


THE  ''PLAN  DE  AYOTLA"  183 

y  Davilos,  who  had  been  but  recently  advanced  to  the 
Episcopate.  He  was  a  native  of  Morelia,  and  had 
gained  some  notoriety  there,  as  a  parish  priest  and 
orthodox  pulpit  orator,  by  preaching  against  liberal 
and  democratic  doctrines  and  against  Freemasonry. 
He  had  thus  made  the  home  of  Morelos,  and  the  entire 
State  of  jNIichoacan,  a  great  bulwark  for  the  Conserva- 
tives. In  March,  1854,  he  anathematized  from  the 
pulpit,  as  heretical,  the  doctrines  of  Ocampo  and 
Miguel  Lerdo.  His  zeal  in  that  regard  was  rewarded 
by  his  elevation  to  the  Episcopate. 

Alvarez  was  without  ambition  to  rule  the  coun- 
try, and  compHed  with  the  request  of  some  of  the 
"  Moderados  "  that  he  resign.  Having  all  confidence 
in  Comonfort,  he  practically  abandoned  the  Presidency 
to  him,  on  the  twelfth  of  December,  1855.  Comon- 
fort, with  the  evident  intention  of  carr3dng  his  policy 
of  conciliation  and  compromise  as  far  as  possible,  ap- 
pointed, as  his  cabinet,  men  who  had  been  identified 
with  the  former  governments,  as  "Moderados  "  or  Con- 
servatives ;  thus  reheving  of  office  Benito  Juarez,  who 
was  in  disfavor  with  the  "  Moderados  "  and  Clericals. 

Comonfort  continued,  however,  to  reform  the  army 
and  advance  the  principles  of  the  Liberals.  The 
next  decisive  step  in  the  direction  of  reform  was 
the  famous  "  Ley  Lerdo,"  —  the  production  of  Juarez 
and  Ocampo,  though  revised  and  introduced  in  Con- 
gress by  Miguel  Lerdo  de  Tejada  and  passed  on  the 
twenty-fifth  of  June,  1856.  Lerdo  was  especially  ac- 
tive among  the  men  who  were  endeavoring  to  reform 
the  nation,  though  he  had  taken  a  prominent  part  in 
the  movement  by  which  Santa  Anna  had  been  re- 
called in  1853.  He  afterwards  allied  himself  with  the 
Liberals,  and  continued  with  them  to  the  end  of  his 


184  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

life.  He  was  a  native  of  Vera  Cruz,  had  received  a 
collegiate  education,  and  had  engaged  in  commercial 
pursuits.  He  had  likewise  acquired  a  reputation  as 
a  statistician  and  publicist,  and  had  published  a  history 
of  the  State  of  Vera  Cruz.  Alvarez  appointed  him 
Under  Secretary  of  Public  Works,  and  Comonfort 
made  him  Secretary  of  the  Treasury,  in  May,  1856, 
It  was  in  the  latter  capacity,  and  with  extensive 
statistical  and  politico-economical  knowledge  at  his 
command,  that  he  was  able  to  revise  and  complete  the 
law  which  is  known  by  his  name,  and  which  revolu- 
tionized Mexico. 

This  "  Ley  de  Desamortizacion  civil  y  ecclesiastica," 
as  it  was  ofificially  called,  removed  from  all  corpora- 
tions, civil  and  ecclesiastical,  the  right  to  own  lands 
beyond  what  was  necessary  for  the  transaction  of 
their  legitimate  business,  and  thus  prevented  the 
accumulation  of  wealth  in  hands  where  it  would  be  of 
no  benefit  to  the  commonwealth.  It  gave  to  all 
lessees  of  Church  property  the  right  to  purchase  the 
same  on  advantageous  terms,  at  a  price  to  be  assessed 
by  commissioners  appointed  for  that  purpose ;  and 
gave  the  right  of  "  denunciation,"  by  which  any  im- 
proved untenanted  property  of  the  Church  could  be 
entered  and  possessed  and  the  title  secured  by  any 
citizen.  All  unimproved  land  of  the  Church  was  to 
be  sold  at  an  assessed  value.  The  Church  was  to 
receive  the  proceeds  of  all  these  transactions,  but  the 
land  was  to  be  freed  from  ecclesiastical  control  and  no 
longer  exempt  from  taxation.  Up  to  the  end  of  the 
year  1856,  the  total  value  of  property  transferred  under 
this  decree  was  over  twenty  millions  of  dollars. 

The  Clericals  made  strenuous  efforts  to  defeat  this 
law.     The  bishop  of  Puebla  protested  against  the  in- 


THE  ''PLAN  BE  AYOTLA"  185 

tervention  of  the  government  in  matters  belonging 
to  tlie  Church,  and  preached  sermons  of  a  seditious 
character  thereupon.  The  Arclibishop  of  Mexico  de- 
sired that  the  question  involving  ecclesiastical  fueros 
be  submitted  to  the  Pope  of  Rome  —  a  proposition 
which  was  at  once  indignantly  refused  by  tlie  govern- 
ment of  Mexico.  Why  should  a  foreign  ecclesiastical 
potentate  be  called  upon  to  decide  a  question  between 
the  Mexican  government  and  its  subjects  ?  —  and  es- 
pecially a  question  in  which  the  Pope  had  an  interest 
identical  with  that  of  one  of  the  parties  ? 

A  reactionary  movement  was  organized  in  Puebla, 
where  forces  variously  estimated  at  from  five  to  fifteen 
thousand  were  mobihzed  by  the  Clericals.  Antonio 
de  Haro  y  Tamaris  was  given  the  title  of  General-in- 
chief  of  these  forces.  •  He  had  never  fully  accepted 
the  principles  of  the  Liberals,  and  after  recognizing 
Comonfort  and  the  "  Plan  de  Ayotla,"  he  returned  to 
the  Conservatives  with  whom  he  had  been  accustomed 
to  affiliate.  In  January,  1856,  he  had  been  suspected 
of  attempting  to  establish  an  Empire,  with  either  him- 
self or  a  son  of  Iturbide  as  Emperor.  He  was  then 
arrested,  and  taken  to  Vera  Cruz,  to  be  sent  into  exile. 
He  escaped  to  Puebla,  and  in  February  placed  himself 
at  the  disposal  of  the  Clerical  Reactionaries. 

Puebla  was  besieged  by  the  government  forces. 
Haro  y  Tamaris  defended  the  city  obstinately;  but 
Liberal  ideas  spread,  disaffection  grew  up  among  the 
soldiers,  and  on  the  twentieth  of  March  the  gates 
of  the  city  were  opened  to  the  besiegers.  Haro  y 
Tamaris  was  taken  prisoner  and  sent  into  exile. 

Comonfort  not  only  acted  with  great  promptness 
and  decision  in  regard  to  suppressing  the  revolution 
in  Puebla,  but  he  issued  a  decree  punishing  the  Re- 


186  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

actionary  officers  and  causing  the  sequestration  of 
enough  of  the  Church  property  in  the  Diocese  of 
Puebla  (whose  clergy  had  been  the  chief  instigators 
of  the  insurrection)  to  pay  the  expenses  of  the  war 
and  to  indemnify  the  government  for  all  damages 
sustained  thereby.  It  was  a  bold  step,  and  created  a 
sensation. 

Despite  all  opposition,  Congress  passed  the  "  Ley 
Lerdo,"  eighty-two  out  of  ninety  deputies  voting  for 
it.  The  law  took  effect  on  the  twenty-fifth  of  June. 
On  the  fifth  of  that  month  the  Jesuits  were  sup- 
pressed by  a  decree  of  the  government.  The  Reform 
was  advancing.  But  the  Clergy  were  in  opposition, 
and  from  that  time  the  war-cry  of  the  Clerical  Reac- 
tionaries was  Religion  y  Fuei^os. 


THE   CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  187 


CHAPTER  X 
THE   CONSTITUTION  OF   1857 

THE  moral  condition  of  the  country  at  this 
time  was  in  itself  sufficient  proof  of  the 
need  of  constitutional  reform  in  Mexico. 
The  law  of  the  land,  as  it  was  administered  under 
the  inefficient  political  institutions  of  the  middle  of 
the  nineteenth  century,  was  wholly  inadequate  to 
protect  the  citizen  in  the  enjoyment  of  life,  liberty, 
the  possession  of  property  and  the  pursuit  of  happi- 
ness. The  country  was  overrun  by  banditti.  Even 
the  most  travelled  thoroughfare  in  Mexico,  —  that 
between  Vera  Cruz  and  the  capital,  —  was  exceed- 
ingly unsafe.  Bands  of  thieves  frequently  waylaid 
the  diligencias  (the  popular  conveyance  of  those 
days),  and  robbed  the  passengers  of  all  they  possessed. 
Life  was  held  very  cheap,  and  murders,  either  for 
robbery  or  for  revenge,  were  of  frequent  occurrence. 
To  travellers,  the  roadside  crosses,  so  frequently  seen 
in  all  parts  of  the  country,  were  explained  as  mark- 
ing the  places  where  violent  deaths  had  occurred. 
As  in  all  such  countries,  the  crimes  committed  by 
the  bandits,  thieves,  and  murderers,  who  thronged 
the  country,  were  alleged  to  be  too  easily  condoned 
by  the  Church,  and  hence  were  in  a  measure  charge- 
able upon  the  Clerical  party.  They  were,  in  fact,  to 
a  large  extent  committed  by  persons  who,  previous 
to  the  passage  of   the  "  Ley  Juarez,"  had,  through 


188  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

some  military  or  ecclesiastical  connection,  been  ex- 
empt from  the  jurisdiction  of  the  civil  courts. 

From  the  time  of  the  Independence  of  Mexico, 
constitutional  government  had  been  viewed,  by  those 
who  gave  any  attention  whatever  to  it,  as  in  its  experi- 
mental stages,  even  when  appearing  to  the  best  advan- 
tage. The  numerous  "  Pronunciamentos,"  "  Plans," 
and  "  Bases,"  proclaimed  in  the  years  from  1824  to 
1857,  seemed  to  argue  fatal  defects  in  the  Constitution 
of  1824,  and  to  suggest  the  question  of  the  possibility 
of  self-government  in  Mexico  under  any  form  that 
might  be  devised.  The  opinion  that  it  was  impossi- 
ble was  held  not  alone  by  the  Monarchists,  but  by 
more  disinterested  observers  of  public  affairs.  It 
was  declared  in  1846,  that  since  1823  there  had  been 
no  less  than  seventeen  revolutions  in  Mexico  ;  and 
it  was  pertinently  asked,  Could  it  be  said  that  a 
nation  was  competent  to  govern  itself  in  which 
revolutions  were  of  such  frequent  occurrence  ?  Had 
Mexico  governed  herself  peaceably  even  for  a  single 
year  ? 

The  rapidly  growing  Liberal  party  had  set  out  to 
answer  the  question  of  the  ability  of  Mexico  to  gov- 
ern herself.  That  party  thought  that  if  she  were 
now  given  a  new  Constitution,  based  upon  what  she 
had  learned  from  her  past  experiences  and  what  had 
been  learned  for  her  by  the  study  of  the  political  sys- 
tems of  other  nations,  she  would  be  able  to  establish 
a  strong  and  safe  government,  and  maintain  peace 
and  order.  The  Liberals  were,  for  the  most  part, 
careful  and  thoughtful  Republicans,  Avho  had  begun 
to  see  that  the  Constitution  of  1824,  while  the  origi- 
nal after  which  it  was  modelled  might  be  sufficient 
to  furnish  stable  government  for  the   Anglo-Saxons 


THE  CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  189 

north  of  the  Rio  Grande,  was  wholly  unsuited  to  the 
government  of  people  having  the  peculiar  tempera- 
ment of  the  Spanish- American  or  the  Mexican  Indian, 
and  the  unhappy  traditions  and  political  training 
received  from  three  centuries  of  Spanish  domina- 
tion. While  refusing  to  take  the  ground  assumed 
by  Gutierrez  de  Estrada  or  Paredes,  they  felt  that 
something  should  be  done  to  provide  as  strong  a 
government  as  any  that  Mexico  had  yet  secured. 
They  desired,  and  believed  it  possible  to  obtain,  a 
Constitution  sufficiently  centralized  to  suppress  an- 
archy at  iiome  and  aggressions  from  abroad,  and  yet 
to  have  popular  features  which  the  other  Constitu- 
tions lacked.  It  was  especially  necessary  to  secure 
such  a  Constitution  as  would  check  the  aggressions 
of  the  Church  party  and  the  military  arm  of  the  gov- 
ernment. The  military  should  be  the  servant  of  the 
government,  not  its  master.  Mexico  should  no  longer 
be  a  mere  military  oligarchy,  nor  an  ecclesiastical 
hierarchy,  if  it  would  serve  the  best  and  highest 
interests  of  the  people. 

If  Mexico  were  ever  to  become  a  free  nation  in  the 
fullest  meaning  of  that  term  as  understood  by  Anglo- 
Saxon  peoples,  the  establishment  of  a  Constitutional 
Confederacy  was  of  the  highest  importance,  with  the 
assurance  that  such  an  institution  would  be  perma- 
nent and  that  peaceable  self-government  would  be 
secured.  The  establishment  of  religious  liberty  was 
of  importance  scarcely  secondary.  It  was  also  highly 
important  that  a  system  of  free  education  be  estab- 
lished ;  that  the  press  be  made  absolutely  free ;  that 
Church  lands  be  distributed  among  the  people  at 
such  prices  that  all  classes  might  be  enabled  to  be- 
come freeholders  ;   that  the  army  be  reduced ;   that^ 


190  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

the  corruptions  of  government  patronage  be  purged 
away ;  that  the  civil  service  be  freed  from  abuses ; 
that  the  judiciary  be  purified,  and  the  laws  be  fairly 
administered  between  man  and  man ;  and  that  immi- 
gration be  encouraged.  Such  were  the  tasks  which 
the  Liberals  set  themselves  to  accomplish  in  1857, 
fully  appreciating  the  difficulties  that  opposed  the 
successful  accomplishment  of  all  they  had  planned. 
The  most  important  of  the  reforms  proposed  were 
those  touching  the  Church  in  her  relation  to  the  State. 
These  also  required  the  most  delicate  handling.  It 
would  be  a  grave  error  to  suppose  that  the  clergy 
in  Mexico  had  been  engaged,  throughout  the  years 
of  the  Church's  existence  there,  solely  in  enriching 
themselves,  and  in  scandalizing  the  Faith.  The 
wealth  of  the  Church  was  not  at  all  times  devoted 
to  base  and  sordid  objects,  or  used  to  corrupt  its  pos- 
sessors or  the  people.  Few  countries  have  been 
better  supplied  than  Mexico  with  hospitals  and  asy- 
lums. The  Sisters  of  Charity  there,  as  elsewhere, 
pursued  their  vocation  with  zeal  and  energy,  and 
with  excellent  results.  The  rural  clergy  throughout 
the  land  acted  as  the  protectors,  advisers,  and  friends 
of  the  members  of  their  flocks,  and  were  always  the 
agents  of  charity  and  mercy.  They  were  the  de- 
fenders of  the  Indians,  interposing  on  their  behalf 
in  times  of  persecution  or  whenever  they  were 
menaced  with  injustice ;  and  they  ever  stood  forth 
as  the  champions  of  outraged  rights.  The  class  to 
which  Hidalgo,  Morelos,  Matamoros,  and  a  host  of 
others  in  their  time,  belonged,  had  not  by  any 
means  died  out.  It  was  largely  due  to  these  that 
so  many  people  attached  themselves  to  the  clergy, 
and  enlisted  themselves   in   defence  of  the  Church. 


THE  CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  191 

and  of  churcli  property  whenever  an  attack  was  made 
upon  either. 

The  clergy  generally  became,  in  their  turn,  jealous 
and  watchful  of  the  power  which  this  popular  affec- 
tion created.  Avarice  was  not  wanting  to  increase 
their  gains,  —  from  dying  penitents,  pious  bequests  ; 
from  the  living,  holy  offerings  and  lavish  endowments. 
It  was  not  unnatural  that  the  Church  should  desire 
to  preserve  the  property  that  had  been  accumulated 
during  many  years  of  religious  toil ;  nor  that  the 
religious  orders  should  dread  the  advance  of  that 
intellectual  march  which  was  sure,  sooner  or  later,  to 
consign  their  monastic  establishments  to  destruction, 
as  in  other  countries. 

What  the  wealth  of  the  Church  in  Mexico  at  this 
period  was,  though  it  might  be  interesting  to  know, 
it  would  be  impossible  so  much  as  to  estimate.  Fif- 
teen years  previously,  it  had  been  estimated  that 
there  were  two  thousand  nuns,  seventeen  hundred 
monks,  and  thirty-five  hundred  secular  clergy  in 
Mexico,  and  that  the  number  of  their  conventual 
estates  was  one  hundred  and  fifty.  The  nuns  alone 
possessed  fifty-eight  estates,  or  properties,  producing 
an  annual  revenue  of  five  hundred  and  sixty  thousand 
dollars ;  in  addition  to  a  floating  capital  of  four  mil- 
hon  five  hundred  thousand  dollars,  producing  an 
annual  income  of  two  hundred  and  fifty  thousand 
dollars.  While  the  above  number  of  clergy  was  in- 
adequate to  the  spiritual  needs  of  a  population  esti- 
mated at  that  time  at  seven  million  souls,  it  was 
small  indeed  to  be  the  possessor  of  estates  worth  at 
least  ninety  million  dollars. 

The  clergy  to  some  extent  defeated  the  purposes  of 
the  "  Ley  Lerdo,"  by  denouncing  all  who  would  pur- 


192  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  BEPUBLIG 

chase  the  lands  of  the  Church  under  that  law,  and 
declaring  that  the  "  Curse  of  God  "  would  rest  upon 
them  because  of  their  unholy  traffic  in  holy  things. 
The  public  was  by  these  threats  terrorized  from  pur- 
chasing at  the  government  sales,  and  few  bidders  were 
found  with  courage  to  risk  tlie  "  Curse."  Those  who 
were  not  thus  terrorized,  and  were  of  a  speculative 
turn,  saw  their  opportunity,  and  bought  in  the  prop- 
erty at  low  figures,  and  thus  made  fortunes  at  slight 
outlay,  while  gaining  the  more  bitter  enmity  of  the 
Church.  All  this  served  to  make  the  task  of  the 
government  reformers  the  more  difficult. 

One  of  the  avowed  purposes  of  the  "  Plan  de 
Ayotla,"  even  as  modified  by  Comonfort,  was  to  con- 
vene a  Constitutional  Convention.  Alvarez,  by  a  de- 
cree issued  from  Iguala  in  September,  1855,  called 
such  a  Convention,  or  "  Constituent  Congress,"  to 
meet  at  Cuernavaca,  in  the  State  of  Morelos,  on  the 
fourth  of  the  following  month.  This  Convention  was 
composed  of  twenty-five  members,  each  of  the  States 
and  Territories  sending  one  representative.  It  organ- 
ized with  Gomez  Farias  as  its  presiding  officer,  and 
with  Benito  Juarez  as  one  of  its  secretaries.  Among 
its  members  were  Melchor  Ocampo,  F^lix  Zuloaga, 
Miguel  Lerdo  de  Tejada,  and  Manuel  Doblado,  of 
whom  mention  will  be  made  hereafter. 

The  first  step  toward  securing  a  Constitution  was 
the  adoption  of  a  tentative  or  provisional  Constitution 
entitled  "  Estatico  Organic  o  Provisional  de  la  Repub- 
lica  Mexicana."  This  consisted  of  one  hundred  and 
twenty-five  articles,  and  was  promulgated  by  Comon- 
fort, by  virtue  of  authority  conferred  upon  him  by 
the  "Plan  de  Ayotla."  Its  principles  were  Centralist, 
so  far  as  these  concerned  the  organization  of  the  ex- 


THE  CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  193 

ecutive  and  judicial  powers  of  the  government.  It 
was  Liberal  in  its  definition  of  the  civil  and  political 
rights  of  the  Mexicans.  But  even  these  Liberal  pro- 
visions were  neutralized  by  the  eighty-second  article, 
which  gave  to  the  President  discretionary  power  when- 
ever in  the  judgment  of  a  Council  of  Ministers  this 
should  be  necessary  in  order  to  defend  the  independ- 
ence or  the  integrity  of  the  territory,  to  maintain  the 
law  and  the  established  order,  or  to  preserve  public 
tranquillity  —  with  the  proviso,  however,  that  in  no 
case  should  the  death  penalty,  nor  certain  other  pro- 
hibited punishments,  be  imposed. 

Local  disturbances  made  it  inexpedient  for  the 
Constituent  Congress  to  continue  its  sessions  in  Cuer- 
navaca,  and  it  removed  to  the  City  of  Mexico,  thus 
carrying  the  war  into  the  enemy's  country.  Each 
proposition  regarding  the  new  Constitution  was  an 
attack  upon  some  abuse  that  had  existed  perhaps  for 
three  centuries  and  involved  the  wealth  or  the  influ- 
ence of  some  powerful  class.  It  was  proposed,  for 
example,  to  prohibit  forced  labor,  monopolies,  alcaha- 
las  (or  inter-state  customs  duties),  the  acquisition  of 
property  by  religious  communities,  and  many  other 
common  features  of  Mexican  life.  These  prohibitions 
were  suggested,  not  as  mere  doctrinaire  theories,  but 
as  solutions  of  some  of  the  social  problems  presented 
to  the  reformers  of  the  Constitution.  In  opposition  to 
the  proceedings  of  the  Congress,  the  Bishops  through- 
out the  country  issued  pastoral  letters  denouncing  the 
Reform  propositions  and  the  entire  Constituent  Con- 
gress. They  went  so  far  as  to  excommunicate  certain 
officials  in  the  City  of  Mexico  who  had  been  active  in 
executing  the  "  Ley  Lerdo." 

Comonfort  had  yet  another  bold  stroke  to  make 

13 


194  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

before  the  work  of  the  Constituent  Congress  could  be 
completed.  In  September,  1856,  he  received  informa- 
tion that  a  conspiracy  against  the  government  was 
hatching  among  the  Franciscans  in  the  monastery 
whose  magnificent  buildings  dominated  that  portion 
of  the  capital  between  the  Main  Plaza  and  the  Ala- 
meda. The  national  troops  were  ordered  to  take 
possession  of  the  building  and  to  arrest  the  inmates. 
The  monastery  was  suppressed  and  the  magnificent 
property  was  confiscated.  The  decree  of  suppression 
was  subsequently  recalled,  but  the  confiscation  was 
allowed  to  stand,  and  soon  afterwards  a  street  was 
opened  up  through  the  property.  To  this  street  the 
name  "  Independencia  "  was  given,  —  intended  to 
signify  the  era  of  Independence  which  the  Liberals,  in 
the  face  of  the  opposition  of  the  Clericals,  were  striv- 
ing to  bring  in.  This  action  on  the  part  of  Comon- 
fort  excited  further  active  sedition  on  the  part  of 
the  clergy,  which  the  government  sought  to  suppress 
by  banishing  some  of  the  more  conspicuous  clerical 
leaders. 

The  new  Constitution  was  finally  ready  for  adop- 
tion. It  proclaimed  in  its  preamble  that  it  was  set 
forth  "  in  the  name  of  God  and  with  the  authority  of 
the  Mexican  people."  The  strong  declaration  of  the 
first  section  was  that  "  The  Mexican  people  recognize 
that  the  rights  of  man  are  the  basis  and  the  object  of 
social  institutions.  Consequently  they  declare  that 
all  the  laws  and  all  the  authorities  of  the  country 
must  respect  and  maintain  the  guarantees  which  the 
present  Constitution  establishes."  It  went  on  to 
declare  that  "  the  national  sovereignty  resides  essen- 
tially and  originally  in  the  people,  and  is  instituted 
for  their  benefit.     The  people  have  at  all  times  the 


THE  CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  195 

inalienable  right  to  alter  or  modify  the  form  of  their 
government.  .  .  .  The  Mexican  people  voluntarily 
constitute  themselves  a  democratic,  federal,  repre- 
sentative Repubhc,  composed  of  States  free  and  sov- 
ereign in  all  that  concerns  their  internal  government, 
but  united  in  a  federation  established  according  to 
the  principles  of  this  fundamental  law.  ...  No  cor- 
poration, civil  or  ecclesiastical,  whatever  may  be  its 
character,  denomination,  or  object,  shall  have  legal 
capacity  to  acquire  in  proprietorship  or  administer  for 
itself  real  estate,  with  the  single  exception  of  edifices 
destined  immediately  and  directly  to  the  service  and 
object  of  the  institution.  ...  It  belongs  exclusively 
to  the  Federal  authorities  to  exercise,  in  matters 
of  religious  worship  and  external  discipline,  the  inter- 
vention which  the  law  may  designate." 

Such  were  some  of  the  more  radical  clauses  of  the 
new  Constitution.  It  abolished  slavery ;  declared  in- 
struction to  be  free,  and  that  every  man  was  left  free 
to  adopt  whatever  useful  and  honorable  profession, 
industrial  pursuit  or  occupation  suited  him  ;  that  the 
State  would  not  permit  any  contract  to  be  carried 
out  which  had  for  its  object  the  diminution,  loss,  or 
irrevocable  sacrifice  of  man's  liberty,  for  the  sake 
of  labor,  education,  or  religious  vow.  It  decreed 
freedom  of  speech  and  of  the  press,  without  other 
limitations  than  respect  for  private  life,  morality, 
and  the  public  peace ;  and  secured  the  right  of  peti- 
tion, of  association,  of  carrying  arms.  It  suppressed 
titles  of  nobility,  the  prerogatives  and  special  privi- 
leges (^fueros)  of  corporations  ;  punishment  by  muti- 
lation, torture,  infamy,  or  confiscation  of  property.  It 
prohibited  the  acquisition  by  corporations  of  property 
for  speculative  purposes,  abolished  special  tribunals, 


196  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

retroactive  laws,  private  laws,  and  imprisonment  for 
debts  of  a  purely  civil  character.  It  consecrated  as 
inviolable  the  home,  private  correspondence,  and  the 
right  of  an  accused  to  legal  defence.  It  abolished 
the  death  penalty  for  political  offences.  It  estab- 
lished religious  toleration. 

Such  a  Constitution  opposed  all  the  monarchical 
ideas  abroad  in  the  land.  It  positively  affronted  the 
Church  party.  It  abolished  at  once  all  the  ecclesias- 
tical and  military  privileges  that  had  been  so  long 
enjoyed  and  so  much  abused  by  Conservatives,  Cen- 
tralists, and  Clericals.  It  destroyed,  as  by  a  blow,  the 
domination  of  the  Church,  and  replaced  it  with  that 
of  a  Liberal  party  that  in  its  radicalism  was  disposed 
to  go  to  an  opposite  extreme.  And  the  immediate 
result  of  the  new  Constitution  was  likely  to  be,  not 
the  bringing  of  much  desired  peace  to  the  land,  but  a 
reaction  instigated  by  the  Church.  The  Church  in- 
deed accepted  the  adoption  of  the  new  Constitution  as 
a  declaration  of  war,  and  it  proved  the  bitterest  civil 
war  Mexico  had  ever  known. 

It  was  with  great  difficulty  that  Comonfort  could 
be  prevailed  upon  to  support  and  sign  so  radical  a 
Constitution.  Both  Church  and  Army  were  bitterly 
opposed  to  it,  and  did  all  they  could  to  create  a  reac- 
tion. Comonfort  was  a  devout  religionist ;  and  being 
in  his  political  faith  more  confident  of  the  opinions  of 
others  than  of  his  own,  he  was  especially  susceptible 
to  outside  influences.  He  early  began  to  show  signs 
of  waverinof  in  the  face  of  the  threats  of  the  Church 
party.  His  intimate  friends  in  Congress  withdrew 
therefrom,  and,  with  members  of  his  own  family, 
urged  him  to  suppress  at  any  cost  the  publication  of 
the  Constitution,  and  thus  avert  tlie  gathering  storm. 


THE   CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  197 

His  vacillations  did  much  to  precipitate  the  contest 
between  the  Church  and  the  Liberals,  —  or,  as  they 
now  became,  the  Constitutionalists. 

He  yielded  at  last,  though  with  great  reluctance,  to 
the  pressure  of  the  Liberal  leaders,  and  on  the  night 
of  the  fifth  of  February,  1857,  the  Constitution  was 
adopted.  The  occasion  was  an  ever-memorable  one 
in  the  history  of  Mexico.  Gomez  Farias,  aged  and  ill, 
entered  the  legislative  chamber  leaning  upon  the  arms 
of  his  two  sons,  and  took  his  seat  as  the  presiding 
officer  of  the  Constituent  Congress.  He  was  received 
with  enthusiasm,  all  the  people  present  rising  to  their 
feet  as  he  entered.  It  was  with  deep  emotion  that  he 
proceeded  to  take  the  vote  of  the  members,  which 
resulted  in  the  adoption  of  a  Constitution  embodying 
principles  of  government  more  liberal  than  the  most 
radical  opinions  he  had  ever  entertained.  It  is  sub- 
stantially the  Constitution  of  Mexico  to-day.  Any 
official  action  apart  from  its  provisions  since  its  adop- 
tion has  been  considered  a  Giolpe  de  Estado  —  a  blow 
to  the  State. 

The  Constitution  was  to  take  effect  on  and  after 
the  sixteenth  of  September,  the  recognized  anniversary 
of  Mexican  Independence.  No  sooner  was  it  published 
than  great  excitement  prevailed  in  all  parts  of  the 
country,  and  wherever  the  clergy  were  dominant  the 
people  were  incited  to  rebellion.  An  allocution  was 
received  from  Pope  Pius  IX.,  declaring  the  govern- 
ment of  Mexico  "  apocrypha,"  and  putting  it  under 
the  anathema  of  the  Church.  The  officials  of  the  gov- 
ernment, who  were  charged  with  the  duty  of  having 
the  Constitution  sworn  to,  met  with  opposition  every- 
where. The  clergy  protested  against  it  most  strenu- 
ously, and  exerted  all  their  influence  to  prevent  its 


198  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

being  made  effective.  Their  opposition  culminated 
in  scandals  in  the  churches  in  Holy  Week,  and  re- 
sulted in  the  ariest  and  deportation  of  the  Archbishop. 
He  was  succeeded  in  the  Archbishopric  by  the  Bishop 
of  Michoacan,  Dr.  Antonio  Pelagio  de  Labastida. 

As  the  time  drew  near  for  the  Constitution  to  go 
into  effect,  General  Felix  Zuloaga  proclaimed  its 
nullification  in  a  "  preliminary  pronunciamento,"  and 
proposed  to  call  a  new  Congress,  to  provide  "  a  Con- 
stitution more  in  harmony  with  the  interests  of  the 
country," — meaning,  of  course,  the  clerical  and  mili- 
tary interests  of  the  country.  He  received  military 
support  from  General  Miguel  Miramon,  General  Tomas 
Mejia,  and  other  Reactionary  leaders  in  various  parts 
of  the  country,  and  moral  support,  either  openly  or 
otherwise,  from  some  members  of  the  Cabinet.  Com- 
bats, with  bloodshed,  took  place  in  the  streets  of  the 
capital  between  the  Liberals  and  the  Reactionaries, 
and  the  war  was  begun.  The  Reactionaries  took  up 
their  headquarters  in  the  Convent  of  Santo  Domingo. 
The  Cabinet  of  Comonfort  took  alarm  and  resigned. 
In  the  new  Cabinet,  Benito  Juarez  took  the  portfolio 
of  Gobernacion  (Domestic  Relations),  which  made 
him  practically  the  premier. 

As  soon  as  the  Constitution  went  into  effect,  the 
election  therein  provided  for  was  held.  This  election 
the  Reactionaries  could  not  prevent,  although  it  was 
one  purpose  of  the  movement  under  Zuloaga  to  do 
so.  The  result  was  the  choice  of  Ignacio  Comonfort 
for  President  by  a  large  majority  over  Miguel  Lerdo 
de  Tejada.  Benito  Juarez  was  elected,  by  an  almost 
unanimous  vote.  President  of  the  Supreme  Court  of 
Justice,  and  became  thereby  virtual  Vice-President. 

Comonfort  was  installed  in  the  Presidency  on  the 


THE   CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  199 

first  of  December,  and  took  an  oath  to  support  the 
Constitution  then  recently  adopted.  Almost  immedi- 
ately the  powerful  influence  of  the  Conservatives  over 
him  became  apparent.  He  had  been  so  courageous  and 
straightforward  in  the  beginning  of  his  career,  albeit 
so  concihatory  and  moderate,  that  much  had  been  ex- 
pected of  him,  and  he  had  secured  the  sympathies  of 
many  who  stood  for  the  cause  of  Liberal  principles. 
No  one  doubts  his  honesty  of  purpose ;  but  he  showed 
weakness  by  ignoring  his  Cabinet  and  the  Congress 
of  the  nation,  and  calling  to  his  aid  a  "  Council  of 
Representatives"  from  each  State  and  from  among 
the  highest  dignitaries  of  the  Church,  —  a  purely 
extra-constitutional  body.  Through  them,  the  united 
action  of  the  clergy  and  the  army,  supported  as  it  was 
by  many  government  officials,  was  too  strong  for  him. 
Under  the  advice  he  had  sought,  and  influenced  by 
threats  of  evils  to  the  country  which  he  was  anxious 
to  avert,  he  took  the  step  which  proved  a  Groipe  de 
Estado. 

Ten  days  after  he  had  sworn  to  support  the  Consti- 
tution, he  gave  way  to  the  Clerical  party,  set  aside  ihe 
Constitution,  and  tried  to  resume  government  under 
the  "  Bases  of  Political  Organization  "  of  1843.  His 
plea  was  that  he  found  the  new  Constitution  imprac- 
ticable. He  desired  a  strong  government  rather  than 
a  popular  one,  and  the  new  Constitution  failed  to  pro- 
vide a  government  sufficiently  strong.  To  placate  the 
Church  party,  he  acceded  to  their  demands  and  cast 
Juarez  into  prison. 

His  action  failed,  however,  to  relieve  the  situation 
of  its  difficulties.  He  lost  his  friends  among  the 
Liberals,  and  the  Reactionaries  lost  faith  in  him  and 
broke  faith  with  him.     He  tried  to  correct  his  mis- 


200  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

takes ;  but  it  was  too  late.  He  released  Juarez,  re- 
stored the  Constitution,  reorganized  the  National 
Guard,  and  took  steps  to  suppress  the  insurrection  in 
the  capital.  But  affairs  had  become  sadly  demoral- 
ized. It  required  a  strong  hand,  a  steady  nerve,  and 
a  cool  head  to  extricate  the  government  from  its 
difficulties ;  and  it  was  evident  that  Comonfort  had 
not  these  qualities, 

F^lix  Zuloaga  had  taken  advantage  of  the  situation, 
and,  as  leader  of  the  Reactionaries  and  commander  of 
an  important  division  of  the  army,  had  developed  a 
formidable  rebellion  out  of  the  insurrection  of  which 
he  had  previously  been  the  head.  He  was  a  trained 
soldier,  having  served  throughout  the  war  with  the 
United  States.  In  1835  Santa  Anna  made  him  Presi- 
dent of  a  "  Perpetual  Court  Martial,"  and  in  1854  sent 
him  south  in  command  of  a  brigade  against  the  Revo- 
lutionists of  Ayotla.  He  was  forced  to  surrender,  and 
was  saved  from  being  shot  by  the  efforts  of  Comon- 
fort, who  kept  him  on  his  staff.  He  served  with  the 
Liberals  in  the  siege  of  Puebla  in  1856,  and  was  a 
member  of  the  Constituent  Congress  at  Cuernavaca. 
But,  like  many  professed  Liberals  in  those  days,  he 
went  back  to  his  former  affiliation  with  the  Conserva- 
tive and  Church  party,  and  was  now  their  military 
champion  against  Comonfort  and  the  new  Constitu- 
tion. He  formally  "pronounced,"  with  his  brigade, 
in  Tacubaya,  on  the  seventeenth  of  December. 

Discouraged  in  his  efforts  to  bring  about  a  settle- 
ment of  the  difficulties  in  which  the  government  was 
now  involved,  Comonfort,  anxious  to  avoid  the  hor- 
rors of  another  war,  abandoned  the  Presidency  on  the 
twenty-first  of  January,  1858,  and  retired  from  the 
country,  leaving  the  Reactionaries  apparently  masters 


THE   CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  201 

of  the  situation.  A  Junta  of  Notables,  created  by  the 
"  Plan  de  Tacubaya,"  as  the  pronunciamento  of  De- 
cember seventeenth  was  called,  assembled  and  elected 
Zuloaga  Acting-President.  He  took  possession  of 
the  executive  office  on  the  twenty-second  of  January, 
wholly  ignoring  the  constitutional  provision  by  which 
the  President  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Justice  was 
to  become  President  of  the  Republic  upon  the  death, 
resignation,  or  disability  of  the  President. 

The  Reactionaries,  even  in  their  apparent  triumph, 
were  incapable  of  creating  a  stable  government.  There 
was  no  harmony  among  them  or  among  their  leaders. 
A  revolt  was  organized  at  a  town  near  the  capital  bear- 
ing the  same  name  as  that  in  which  the  "Plan"  of  1855 
had  been  formulated.  This  was  with  the  evident  in- 
tention of  confusing  the  popular  mind  and  committing 
to  the  new  scheme  some  of  the  adherents  of  the  "  Plan 
de  Ayotla,"  though  it  took  the  name  of  "  Plan  de 
Navidad  "  because  adopted  on  Christmas  eve  (1858). 
It  pronounced  against  further  warfare,  "  which,  how- 
ever the  tide  of  victory  might  run,  would  be  sure  to 
result  in  an  irreparable  injury  to  the  country."  This 
seemed  quite  plausible,  but,  —  as  though  there  had 
not  been  enough  constitutions  prepared  for  the  Mexi- 
can people,  and  as  though  their  chief  characteristic 
was  to  observe  constitutional  government,  —  a  call 
v/as  issued  for  a  Convention  of  Deputies  from  several 
States  to  form  a  new  Constitution  and  elect  a  Presi- 
dent in  the  interests  of  peace.  The  army  in  the 
capital  supported  this  "Plan,"  and  General  Robles 
Pezuela  was  elected  Provisional  President.  The 
Convention  of  Deputies,  called  together  in  pursu- 
ance of  the  "Plan,"  elected  General  Miguel  Mira- 
mon  President  and  General  Pezuela  Vice-President, 


202  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

in  January,  1859  —  actions  which  portended  anything 
but  peace. 

Zuloaga  took  refuge  in  the  British  Legation  from 
the  fury  of  this  "peace  pronunciamento."  Miramon, 
who  was  absent  from  the  capital  at  the  time,  returned 
on  the  twenty -first  of  January,  declared  the  deposition 
of  Zuloaga  illegal,  and  reinstated  him  in  the  Presi- 
dency. Zuloaga,  however,  as  though  by  a  previous 
understanding,  resigned,  after  appointing  Miramon 
his  substitute  and  delivering  to  him  the  executive 
office,  on  the  second  of  February.  But  he  seemed 
at  times  disposed  to  resume  control  of  the  govern- 
ment. He  advanced  the  theory  that  Miramon,  who 
was  only  his  substitute,  had  exceeded  his  authority 
in  certain  cases  —  notably  in  negotiating  a  certain 
loan,  of  which  more  will  be  said  hereafter. 

Miramon  suddenly  appeared  at  the  capital,  arrested 
Zuloaga,  and  forced  him  to  accompany  him  on  his 
campaign  —  nominally  as  Chief  of  Engineers,  but 
really  as  a  prisoner.  At  Leon,  the  following  July, 
Zuloaga  escaped  from  his  Presidential  jailer,  issued  a 
manifesto  revoking  his  resignation  of  the  Presidency 
and  declaring  himself  "  Constitutional  President."  He 
found  no  followers ;  but  Miramon  submitted  the  ques- 
tion to  Jos^  Ignacio  Pavon,  President  of  the  Supreme 
Court  of  Justice  under  the  Reactionary  government, 
and  that  distinguished  jurist  took  the  opinion  of  the 
Council  of  State,  and  Miramon  was  declared  to  be  the 
President.  That  worthy  thereupon  turned  the  office 
over  to  Pavon,  who  reconvened  the  Representative 
Junta  of  January,  1859.  In  this  junta,  Miramon 
was  elected  President  by  a  vote  of  nineteen  to  four. 
Zuloaga,  tired  of  this  kind  of  child's  play,  retired  to 
private  life. 


THE  CONSTITUTION  OF  1857  203 

Miguel  Miramon  was  in  many  respects  of  the  same 
type  of  character  as  Santa  Anna,  but  with  less  ability 
and  of  shorter  career.  He  was  a  native  of  Mexico, 
though  of  French  name  and  ancestry.  He  was  but 
twenty-five  years  of  age,  and  hence  ineligible  to  the 
Presidency  even  under  the  "Bases  Organicas,"  —  the 
most  ultra  of  the  attempts  at  a  Constitution  made 
by  the  party  he  represented,  —  the  Constitution  under 
which,  if  under  any,  he  was  supposed  to  be  governing. 
He  was  a  dashing  soldier,  educated  at  the  Govern- 
ment Military  Academy,  and  had  served  with  his 
classmates  in  the  defence  of  Molino  del  Rey  and 
Chapul tepee  against  the  United  States  army  in  1847. 
He  was  with  Haro  y  Tamaris  in  Puebla  in  1856, 
was  made  prisoner  by  tlie  Liberals  three  times,  and 
escaped  each  time — all  within  eighteen  months. 
He  was  engaged  in  guerrilla  warfare  for  the  Cler- 
icals until  the  fight  in  the  streets  of  Mexico  in 
September,  1857.  Zuloaga  promoted  him  to  the 
command  of  a  brigade,  and  he  became  a  prominent 
military  leader  and  a  political  intriguer  in  the  ranks 
of  the  Reactionaries. 

So  much  for  the  attempts  of  the  Reactionaries  to 
fill  the  Presidency  after  the  disaffection  and  flight  of 
Comonfort.  They  succeeded  in  holding  the  capital, 
and  in  furnishing  a  succession  of  what  are  now  termed 
"  Anti-Presidents,"  none  of  whom  could  show  the 
least  colorable  title  to  the  executive  office.  The 
futile  efforts  of  these  Reactionaries  to  govern  is  the 
best  commentary  that  could  be  given  upon  the  needs 
in  Mexico  of  the  Constitutional  Government  which 
the  Liberals  were  at  this  time  striving  to  establish. 


204  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 


CHAPTER   XI 

BENITO  JUAREZ  AND  THE  WAR  OF  THE 
REFORM 

THE  plan  put  forth  by  Zuloaga,  in  bis  pronun- 
ciamento  of  December  seventeenth,  1857, 
drew  off  some  of  the  "  Moderado  "  deputies  of 
Congress,  and  these  became  members  of  the  Junta 
of  Notables  by  whom  Zuloaga  was  elected.  He  pro- 
ceeded to  secure  the  arrest  of  the  Liberal  deputies, 
but  seventy  of  them  escaped  from  the  capital  and 
made  a  rendezvous  in  Queretaro.  There  they  organ- 
ized under  the  Constitution  of  1857,  recognized 
Benito  Juarez  as  Constitutional  President  in  succes- 
sion to  Comonfort,  and  had  him  installed  on  the  tenth 
of  January,  1858,  several  days  before  the  election  of 
Zuloaga.  From  that  time  to  the  end  of  his  life, 
Benito  Juarez  was  so  closely  identified  with  Constitu- 
tional Government  in  Mexico  that  the  history  of  the 
one  is  tlie  history  of  the  other. 

Benito  Juarez  was  one  of  the  most  remarkable  men 
who  has  ever  appeared  in  the  history  of  Spanish 
America.  He  rose  from  the  humblest  origin  to  the 
greatest  eminence  attainable  in  his  country,  —  not 
through  the  army,  as  was  the  case  with  most  of  his 
contemporaries,  nor  by  military  successes  (for  he  was 
never  a  soldier),  but  by  industry,  perseverance,  single- 
ness of  purpose,  and  the  force  of  an  indomitable  will, 
and  through  the  influence  of  his  personal  abilities  and 
sterling  honesty. 


THE   WAR   OF  THE  REFORM  205 

He  was  born  in  the  small  but  picturesque  pueblo 
which  at  that  time  bore  the  name  of  San  Pablo  Gue- 
latao,  lying  about  forty  miles  northeast  of  the  city  of 
Oaxaca,  on  the  outskirts  of  Ixtlan,  among  the  rugged 
mountains  of  that  locality,  and  upon  the  shores  of  a 
mountain  lake  known  from  the  transparenc}^  of  its 
waters  as  Laguna  Encantada,  or  the  Enchanted  Lake. 
The  pueblo  contained,  in  the  early  years  of  the  nine- 
teenth century,  about  two  hundred  inhabitants  —  all 
Zapoteca  Indians.  The  Zapotecas,  although  of  the 
native  races  which,  under  the  social  organization  then 
in  vogue  in  Mexico,  had  scarcely  any  rights  that 
others  were  bound  to  respect,  had  ever  been  the  most 
independent  and  self-respecting  of  the  aborigines. 
Possibly  they  were  the  direct  descendants  of  the 
most  civilized  of  the  native  races  whose  architectural 
remains,  plentiful  in  the  State  of  Oaxaca,  still  baffle 
the  inquiry  of  the  scientist. 

It  was  said  of  them,  in  the  periods  antecedent  to 
the  advent  of  the  Europeans,  that  they  maintained 
their  freedom  throughout  all  the  wars  waged  against 
them,  and  gained  the  reputation  of  being  the  boldest 
and  most  vigorous  of  all  the  native  races.  They  were 
characterized  as  a  race  of  virtuous  and  well-favored 
women,  and  of  strong,  well-built,  brave,  and  often 
ferocious,  but  withal  honest,  men,  with  powerful 
frames  and  rugged  looks.  And  even  after  the  con- 
quest of  the  land  by  the  Europeans,  and  the  subjec- 
tion of  the  other  races  to  the  power  of  the  white  men, 
the  honest  mountaineers  of  Oaxaca,  —  the  Zapotecas, 
—  maintained  a  quasi-independence. 

The  birthday  of  Benito  Juarez  was  the  twenty -first 
of  March,  1806 ;  and  both  his  parents  were  Zapotecas. 
He  was  baptized  when  a  day  old,  and  received  the 


206  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

name  of  Benito  Pablo  (Benjamin  Paul).  The  second 
of  these  names  he  seems  never  to  have  used,  and 
within  half  a  century  of  his  birth  the  simple  nam6  of 
Benito  Juarez  became  a  household  word  in  Mexico,  and 
was  known  throughout  the  world  in  attractive  contrast 
with  the  long  names  usually  borne  by  the  aristocrats 
of  Mexico  and  Spanish-American  countries  generally. 

The  home  of  Juarez's  infancy  was  a  rude  adobe 
hut  with  thatch  roof,  such  as  may  be  seen  in  great 
numbers  tliroughout  the  country.  No  other  language 
was  spoken  in  San  Pablo  Guelatao  than  the  Zapoteca 
dialect,  and  Benito  learned  no  other  before  he  reached 
his  twelfth  year.  His  parents  died  when  he  was  three 
years  of  age,  and  he  was  for  nine  years  left  to  the 
care  of  a  grandmother. 

The  reputation  for  honesty  and  industry  acquired 
by  the  Zapoteca  mountaineers  stood  their  children 
in  good  stead,  and  made  them  in  demand  for  house 
servants  in  the  homes  of  Oaxaca,  the  capital  and 
metropolis  of  that  province.  A  sister  of  Benito  had 
obtained  some  domestic  service  there,  and  in  1818, 
alone  and  unassisted,  Benito  took  his  journey  to  that 
city,  probably  intending  to  assist  her  in  her  labors.  He 
was  so  fortunate  as  to  find  a  home  with  a  book-binder, 
who  was  also  a  member  of  a  minor  religious  order,  — 
the  third,  or  lay  order,  of  the  Franciscans.  By  him, 
Benito  was  taught  to  read  and  write  Mexican-Spanish, 
rudimentary  mathematics,  and  the  principles  of  Span- 
ish grammar,  without  neglecting  his  religious  and 
moral  training  or  instruction  in  good  habits.  Thus 
the  boyhood  of  Juarez  was  spent  in  the  midst  of 
the  scenes  of  the  military  exploits  of  Morelos,  whose 
memory  was  fresh  in  the  minds  of  all  with  whom  he 
came  in  contact. 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  207 

After  this  preliminary  education,  Juarez  was  put  in 
the  Church  school  in  Oaxaca,  in  October,  1821.  The 
Independence  of  Mexico  had  just  been  established, 
and  Juarez  had  reached  an  age  when  the  subjects 
discussed  about  him  were  likely  to  make  a  deep  and 
lasting  impression  upon  his  mind.  During  these  im- 
pressionable years  of  his  youth,  while  the  stirring 
events  succeeding  the  putting  forth  of  the  "  Plan  de 
Iguala  "  were  in  progress,  down  toward  the  close  of 
Victoria's  Presidency,  Juarez  was  pursuing  a  course 
in  Mediseval  Latin,  canon  law,  dogmatic  theology, 
and  philosophy,  —  the  utmost  range  of  study  then 
permitted  to  a  student,  education  in  Mexico  being 
still  exclusively  in  the  hands  of  the  clergy.  Iguala 
was  within  the  hmits  of  the  Province  of  Oaxaca,  and 
its  importance  in  the  events  of  the  time  were  not 
likely  to  be  overlooked  by  any  of  the  Oaxacans,  espe- 
cially by  so  bright  a  student  as  Juarez  was  already 
proving  himself  to  be. 

In  those  days,  a  few  Indians  were  annually  per- 
mitted to  enter  the  priesthood,  and  the  door  of  the 
seminary  was  open  to  these.  Not  only  was  the  career 
of  the  Church  the  only  one  open  to  talent  in  Mexico 
in  the  year  when  Juarez  began  his  studies,  but  it  was 
the  one  which  his  guardian  naturally  selected  for  him. 
Consequently,  in  1827,  Juarez  began  the  study  of 
theology,  being  intended  by  his  guardian  for  the 
priesthood.  But  one  of  the  immediate  results  of  the 
Constitution  of  1824  was  a  strong  impulse  given  to 
popular  education.  The  sturdy  Oaxacans  availed 
themselves  of  the  exceptional  opportunities  offered 
them,  and  in  1826  the  Legislature  of  the  newly  organ- 
ized State  of  Oaxaca  founded  an  Institute  of  Arts  and 
Sciences,  in  the  City  of  Oaxaca.     Juarez  withdrew 


208  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

from  his  theological  studies  and  matriculated  in  the 
Institute.  Two  years  later  he  was  appointed  Pro- 
fessor of  Experimental  Physics  in  the  Institute.  His 
preference  for  the  law  had  caused  his  discontinuance 
of  his  theological  studies  upon  his  attaining  his 
majority,  and  he  pursued  his  legal  studies  while 
engaged  as  a  professor  in  the  Institute,  It  required 
seven  years  of  study  to  fit  him  for  the  practice  of  his 
chosen  profession.  In  the  year  1832  he  received  the 
degree  of  Bachelor  of  Laws  in  the  University  of  Oax- 
aca,  which  afterwards  conferred  upon  him  the  degree 
of  Doctor  of  Civil  Law,  —  a  rare  honor  in  Mexico, 
with  its  multiplicity  of  military  titles.  He  was  finally 
admitted  to  the  bar  in  1834,  being  then  in  his  twenty- 
eightli  year. 

Already  he  had  entered  upon  a  political  career.  In 
1831  he  was  elected  Regidor  of  the  City  of  Oaxaca, 
and  filled  the  position  of  Judicial  Secretary  to  the 
Municipal  Council.  The  following  year  he  was 
elected  a  Deputy  to  the  State  Legislature.  As  the 
result  of  the  close  attention  he  gave  to  public  affairs, 
he  adopted  Liberal  ideas,  and  attached  liimself  at  once 
to  the  Federalist  party,  which  was  the  popular  party 
of  Oaxaca.  He  remained  true  to  that  party  through- 
out his  career,  and  throughout  its  transformation  into 
the  Liberal  party  of  later  days.  He  was  ever  a  stanch 
supporter  of  the  ideas  of  Gomez  Farias.  His  was  a 
political  fidelity  not  usual  among  the  public  men  in 
Mexico.  Few  men  there  have  been  as  consistent  as 
Benito  Juarez  in  acting  in  accordance  with  avowed 
political  principles. 

It  was  not  long  before  he  was  brought  into  close 
contact  with  national  affairs,  and  made  to  learn  that 
political  life  in  Mexico  has  its  discomforts  and  may 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  209 

be  slow  in  bringing  its  rewards.  Oaxaca  was  by  no 
means  so  provincial  as  to  be  withdrawn  from  all  in- 
terest in  the  stirring  events  of  Santa  Anna's  career  of 
intrigue.  That  State  had  always  maintained  such 
sturdy  Federalist  principles  that  it  was  naturally  re- 
garded with  suspicion  by  the  Centralists  and  Conser- 
vatives. In  1836,  during  the  disturbed  state  of  affairs 
resultino-  from  the  chang-e  of  the  Constitution  of  1824 
to  the  Siete  Leyes  and  the  Centralized  Constitution, 
Oaxaca,  like  other  States,  was  deprived,  by  the  new 
order  of  things,  of  her  sovereignty.  Against  this  she 
protested ;  and  because  of  the  boldness  of  her  protest, 
Juarez  with  others  suffered  imprisonment  for  several 
months.  The  allegation  was  that  he  was  implicated 
in  a  revolution  against  the  Conservatives,  similar  to 
that  of  Texas,  and  with  the  same  end  in  view.  There 
can  be  no  doubt  that  Juarez  sympathized,  as  did  most 
of  the  Oaxacans,  with  the  Texans  in  their  assertion 
of  the  rights  of  their  State,  although  he  regretted 
deeply  that  the  course  pursued  with  them  was  such 
as  to  occasion  the  loss  of  such  valuable  territory  to 
his  country. 

During  the  next  ten  years,  while  Oaxaca  was  at  the 
mercy  of  the  Conservative  politicians  at  the  national 
capital,  Juarez  held  the  office  of  Civil  and  Revenue 
Judge  for  two  years  ;  acted  for  a  short  time  as  Secre- 
tary of  the  Governor  of  the  State ;  and  served  as  one 
of  a  triumvirate  into  whose  hands  the  executive  power 
of  the  State  was  placed,  after  the  revolution  of  August, 
1846,  had  restored  to  the  State  lier  constitutional  sov- 
ereignty. These  positions  demanded  the  exercise  of 
a  large  amount  of  tact  and  political  Siigacity  ;  for  the 
State  of  Oaxaca  never  wholly  relinquished  her  sover- 
eignty, and  had  to  be  constantly  on  her  guard  to  avoid 

14 


210  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

an  open  breach  with  the  Centralized  Autocratic  Gov- 
ernment at  the  capital  of  the  country,  and  the  appear- 
ance of  rebellion.  That  Juarez  avoided  arrest  all  these 
years,  attests  the  clear,  cool  judgment  which  dictated 
his  course. 

Besides  his  public  career,  Juarez  practised  his  pro- 
fession, at  intervals,  with  success.  In  this  he  was 
associated  with  a  young  man  named  Porfirio  Diaz,  his 
pupil,  the  inheritor  of  his  political  ideas  and  the  future 
wearer  of  his  mantle. 

In  1846  Juarez  made  his  dSut  in  national  politics, 
being  that  year  a  Deputy  to  Congress  from  his  native 
State.  He  supported  the  measures  of  Gomez  Farias ; 
and  when  Congress  was  dissolved,  he  retired  to 
Oaxaca.  He  was  almost  immediately  elected  Gov- 
ernor of  that  State,  and  for  five  years  he  administered 
its  affairs  with  economy  and  prudence.  During  his 
gubernatorial  term  he  prepared  and  promulgated  a 
civil  and  criminal  code  for  the  State  —  the  first  code 
of  laws  ever  published  in  Mexico. 

On  a  vague  charge  of  complicity  in  a  revolution  in 
Oaxaca,  Santa  Anna  had  Juarez  arrested  in  May,  1853. 
He  was  imprisoned,  first  in  Puebla  and  then  in  Jalapa. 
Then,  without  being  permitted  to  communicate  with 
his  family,  he  was  again  taken  to  Puebla,  whence  he 
was  removed  to  Vera  Cruz.  After  an  incarceration 
in  the  dismal  dungeon  of  the  prison  of  San  Juan  de 
Ulua,  he  was  sent  into  exile.  He  went  on  an  Eng- 
lish vessel,  first  to  Havana,  and  thence  to  New 
Orleans,  where  he  resided  until  July,  1855,  finding 
abundant  opportunity,  even  in  the  poverty  imposed 
upon  him  by  his  exile,  to  study  the  institutions  of 
a  successful  Republic,  and  to  perfect  himself  in  a 
knowledge  of  constitutional  law  and  the  science  of 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  211 

government  —  a  knowledge  which  he  deeply  felt 
was  necessary  to  the  working  of  a  thorough  ref- 
ormation in  Mexico  and  bringing  to  that  country 
permanent  peace  and  stability  of  government. 

News  of  the  "  Plan  de  Ayotla  "  reached  Juarez  in 
New  Orleans,  and  he  felt  that  the  time  had  come  for 
]\Iexico  to  free  herself  from  bad  government.  Going 
by  way  of  Panama,  he  arrived  in  Acapulco  in  July, 
1855.  There  he  found  himself  in  company  with  men 
having  political  views  identical  with  his  own.  The 
part  he  took  in  the  preparation  of  the  new  Constitu- 
tion and  the  reform  in  the  government  was  second  to 
that  of  no  one.  He  remained  firm  when  Comonfort 
wavered.  And  he  now  took  up  the  burdens  of  the 
exalted  office  of  President,  under  circumstances  which 
would  have  caused  another  to  put  them  aside. 

Without  tlie  means  to  establish  his  government  in 
the  capital,  Juarez  arrived  in  Guanajuato  on  the  nine- 
teenth of  January,  1858,  barely  escaping  General 
Tomas  Mejia,  who  was  in  San  Juan  del  Rio  with 
Reactionary  forces.  In  Guanajuato  he  was  hospita- 
bly entertained  by  Manuel  Doblado ;  and  there  he 
formed  his  Cabinet,  and  issued  a  proclamation  declar- 
ing himself  Constitutional  President.  He  received 
the  recognition  of  some  of  the  States,  and  these  con- 
tributed forces  for  the  defence  of  the  Constitutional 
Government. 

As  a  body  of  Reactionary  troops  had  left  the  capital 
in  pursuit  of  the  Constitutionalists,  the  latter  deemed 
it  wise  to  retire  in  the  direction  of  Guadalajara. 
The  battle  of  Estanca  de  las  Yacas  was  fought  near 
Celaya,  and  the  "  Constitutionalistas,"  or  "  Juaris- 
tas  "  as  they  began  to  be  called,  were  defeated  by  a 
superior  force  of  Reactionaries,  and  retired  to  Sala- 


212  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

manca.  On  the  thirteenth  of  March  the  battle  of 
Salamanca  was  fought.  Again  the  victory  was  with 
the  Reactionaries. 

Juarez  arrived  in  Guadalajara  on  the  fifteenth  of 
February,  and  established  his  government  in  the  State 
Executive  Palace  there.  When  the  news  reached  him 
of  the  defeat  of  his  little  army  at  Salamanca,  he  issued 
a  proclamation  stating  that  the  Constitutional  Gov- 
ernment was  determined  to  resist  all  attacks  made 
upon  it.  This  was  intended  for  the  encouragement 
of  his  followers,  who  might  otherwise  take  this  second 
defeat  of  his  troops  as  evidence  that  he  had  given  up 
the  struggle  for  constitutional  government. 

It  was  at  tliis  juncture  that  soldiers  from  the  garri- 
son at  Guadalajara,  having  just  pronounced  in  favor 
of  the  Reactionaries,  entered  the  palace  and  arrested 
all  who  were  found  therein.  Not  content  with  this 
high-handed  proceeding,  the  commandant  of  the 
garrison  gave  the  order  to  shoot  all  the  prisoners. 
For  a  moment  Juarez  stood  with  muskets  levelled  at 
him,  awaiting  the  shot  that  would  end  the  struggle 
for  constitutional  government  and  add  his  name  to 
the  long  list  of  martyrs  for  the  cause  of  law  and 
order  in  Mexico.  The  cool  behavior  of  one  of  his 
followers  caused  the  soldiers  to  hesitate.  They  were 
induced  to  espouse  the  cause  of  the  Constitutional- 
ists. The  report  that  Juarez  had  been  captured  was 
forwarded  to  the  City  of  Mexico,  and  before  it  could 
be  contradicted  caused  great  rejoicing  among  the 
clericals. 

Juarez  was  joined  in  Guadalajara  by  a  few  troops, 
and  with  these  he  advanced  to  Colima  and  Manzanillo. 
But  so  lamentable  was  the  situation  that  the  Presi- 
dent and  his  ministers  gained  among  the  Mexicans 


THE   WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  213 

(who  are  fond  of  bestowing  nick-names)  the  popular 
title  of  the  "  Sick  Family."  On  the  way,  a  battle 
was  foiiofht  at  Santa  Ana  Acatlan.  In  view  of  the 
dangers  encountered  at  Acatlan,  and  in  order  that  his 
own  determination  to  uphold  the  Constitutional  Gov- 
ernment in  the  face  of  all  opposition  and  at  the  risk 
of  his  life  might  not  involve  the  safety  and  happiness 
of  his  followers,  Juarez  proposed  that  his  ministers 
might  resign  if  they  wished  to.  But  they  all  declined, 
and  renewed  their  pledges  to  support  him  in  what 
must  have  seemed  to  all  but  Juarez  a  forlorn  hope. 

Proceeding  on  his  way  to  Colima,  Juarez  appointed 
General  Degollado  to  be  Secretary  of  War  and  Marine 
and  General-in-chief  of  the  army  to  be  raised  in  de- 
fence of  the  Constitutional  Government.  Accom- 
panied by  his  Cabinet,  he  proceeded  by  way  of 
Mazatlan  and  by  steamer  to  Panama.  Crossing  the 
Isthmus,  he  took  steamer  first  to  Havana,  thence  to 
New  Orleans,  and  finally  to  Vera  Cruz,  where  he 
established  his  government  on  the  fourth  of  May, 
1858.  He  was  cordially  received  by  the  Governor 
of  the  State,  and  other  Liberals  whom  he  found  there. 

The  city  of  Vera  Cruz  was  admirably  adapted, 
under  the  circumstances,  to  be  the  seat  of  the  Con- 
stitutional Government.  It  was  the  principal  port  of 
entry  in  the  whole  country,  by  far  the  greater  part  of 
the  public  revenues  being  derived  from  the  import 
duties  at  this  port,  and  at  Tampico,  not  far  distant 
on  tlie  same  Gulf  coast.  The  city  also  afforded  ad- 
mirable facilities  for  securing  arms  and  munitions 
from  the  United  States ;  and  within  a  year  the  United 
States  (April  9,  1859)  recognized  President  Juarez  as 
the  legitimate  constitutional  ruler  of  Mexico.  From 
Vera  Cruz  the  Constitutional  President  continued  the 


214  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

war  with  the  Reactionary  party  and  with  the  usurpers 
of  the  Presidential  office  in  the  capital  of  the  country. 
In  this  he  conducted  himself  in  such  a  manner  as  to 
win  the  admiration  of  the  world. 

This  war  is  known  in  history  as  the  "  War  of  the 
Reform."  It  was  the  bloodiest  of  all  the  civil  wars 
ever  waged  in  Mexico,  and  by  reason  of  the  ecclesias- 
tical interests  at  issue  in  the  struggle  it  was  marked 
with  all  the  bitterness  and  cruelty  of  a  religious  war. 
Certainly  the  ecclesiastical  powers  did  all  within  the 
limits  of  possibility  to  give  it  that  character;  they 
supplied  the  Reactionaries  with  resources  for  the  con- 
duct of  the  war,  and  encouraged  them  by  the  issue  of 
inflammatory  pastorals  which  kept  the  popular  mind 
continually  stirred  up  against  the  Liberal  government. 

Miramon  won  the  battle  of  Carretas,  and  went  to 
San  Luis  Potosf.  The  Reactionary  forces  attacked 
Zacatecas  and  killed  some  of  the  government  officials. 
Degollado  was  defeated  by  Reactionaries  under  Mi- 
ramon at  Atenquique.  Santiago  Vidaurri  (then  a 
"Juarista")  defeated  Miramon  at  Ahaululco,  The 
"  Juaristas "  met  with  reverses  at  Guadalajara  and 
Tolototlan.  By  the  capture  of  Zacatecas  (which,  how- 
ever, he  was  unable  to  hold)  General  Leonardo  Marquez 
attained  to  eminence  as  a  Reactionary  leader,  and 
began  a  career  of  cruelty  scarcely  paralleled  in  the 
history  of  the  nineteenth  century.  The  war  proceeded 
with  varying  fortunes,  though  for  the  most  part 
disastrously  to  the  "  Juaristas,"  who  lost  battles  and 
leaders,  not  a  few  of  the  latter  by  desertion  to  the 
Reactionaries. 

Vidaurri  held  the  northern  States  for  the  "  Consti- 
tutionalistas  "  throughout  the  struggle,  and  deserted 
the  Republic  subsequently.     To  General  Porfirio  Diaz 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  215 

was  assigned  the  task  of  the  "pacification"  of  the 
State  of  Oaxaca,  which  he  accomplished  in  May,  1860. 
The  seat  of  the  war  extended,  therefore,  across  the 
central  portion  of  the  country,  but  was  concentrated 
upon  the  eastern  slope  of  the  Sierra  Madre,  between 
the  capital  and  Vera  Cruz. 

Encouraged  by  his  successes  in  the  interior,  Mira- 
mon  attempted,  in  February,  1859,  to  capture  Vera 
Cruz,  the  seat  of  the  Constitutional  Government.  He 
succeeded  in  investing  the  city,  but  found  the  resist- 
ance so  stubborn  that  he  was  forced  to  raise  the  siege 
the  following  month.  To  liide  his  defeat,  he  hastened 
to  join  Marquez  in  the  defence  of  the  capital,  then 
threatened  by  the  "  Juaristas  "  under  General  Degol- 
lado.  The  two  armies  engaged  in  battle  at  Tacubaya ; 
and,  not  content  with  victory,  Marquez  executed  a 
great  number  of  prisoners,  and  among  them  six  medi- 
cal men  who  had  gone  from  the  capital  to  care  for  the 
wounded  of  the  army  of  the  "  Juaristas  "  —  thereby 
gaining  for  himself  the  title  of  "  The  Tiger  of  Ta- 
cubaya," The  day  following  the  battle,  Marquez 
made  a  triumphal  entry  into  the  capital,  and  was  pre- 
sented by  the  women  with  a  silk  sash  inscribed 
with  the  words  "  To  virtue  and  valor ;  a  token  of  the 
gratitude  of  the  daughters  of  Mexico."  Marquez 
was  subsequently  arrested  by  the  Reactionary  chief 
at  Guadalajara,  for  insubordination,  and  for  robbing 
a  conducta  of  six  hundred  thousand  dollars,  on  its 
way  from  Mexico  to  Guadalajara. 

Miramon  reorganized  his  army  in  three  divisions, 
taking  the  command  of  one  himself  and  giving  the 
command  of  the  other  two  to  General  Marquez  and 
General  Tomas  Mejia  respectively.  Mejia  was  of 
pure  Indian  blood,  claiming  lineal  descent  from  the 


216  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Aztec  war-chiefs.  Being  a  stanch  and  fanatical  ad- 
herent of  the  Church,  he  had  been  in  arms  against  the 
Liberals  since  1853,  most  of  the  time  carrying  on  a 
guerrilla  warfare  in  the  mountain  districts.  He  was 
the  soul  of  honor  compared  with  Marquez,  for  whom 
no  deed  of  cruelty  or  robbery  was  too  disgraceful  to 
be  perpetrated. 

On  the  fifteenth  of  November,  1859,  Miramon  and 
Mejia  defeated  Degollado  at  a  second  battle  of  Estanca 
de  las  Vacas.  Juarez  relieved  Degollado  of  the  com- 
mand of  the  army,  and  appointed  him  military  governor 
of  Zacatecas.  He  was  succeeded  in  the  command  of 
the  army  of  the  Constitutionalists  by  General  Jesus 
Gonzalez  Ortega. 

Early  in  1860,  Miramon  returned  to  his  former 
design  of  capturing  Vera  Cruz  ;  and  in  March  he 
appeared  before  that  city.  In  preparing  to  besiege 
the  city  he  sent  to  Havana,  and,  with  funds  furnished 
by  the  Church,  purchased  two  steam  vessels  and  muni- 
tions of  war,  to  be  brought  to  Vera  Cruz  and  to  co- 
operate from  the  Gulf  with  his  forces  on  land.  The 
approach  of  the  two  vessels  was  disputed  by  the 
squadron  from  other  nations  in  the  port  of  Vera 
Cruz,  and  they  were  regarded  as  semi-piratical,  being 
unable  to  show  proper  ship's  papers.  Juarez  re- 
quested the  United  States  squadron  to  examine  the 
papers  of  the  two  vessels  ;  and  in  the  attempt  to 
do  so,  the  United  States  frigate  was  fired  upon. 
The  commander  of  the  frigate  at  once  seized  the 
ships  and  took  them  to  New  Orleans  for  further 
investigation.  They  were  finally  released ;  but  the 
delay  gained  by  their  detention  was  valuable  to  the 
"  Juaristas,"  and  resulted  in  Miramon's  failure  in 
his  attack  upon  Vera  Cruz. 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  217 

The  commander  of  the  British  squadron  in  Vera 
Cruz,  acting  in  the  interests  of  the  merchants  of  tlie 
city  and  of  the  foreign  residents,  offered  to  mediate 
the  cause  at  issue  between  the  two  governments. 
An  armistice  was  arranged,  and  an  assembly  of 
prominent  Mexican  citizens  convened  to  devise  some 
plan  by  which  to  settle  the  difhculties  between  the 
"  Juaristas  "  and  the  Reactionaries,  and  to  avoid  the 
bombardment  of  the  city.  The  assembly  proposed  a 
convention  from  the  several  States,  to  form  a  Consti- 
tution to  be  submitted  to  the  vote  of  the  people,  with 
a  provisional  government  ad  iiiterim :  that  is,  a  repe- 
tition of  the  "  Plan  de  Ayotla,"  but  entirely  under 
the  control  of  the  Reactionaries. 

Juarez,  who  was  tired  of  the  repeated  proposition 
for  a  new  Constitution  from  the  party  that  had  showed 
no  capacity  for  constitutional  government,  declared, 
as  his  ultimatum,  that  the  country  already  had  a  Con- 
stitution and  a  government.  What  he  demanded  was 
the  calling  of  a  Congress  according  to  the  provisions 
of  the  Constitution  of  1857.  Miramon  accordingly 
broke  off  negotiations  and  renewed  the  siege.  From 
mere  wantonness,  he  bombarded  the  city  from  the  fif- 
teenth to  the  twentieth  of  March.  Having  exhausted 
his  ammunition,  and  finding  that  sickness  was  deplet- 
ing his  troops,  on  the  twenty-first  of  March  he  raised 
the  siege  and  returned  to  the  capital  to  take  his  last 
stand  against  the  Constitutionalists. 

It  was  while  these  military  operations  were  in  prog- 
ress in  the  neighborhood  of  Vera  Cruz,  and  in  the 
very  darkest  hour  of  the  Constitutional  Government, 
that  Juarez  issued  the  decree  nationalizing  and  se- 
questrating the  property  of  the  Church  in  Mexico. 
Its  ultimate  effect  was  to  deprive  the   Reactionary 


218  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

party  of  its  resources,  and  thus  to  break  its  power.  It 
was  followed,  on  the  twenty-sixth  of  July,  by  the  law 
regarding  civil  mariiage ;  and  still  later  by  the  decrees 
of  religious  toleration  and  the  secularization  of  the 
cemeteries.  These  were  comprised  in  the  "  Laws  of  the 
Reform  "  — the  basis  of  the  great  economic  and  social 
revolution  so  necessary  to  the  regeneration  of  Mexico. 

The  apology  offered  for  the  first-mentioned  of  these 
decrees  is  somewhat  analagous  to  that  offered  by  Com- 
onfort  for  confiscating  the  property  of  the  clergy  in 
Puebla  after  quelling  an  insurrection  incited  by  them. 
The  clergy  had  been  the  chief  supporters  of  the  Span- 
ish party  in  the  wars  for  the  independence  of  the 
country,  and  since  that  time  had  been  the  most  power- 
ful enemies  of  progress  and  of  popular  government. 
They  had  promoted  the  present  civil  war,  with  the 
purpose  of  overthrowing  the  Constitution  which  the 
Mexican  people  had  adopted,  and  of  retaining  their 
former  supremacy  in  political  as  well  as  spiritual  af- 
fairs. They  furnished  the  active  enemies  of  consti- 
tutional government  with  resources  enabling  them  to 
maintain  the  war. 

The  decree  was  most  sweeping  in  its  effects.  By 
virtue  thereof,  the  nation  was  entitled  to  possess  all 
the  properties  of  the  clergy,  both  religious  and  secu- 
lar, and  the  Church  was  denied  the  right  to  possess 
real  estate  ;  religious  orders  and  religious  communities 
were  absolutely  and  definitively  dissolved,  as  being 
contrary  to  public  welfare ;  Church  and  State  were 
absolutely  separated,  and  religious  freedom  was  fully 
and  firmly  established.  The  clergy  were  thenceforth 
to  receive  such  compensation  for  their  services  as 
might  be  voluntarily  bestowed  by  their  parishioners, 
instead  of  a  stipend  from  the  State. 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  219 

By  the  other  decrees,  marriage  was  thenceforth  to 
be  considered  in  law  as  a  civil  contract  only,  and  was 
thus  freed  from  the  restraints  and  expenses  previ- 
ously imposed  upon  it  by  the  clergy,  which  had 
tended  to  the  corruption  of  morals  throughout  the 
countr)^  and  had  been  the  means  of  sustaining  among 
the  poor  a  system  of  peonage  beyond  the  power  of 
the  laws  abolishing  slavery  to  efface. 

These  decrees  were  intended  to  correct  many  abuses 
which  existed  in  the  country,  and  they  were  a  part  of 
that  programme  of  Reform  which  Juarez  had  set  out  to 
accomplish.  As  such,  they  were  issued  in  good  faith, 
although  at  the  time  they  may  have  seemed  intended 
merely  to  cripple  the  resources  of  the  enemy  and  in- 
spire the  friends  of  the  Constitutional  Government 
with  fresh  courage.  It  was  several  years  before  they 
could  be  engrafted  upon  the  organic  law  of  the  land ; 
but  their  direct  result  was  to  secure  reinforcements 
for  the  "  Juaristas,"  and  to  turn  the  tide  of  popular 
favor  in  the  direction  of  the  Constitutional  Govern- 
ment. For  the  "  Constitutionalistas "  were  thereby 
proving  themselves  honest  and  consistent.  No  previ- 
ous effort  at  reform  had  ever  been  adhered  to  in  the 
face  of  obstacles  as  this  had  been.  One-haK  the  diffi- 
culties experienced  by  Juarez  and  his  adherents  would 
have  been  deemed,  at  any  time  in  the  previous  history 
of  Mexico,  ample  excuse  for  suspending  any  effort  to 
secure  popular  government,  or  for  throwing  over  any 
Constitution.  Juarez  was  honest.  He  meant  what 
he  said,  and  was  determined  to  do  all  he  promised ; 
and  the  Vera  Cruz  decrees  inspired  the  people  with 
confidence  in  him.  Though  the  Reactionaries  seemed 
at  that  time  to  hold  the  balance  of  power,  and  to  be 
able  to  prevent  the  enforcement  of  the  decrees,  yet 


220  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

they  were  inspired  with  dread  of  the  man  who  could 
so  coolly  proceed  with  the  performance  of  his  duty 
under  such  trying  circumstances  as  those  which  they 
had  created. 

The  position  of  the  Reactionaries  was,  in  fact, 
becoming  critical.  They  were  in  possession  of  the 
capital,  of  Puebla,  and  of  Guadalajara.  But  they 
were  themselves  split  up  into  contentious  factions. 
The  people  were  beginning  to  take  cognizance  of  the 
cruelties  and  robberies  tliat  marked  their  conduct  of 
affairs.  It  was  not  long  before  General  Ortega  was 
able  to  capture  Guadalajara,  reorganize  his  army,  and 
march  toward  the  City  of  Mexico.  Miramon  made  an 
unsuccessful  attempt  to  recapture  Guadalajara,  and 
won  an  unimportant  victory  in  th.e  south  of  Jalisco. 
In  August,  1860,  the  army  of  the  "  Juaristas  "  under 
Ortega  defeated  the  Reactionaries  under  Miramon,  at 
Silao ;  and  by  the  tenth  of  November,  Ortega  was  able 
to  surround  the  capital.  So  assured  was  he  of  the 
final  success  of  his  plan,  that  he  addressed  a  circular 
lettei'  to  the  representatives  of  the  foreign  govern- 
ments in  the  capital,  making  known  his  determination 
to  occupy  the  city  and  to  allow  no  reclamations  under 
any  pretext  whatever  for  supplies  furnished  or  for 
loans  made  to  the  Reactionaries. 

Miramon  gained  a  partial  victory  at  San  Bartolo,  on 
the  first  of  December ;  and  on  the  sixth  he  surprised 
and  captured  Toluca,  taking  many  prisoners,  Gomez 
Farias  and  DegoUado  among  them.  These  reverses 
did  not,  however,  retard  the  preparations  of  the 
"  Juaristas  "  for  the  final  decisive  conflict.  Ortega 
directed  his  march  toward  the  east,  that  he  might  be 
between  Vera  Cruz  and  the  capital.  General  Ignacio 
Zaragoza  was  brought  from  the  defence  of  Guadala- 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  221 

jara,  to  assist  the  "  Juaristas  "  in  the  vicinity  of  the 
capital.  On  the  twenty-second  of  December  the 
"  Juaristas  "  (an  army  of  eleven  thousand  men  under 
General  Ortega)  and  the  Reactionaries  (eight  thou- 
sand men  under  Miramon)  faced  each  other  at  Cal- 
pulalpam  for  the  decisive  battle  of  the  War  of  the 
Reform.  The  battle  raged  for  two  days,  and  the 
"Juaristas  "  were  completely  victorious.  Miramon  fled 
to  the  capital,  where  he  and  Zuloaga  divided  the 
Reactionary  treasury  between  them.  Miramon  then 
went  into  exile.  Zuloaga,  Marquez,  and  other  Re- 
actionary leaders,  retired  to  the  mountain  districts, 
where  they  continued  to  raise  partisans  to  oppose  the 
Liberal  government. 

The  troops  of  the  "  Juaristas,"  under  General  Ortega, 
entered  the  capital  on  the  twenty-seventh  of  Decem- 
ber, and  the  decree  of  sequestration  issued  from  Vera 
Cruz  was  speedily  put  into  operation.  In  the  spolia- 
tion of  the  Church  which  followed,  it  was  due  to  the 
forethought  of  Ignacio  Ramirez,  a  famous  publicist 
whom  Juarez  appointed  Minister  of  Instruction  and 
Public  Works,  that  the  valuable  paintings  previously 
existing  in  the  monasteries,  went  to  enricli  the  galleries 
of  the  San  Carlos  Academy  of  Fine  Arts ;  and  that  the 
Biblioteea  Nadonal  was  founded  in  the  San  Augustin 
Monastery,  and  was  made  the  permanent  depository 
of  the  books  derived  from  the  religious  houses. 

The  defeated  and  scattered  Reactionaries  continued 
a  guerrilla  warfare,  and  sought  by  acts  of  wanton 
cruelty  to  wreak  their  vengeance  upon  the  victorious 
Constitutionahsts,  or  the  party  of  the  Reform,  as  they 
came  now  to  be  called.  In  February,  1861,  Mariano 
Escobedo,  who  had  risen  from  an  humble  position  to 
the  rank  of  Brigadier-General,  and  had  been  present 


222  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

in  the  latter  capacity  with  the  forces  of  the  "  Juaristas  " 
at  the  battle  of  Calpulalpam,  was  sent  to  check  the 
depredations  of  Marquez  and  Mejia.  He  was  sur- 
prised and  taken  prisoner  at  Rio  Verde,  and  Marquez 
issued  an  order  to  have  him  shot.  His  life  was  spared 
at  the  intercession  of  Mejia,  and  he  subsequently  es- 
caped from  imprisonment. 

In  April,  Marquez,  encouraged  by  the  hope  that 
the  European  nations  would  intervene  in  the  aifairs 
of  Mexico  in  aid  of  the  Reactionaries,  marched  upon 
Tulancingo,  but  was  defeated  in  an  attempt  upon 
Queretaro.  Joining  Zuloaga,  however,  he  occupied 
Villa  del  Carbon  the  following  month.  The  Re- 
actionaries now  selected  Melchor  Ocampo  as  the 
especial  object  of  their  hatred,  and  encouraged  the 
guerrilla  bands  which  infested  the  country  to  capture 
him.  This  remarkable  man  was  probably,  next  to 
Juarez,  the  most  prominent  of  the  Reform  leaders. 
He  was  born  in  the  city  of  Valladolid,  in  1815,  —  the 
year  when  another  great  native  of  that  city  (in  whose 
honor  its  name  was  changed  to  Morelia)  was  exe- 
cuted. He  was  a  man  of  education,  and  a  graduate 
in  law ;  but  after  a  few  years  of  practice  in  that  pro- 
fession, he  gave  himself  up  to  the  study  of  botany, 
chemistry,  and  scientific  agriculture,  and  acquired  a 
reputation  in  those  subjects  abroad  as  Avell  as  at 
home.  He  served  as  Deputy  in  Congress  in  1843  and 
in  1816,  and  was  then  unanimously  elected  Governor 
of  Miclioacan.  During  his  term  of  office  he  made 
many  public  improvements,  and  established  the  college 
of  San  Nicolas  Obispo  and  had  it  placed  under  State 
and  not  under  ecclesiastical  control.  He  resigned  the 
Governorship  in  1846,  and  retired  to  his  country-seat, 
which  he  had  named  "  Pomoca,"  being  an  anagram  of 
his  name. 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  223 

He  was  reelected  Governor,  in  June,  1852,  but 
resigned  again  in  January,  1855.  The  Legislature, 
in  accepting  his  resignation,  passed  a  unanimous  vote 
of  thanks  for  his  eminent  services  to  the  State.  He 
was  among  those  arrested  by  Santa  Anna  upon  the 
latter's  assuming  the  Dictatorship  in  1855,  and  was 
imprisoned  in  San  Juan  de  Ulua  awaiting  a  vessel  to 
take  him  into  exile.  The  "  Plan  de  Ayotla  "  secured 
his  release  from  prison,  and  he  was  for  about  eight 
weeks  chief  of  the  cabinet  of  President  Alvarez.  He 
resigned  because  of  his  lack  of  sympathy  with  Comon- 
fort's  policy  of  compromise.  As  a  member  of  the 
Constituent  Congress,  he  was  active  and  influential. 
He  was  a  member  of  Juarez's  cabinet  in  Guadalajara. 

A  guerrilla  band,  under  the  leadership  of  a  noted 
desperado  named  Cajiga,  went  to  Pomoca  for  the  pur- 
pose of  capturing  Ocampo.  Meeting  a  visitor  and 
mistaking  him  for  the  man  they  sought,  they  arrested 
him.  The  prisoner,  desiring  to  protect  his  friend,  re- 
fused to  disclose  his  identity,  and  would  have  suffered 
in  the  place  of  Ocampo  had  not  the  latter  appeared 
and  promptly  told  who  he  was. 

Ocampo  was  taken  before  Marquez,  and  by  his 
orders  was  shot  at  Tepeji  del  Rio,  on  the  road  to 
Morelia,  and  his  body  was  hanged  on  a  tree.  It  was 
afterwards  taken  to  the  City  of  Mexico,  and  lay  in 
state  in  the  Chamber  of  Congress  until  entombed  in 
the  Panteon  de  San  Fernando.  The  tomb  of  this 
noble  patriot  and  progressionist  bears  the  inscription, 
"  Sacrificado  i^or  la  Tirania.^^ 

The  people  in  the  neighborhood  of  Pomoca  were 
infuriated  by  this  crime  of  the  Reactionaries,  and 
threatened  to  sweep  them  out  of  existence.  A  feel- 
ing of  intense  indignation  swept  over  the  land.     Con- 


224  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

gress  offered  a  reward  of  ten  thousand  dollars  for  the 
heads  of  Marquez,  Mejia,  Cajiga,  and  other  guerrilla 
chiefs  who  had  been  connected  with  the  crime  of 
Ocampo's  murder.  Though  inexcusable  in  the  eyes 
of  the  Liberals  of  the  present  day,  this  action  of 
Congress  seemed  justifiiible  then  because  the  City 
of  Mexico  was  menaced  by  a  reign  of  terror,  and 
the  people  were  not  to  be  appeased  by  less  drastic 
measures. 

Santos  Degollado,  then  recently  elected  a  member 
of  Congress,  and  having  been  guilty  of  a  certain  mal- 
feasance in  office  for  which  he  wished  to  atone,  asked 
the  permission  of  Congress  to  take  command  of  the 
forces  sent  out  to  suppress  the  Reactionary  leaders. 
He  was  to  be  convoyed  by  General  Tomas  O'Horan, 
but  was  impatient  of  that  officer's  delay,  and  left  the 
capital  with  only  one  hundred  and  fifty  men.  In  the 
dense  woods  of  Monte  de  las  Cruces  he  fell  into  an 
ambush  prepared  by  some  bandit  leaders.  A  desper- 
ate fight  ensued.  Degollado  Avas  taken  prisoner,  and 
was  assassinated  without  regard  to  his  rights  as  a 
prisoner  of  war.  It  was  then  discovered  that  the 
reason  why  General  O'Horan  had  not  accompanied 
Degollado  was  that  he  had  deserted  to  the  Reaction- 
aries. The  following  June,  General  Leandro  Valle, 
a  young  man  of  excellent  character,  was  sent  against 
Marquez.  He  was  defeated,  and,  by  the  orders  of 
O'Horan,  was  shot  and  his  body  hanged.  The  list 
of  "  Sacrificados  por  la  Tirania "  was  being  ex- 
tended. 

Such  was  the  disturbed  state  of  the  country  after 
the  War  of  the  Reform.  A  great  war,  —  the  first  real 
war  for  a  principle  in  the  history  of  Mexico,  —  had 
been  fought  to  a  finish,  and  the  victory  was  for  Con- 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  225 

stitutional  Government  over  tlie  rule  of  the  Churcli 
and  the  army  or  that  of  an  oligarchy.  But  Juarez  was 
anxious  that  the  principles  involved  in  the  war  should 
be  fully  and  firmly  established  and  decided,  not  by 
force  of  arms,  but  by  the  voice  of  the  people.  He 
was  occupying  the  Presidency,  as  he  felt,  by  a  series 
of  accidents.  So  he  called  for  an  election  for  Presi- 
dent in  accordance  with  the  Constitution  of  1857, 
knowing  full  well  that  the  result  of  the  election 
would  be  either  for  or  against  the  decrees  he  had  put 
forth  in  Vera  Cruz  in  1859.  These  decrees  furnished 
the  platform  upon  which  he  stood  before  the  people 
asking  their  suffrages.  There  was  no  uncertain  sound 
about  the  announcement  of  the  principles  for  which 
he  stood.  In  no  instance  does  Benito  Juarez  stand 
out  more  heroically  than  in  this  act. 

The  proclamation  for  the  election  was  made  while 
Juarez  was  still  in  Vera  Cruz.  Miguel  Lerdo  de 
Tejada  offered  himself  as  a  candidate,  but  died  in 
March,  1861,  before  the  election  could  be  held.  This 
was  much  to  the  regret  of  Juarez,  who  looked  upon 
him,  not  as  a  rival  for  political  preferment,  but  as  an 
earnest  supporter  of  his  own  schemes  for  good  gov- 
ernment. The  only  other  candidate  was  General 
Ortega.  The  election  resulted  in  a  large  majority 
for  Juarez,  and  General  Ortega  was  elected  President 
of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Justice,  thereby  becoming 
virtual  Vice-President.  When  Congress  met,  in  May, 
1861,  the  result  of  the  election  was  formally  declared, 
and  Juarez  was  promptly  installed,  on  the  first  of 
June,  as  Constitutional  President  of  Mexico. 

The  tasks  which  lay  before  the  Constitutional  party 
were  stupendous.  The  condition  of  Mexico  was  piti- 
able.    The  country  was  literally  exhausted  by  suc- 

15 


226  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

cessive  revolutions.  Nearly  two  liimdred  thousand 
Mexicans  had  been  engaged  in  the  war  of  the  past 
three  years,  and  the  loss  of  life  had  been  frightful. 
The  public  arhninistration  of  the  law  had  been  de- 
stroyed ;  robbery  and  murder  had  been  practically 
legalized,  and  were  the  order  of  the  day.  The  clergy 
had  been  stirring  up  strife  in  families  by  means  of  the 
confessional,  the  pulpit,  and  the  power  of  excommuni- 
cation, and  by  withholding  absolution  and  the  right  of 
Christian  burial  from  all  who  professed  Liberal  ideas. 
They  had  threatened  with  present  excommunication 
and  eternal  malediction  all  who  took  possession  of  the 
property  of  the  Church  under  the  Reform  decrees. 

Juarez  lacked  the  means  to  reorganize  the  Govern- 
ment at  once.  Of  the  chiefs  of  the  Reform  party,  the 
greater  number  had  but  slight  knowledge  of  military 
science.  The  old  soldiers  of  the  Republic  had,  with 
few  exceptions,  turned  to  the  Reactionaries.  There 
was  the  same  difficulty  in  finding  men  of  ability  and 
training  to  serve  the  State  in  a  civil  capacity.  The 
President  was  compelled,  under  the  circumstances, 
to  expend  a  large  part  of  his  energies  and  to  waste 
his  means  in  negative  activity  and  in  guarding  against 
impending  evils  and  checking  present  dangers.  He 
was  unable  to  devise  measures  for  the  immediate 
amelioration  of  the  condition  of  the  country,  espe- 
cially as  the  country  was  not  educated  up  to  the  level 
of  constitutional  government. 

His  first  measures,  after  entering  Mexico,  were 
severely  criticised  as  indicating  a  change  of  temper. 
Most  of  the  Bishops  were  banished,  and  with  them 
were  sent  the  Papal  Nuncio  and  the  Spanish  Envoy, 
because  they  had  misused  their  positions  and  done  all 
in  their  power  to  aid  the  Reactionaries  to  drag  out 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  227 

the  civil  war.  The  small  property  left  to  the  Church 
was  entirely  taken  from  its  hands,  and  the  estates  of 
the  clerical  communities  were  let  out  to  farmers  on 
the  payment  of  twelve  per  cent  of  their  values. 
Civil  marriage  was  introduced.  The  opponents  of 
the  President,  offended  at  these  measures,  gave  ex- 
pression to  their  want  of  confidence,  in  an  address 
asking  him  to  resign  (September  7,  1861).  It  was 
signed  by  fifty-one  of  the  Deputies.  The  same 
day,  Juarez  received  a  petition  from  fifty-two  of  the 
Deputies,  urging  him  to  retain  his  office. 

Those  who  complained  that  the  government  of 
Juarez  was  unable  instantly  to  restore  order  to  the 
land,  or  that  it  lacked  energy  and  spirit,  and  a  sincere 
desire  to  deal  fairly  with  its  foreign  claimants,  evi- 
dently failed  to  take  all  of  the  circumstances  into 
consideration,  —  circumstances  extending  back  for 
years  in  the  history  of  the  country.  Those  persons 
were  the  more  just  who,  allowing  that  much  was  to 
be  said  in  favor  of  the  government  of  Juarez,  thus 
expressed  themselves,  in  May,  1861  :  "  However 
faulty  and  weak  the  present  government  may  be, 
those  who  witnessed  the  murders,  the  acts  of  atroc- 
ity, and  plunder,  almost  of  daily  occurrence  under 
the  government  of  General  Miramon  and  General 
Marquez,  cannot  but  appreciate  the  existence  of  law 
and  order.  Foreigners  especially,  who  suffered  so 
heavily  under  that  arbitrary  rule  and  by  the  hatred 
and  intolerance  toward  them  which  are  a  dogma  of 
the  Church  party  in  Mexico,  cannot  but  make  a  broad 
distinction  between  the  past  and  the  present.  .  .  . 
The  Mexican  Government  lias  been  accused,  and  not 
without  reason,  of  having  frittered  away  the  Church 
property  recently  nationalized ;  but  it  must  be  remem- 


228  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLW 

bered  that  wliile  forced  contributions,  plunder,  and 
immense  supplies  from  the  Church  and  its  support- 
ers, have  enabled  General  Zuloaga  and  General 
Miramon  to  sustain  the  civil  war  for  three  years,  the 
Constitutional  Government  liad  abstained  from  such 
acts,  and  has  the  sole  robbery  of  the  conducta  at  Lagos, 
towards  the  close  of  the  war,  to  answer  for."  And 
again,  in  June :  "  Progress  has  been  made.  The 
signs  of  regeneration,  though  few,  are  still  visible. 
Had  the  present  Liberal  party  enough  money  at  com- 
mand to  pay  an  army  of  ten  thousand  men,  it  could 
suppress  the  present  opposition,  restore  order,  and 
preserve  external  peace."  The  government  of  Juarez 
was  indeed  answering  for  its  one  act  of  plunder  dur- 
ing the  recent  war  —  the  robbery  of  a  conducta  near 
Lagos.  This  was  the  act  of  Degollado,  without  the 
knowledge  or  consent  of  Juarez,  v/ho  did  all  he  could 
to  repair  the  damage  done  by  this  act  of  insubordina- 
tion, —  not  only  to  the  owners  of  the  conducta^  but 
also  to  the  reputation  of  his  government. 

Taken  all  together,  the  Juarez  government,  whatever 
its  defects,  was  seen  by  the  foreign  powers  who  chose 
to  examine  it  dispassionately,  even  at  the  time  when 
it  appeared  least  to  an  advantage,  to  be  the  only 
promising  government  that  had  made  its  appearance 
for  years  in  Mexico ;  the  only  one  which  was  likely 
to  be  actuated  by  liberal  and  constitutional  principles. 
It  had  succeeded  in  overthrowing  one  of  the  most 
despicable,  disgraceful,  and  sanguinary  systems  that 
ever  debased  and  exhausted  a  country. 

The  British  Consul  and  Qharg4  d'affaires  wrote,  in 
May,  1861,  of  the  President  himself:  "President 
Juarez  is  an  upright  and  well-intentioned  man,  ex- 
cellent in  all  the  private   relations  of  life;  but  the 


THE  WAR  OF  THE  REFORM  229 

mere  fact  of  his  being  an  Indian  exposes  him  to  the 
hostility  and  sneers  of  the  dregs  of  Spanish  society, 
and  of  those  of  mixed  blood  who  ludicrously  arrogate 
to  themselves  the  higher  social  position  in  Mexico." 
And  Mr.  Charles  Wyke  wrote :  "  The  Church  party, 
though  beaten,  is  not  subdued,  and  several  of  their 
chiefs  are  within  six  leagues  of  the  capital  with  forces 
varying  from  four  to  six  thousand.  The  religious 
feeling  of  a  fanatic  population  has  naturally  been 
shocked  by  the  destruction  of  churches,  and  the  dis- 
banded monks  and  friars  wandering  about  amongst 
the  people  fan  the  embers  of  discontent  kept  alive  by 
the  women,  who  are  as  a  body  in  favor  of  the  Church 
party." 

The  combined  forces  of  Marquez  were  defeated  by 
Ortega  in  August,  1861.  Zuloaga,  Marquez,  and 
Mejia  ceased  to  menace  the  capital,  and  fled  to  the 
mountains  back  of  Queretaro.  Marquez  was  finally 
defeated  in  Pachuca  in  October. 

In  July,  1861,  Congress  approved  of  the  decree 
issued  by  the  President,  suspending  for  two  years  all 
payments  on  account  of  foreign  debts.  This  was  in- 
tended to  gain  time  for  the  government  of  Juarez  to 
straighten  out  the  finances  of  the  country,  which  were 
in  a  deplorable  condition.  Its  best  analogy  might 
perhaps  be  found  in  the  business  house  which  has 
justifiable  confidence  in  the  business  in  which  it  is 
engaged,  though  it  finds  itself  crippled  for  the  time 
being  by  reason  of  recent  misfortunes,  but  which, 
instead  of  going  into  bankruptcy  or  making  an 
assignment  for  the  benefit  of  its  creditors,  asks  for 
an  extension  of  time  on  its  obligations. 

There  was  special  reason  why  the  Mexican  govern- 
ment should  ask   for  such   extension.     The   Juarez 


230  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

administratioii  found  itself  confronted  by  claims  origi- 
nating with  the  pseudo-government  which  had  just 
been  put  down — -some  of  them  of  very  questionable 
character.  The  "  Mon-Almonte  Treaty  "  was  of  that 
nature.  Through  the  Spanish  Minister  and  General 
Almonte,  the  Miramon  administration  had  arranged 
that  Mexico  should  assume  the  demands  of  Spanish 
subjects  for  reclamations,  outrages,  and  compulsory 
loans  agreed  to  in  1855  under  the  Santa  Anna  govern- 
ment, in  consideration  of  assistance  to  be  rendered  the 
Reactionary  government  in  the  nature  of  a  European 
protectorate  over  Mexico.  This  treaty  was  in  itself 
sufficient  justification  to  Juarez  for  sending  the  Span- 
ish Minister  out  of  Mexico,  as  a  person  unacceptable 
to  the  Government. 

Already  English  and  French  squadrons  had  ap- 
peared off  Vera  Cruz,  demanding  the  payment  of  so 
much  of  the  national  debt  of  Mexico  as  was  due  the 
citizens  of  those  countries  for  indemnity  for  outrages ; 
and  the  Spanish  residents  of  Tampico  had  made  com- 
plaint to  their  government  of  outrages  received  at  the 
hands  of  the  contending  Mexican  factions,  and  of  the 
losses  they  had  sustained  by  reason  of  forced  loans. 
A  Spanish  vessel  appeared  at  Vera  Cruz,  and  de- 
manded satisfaction  and  guarantees.  To  these,  Juarez 
gave  satisfaction  only  by  diplomatic  promises.  It  re- 
quired time  to  look  into  these  claims  and  determine 
precisely  what  ones  were  valid  and  what  were  fraudu- 
lent —  what  ones  the  government  would  assume  as  in 
honor  bound,  and  what  ones  would  be  paid  only  as  a 
matter  of  generosity  to  the  claimants. 

Nevertheless,  the  measure  suspending  payment 
served  to  precipitate  the  action  of  the  European 
powers,  which  had  apparently  been  in  contemplation 


THE  WAR   OF  THE  REFORM  231 

for  some  time.  The  English  and  French  nations  im- 
mediately broke  off  diplomatic  relations  with  Mexico ; 
and,  to  delay  still  longer  the  enforcement  of  constitu- 
tional government,  there  ensued  the  Foreign  Inter- 
vention resulting  in  the  French  Invasion  and  the 
Second  Mexican  Empire. 


232  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 


CHAPTER   XII 

FOREIGN   INTERVENTION,   FRENCH   INVASION, 
AND   THE   SECOND   EMPIRE 

ON  the  thirty-first  of  October,  1861,  a  treaty 
was  signed  in  the  city  of  London,  on  be- 
half of  Enghind,  France,  and  Spain,  which 
proved  the  beginning  of  what  was  at  first  known  as 
the  Foreign  Intervention  in  the  affairs  of  Mexico. 
Later  it  was  transformed  in  its  character,  so  as  to  be 
more  properly  known  as  a  French  Invasion  of  the 
territory ;  and  from  it  was  developed,  as  it  was  un- 
doubtedly intended  should  be  from  the  outset,  the 
Second  Mexican  Empire. 

By  the  terms  of  the  treaty,  —  known  as  the  Treaty 
of  London, —  the  three  nations  that  were  parties  to  it 
were  to  send  a  sufficient  naval  and  military  force  to 
Mexico  to  seize  and  occupy  the  several  fortresses  and 
military  positions  on  the  coast,  for  the  purpose  of 
sequestrating  the  customs  revenues  of  the  principal 
ports  of  entry ;  the  treaty  providing  for  the  appoint- 
ment of  a  commission  to  determine  the  just  distribu- 
tion of  these  revenues  among  the  foreign  creditors  of 
Mexico.  It  was  expressly  stipulated  that  no  territory 
should  be  appropriated  by  the  Foreign  Powers,  nor 
should  any  influence  be  exerted  to  interfere  with  the 
rights  of  the  Mexican  people  to  arrange  their  own 
form  of  government. 

It  was  deemed  expedient  that  the  government  at 
"Washington  should  be  invited  to  acquiesce  in  the 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  233 

terms  of  this  treaty.  The  treaty  was,  however,  to 
be  ratified  within  fifteen  days  by  the  respective  gov- 
ernments concerned,  and  its  provisions  were  to  be 
carried  into  effect  withont  Avaiting  for  an  answer  from 
the  United  States.  That  answer,  when  it  came,  was 
a  positive  declination  by  the  United  States  to  take 
an}^  part  in  the  transaction,  on  the  ground  that  the 
Federal  Government  at  Washington  thought  it  right 
to  pursue  its  usual  policy  of  refraining  from  alliances 
with  foreign  powers. 

The  purpose  of  this  extraordinary  proceeding  on 
the  part  of  the  three  powerful  European  nations  was, 
as  stated  in  the  preamble  of  the  treaty,  to  demand 
more  effective  protection  for  the  persons  and  property 
of  their  subjects  in  Mexico,  and  to  secure  the  fulfil- 
ment of  certain  obligations  contracted  by  the  Mexican 
Government.  But  when  this  diplomatically  worded 
treaty  comes  to  be  examined  in  the  light  of  contem- 
poraneous documents  and  subsequent  events,  it  is 
found  to  conceal  purposes  of  greater  importance  than 
any  it  expressed. 

Upon  the  earliest  suggestion  of  the  advisability  of 
pursuing  the  course  prescribed  by  the  treaty,  the 
English  Minister  of  Foreign  Affairs  asserted  that 
England  was  opposed  on  principle  to  forcible  inter- 
ference in  the  internal  affairs  of  independent  nations. 
In  every  despatch  addressed  by  England  to  either 
Paris,  Madrid,  or  Washington,  it  was  declared  over 
and  over  again  that  England  would  have  nothing  to 
do  with  the  proposed  expedition  if  it  were  not  clearly 
laid  down  in  the  beginning  that  the  expedition  was 
not  to  interfere  with  the  internal  affairs  of  Mexico. 

Subsequently  it  was  sought  to  discover  that  Mexico 
furnished   an  exception   to  the   general   rule  under 


234  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

which  England  claimed  to  be  acting.  Few  cases  of 
internal  anarchy,  bloodshed,  and  murder  exceeded, 
according  to  the  English  idea,  the  atrocities  perpe- 
trated in  Mexico.  One  instance  alone  of  the  many 
that  were  cited  in  this  apology  was  held  to  be  suffi- 
cient to  place  Mexico  beyond  the  operations  of  the 
law  of  nations.  That  was  the  robbery  of  the  English 
bondholders  by  Marquez,  acting  under  Miramon's 
orders,  on  the  seventeenth  of  November,  1860.  Coin 
to  the  amount  of  about  six  hundred  and  sixty  thou- 
sand dollars  had  been  collected  by  Juarez,  for  the 
payment  of  certain  English  bondholders.  The  money 
was  deposited,  for  safe  keeping,  at  the  British  lega- 
tion, and  was  supposed  to  be  further  secured  by  the 
seal  of  the  British  Minister.  The  robbery  of  it  was 
indeed  a  gross  violation  of  the  law  of  nations,  as  well 
as  of  common  morality;  but  it  was  a  crime  for  which 
the  Constitutional  Government  of  Mexico  was  not 
responsible,  having  been  powerless  to  prevent  it. 

It  seemed  to  have  been  generally  overlooked  that, 
with  scarcely  an  exception,  the  wrongs,  to  redress 
which  the  intervention  was  to  take  place,  were  com- 
mitted by  the  pseudo-government,  and  not  by  the  true 
government  then  existing.  Some  of  the  outrages  for 
which  reparation  was  sought  were  perpetrated  by 
Marquez  and  his  followers  while  Juarez  and  Ortega 
were  trying  to  capture  them.  This  might  not  furnish 
a  claim  for  remission,  though  it  ought  certainly  to 
have  furnished  a  plea  for  indulgence. 

England  felt,  however,  that  it  was  no  longer  pos- 
sible to  deal  with  Mexico  as  with  an  organized  and 
established  government.  It  was  asserted,  on  behalf 
of  the  English  Government,  that  the  mere  presence 
of  a  combined  squadron  in  the  Gulf  of  Mexico  would 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  235 

serve  as  a  wholesome  menace,  — •  would  urge  the 
Mexican  Government  to  keep  the  peace,  and  con- 
vince malcontents  that  they  must  seek  "some  form 
of  opposition  more  constitutional  than  brigandage." 
England's  position  from  the  first  was  apologetic,  and 
was  based  upon  a  total  misapprehension  of  the  char- 
acter of  Benito  Juarez,  and  of  his  efforts,  and  the 
efforts  of  his  followers,  to  establish  constitutional 
government.  That  position  was  never  apj)roved  by 
the  mass  of  the  English  people,  and,  as  has  been  said, 
"nothing  in  the  Mexican  expedition  so  became  the 
British  Government  as  the  giving  of  it  up." 

Spain  and  France,  on  the  other  hand,  had  objects 
in  view  which  were  not  expressed  in  the  treaty  and 
were  not  at  once  disclosed  to  the  public.  The  hope 
of  Spain  was  to  found  an  Empire  in  Mexico,  and  to 
place  upon  the  throne  thereof  a  member  of  the  same 
Borbon  family  that  had  been  called  to  the  throne 
created  by  the  Treaty  of  Cordoba  in  1821.  Events 
interfered  to  prevent  this  scheme  from  taking  definite 
shape,  although  it  transpired  that  it  was  with  this 
purpose  in  view  that  Spain  had  been  furnishing  secret 
but  strong  aid  to  the  Zuloaga  and  Miramon  govern- 
ment in  Mexico.  The  object  of  France  was  also  to 
establish  a  monarchy,  but  it  was  to  be  in  some  way 
feudatory  to  France.  The  Emperor  of  the  French 
had  already  offered  the  crown  of  the  Mexican  Empire, 
which  he  had  in  view,  to  the  Archduke  of  Austria. 
Yet  both  Spain  and  France  were  all  the  while  assur- 
ing England  that  neither  of  them  had  any  intention 
of  forcible  interference  in  Mexican  affairs.  England, 
however,  was  suspicious  of  Spain,  and  would  not  have 
entered  the  convention  at  all,  or  have  signed  the 
treaty,  but  for  the  positive  assurances  of  both  Spain 


236  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

and  France  that  there  was  no  intention  whatever  of 
conquest,  of  reestablishing  by  foreign  influence  a 
monarchical  form  of  government,  or  of  otherwise 
meddling  with  the  internal  administration  of  the 
Government  of  Mexico.  It  was  the  scheme  of  France 
that  was  shortly  afterwards  developed  to  the  serious 
inconvenience  of  Mexico. 

Ostensibly,  it  was  the  purpose  of  the  three  nations 
to  act  as  receivers  of  the  property  of  their  hopelessly 
bankrupt  debtor,  and  to  administer  the  estate  for  the 
payment  of  its  debts.  Of  these  debts,  that  of  Eng- 
land was  the  largest  and  of  the  longest  standing.  It 
was  based  upon  an  alleged  loan  of  three  million  two 
hundred  thousand  pounds,  contracted  by  the  agent  of 
the  Mexican  Government  with  a  London  banking- 
house  in  the  first  year  of  the  Republic.  It  amounted, 
at  the  time  of  the  Treaty  of  London,  to  nearly  eighty 
million  dollars  in  Mexican  money.  To  Spain,  Mexico 
was  alleged  to  owe  a  little  more  than  fifteen  million 
dollars,  and  to  France  about  two  million  five  hundred 
thousand  dollars,  in  Mexican  money. 

Each  of  these  debts  had  a  history  so  interesting 
that  Mexican  historians  devote  whole  chapters  to  the 
subject,  and  some  of  them  make  it  appear  that  of  the 
sum  upon  which  the  enormous  claim  of  England  was 
based,  only  about  a  third  had  been  actually  received 
by  Mexico,  and  that  the  sum  actually  due  at  the  time 
of  the  treaty  was  seventy  millions  instead  of  eighty 
million  dollars ;  that  the  debt  to  Spain  grew  out  of 
indemnities  incurred  during  the  War  for  Independ- 
ence, and  amounted  to  a  little  less  than  ten  millions 
instead  of  fifteen  million  dollars;  while  the  debt  to 
France  included  a  most  remarkable  claim  of  the 
Swiss   banking-house  of   Jecker   and   Company,  for 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  237 

one  million  dollars  and  interest  thereon  at  the  rate 
of  twelve  per  cent  per  annum  from  its  date. 

It  was  alleged  by  Mexico,  and  scarcely  denied  by 
the  other  party  to  the  transaction,  that  less  than  half 
the  money  for  which  Jecker  and  Company  had  re- 
ceived bonds  to  the  above  amount  had  been  paid  by 
them  to  the  Zuloaga  and  Miramon  government  at  a 
time  when  the  Liberal  government  was  in  existence 
and  was  contending  against  the  self-constituted  dic- 
tatorship of  Zuloaga  and  Miramon.  So  that  at  the 
very  time  when  France  had  acknowledged  Miramon 
as  President,  and  had  aided  his  pretensions  against  the 
Constitutional  Government,  she  was  holding  Juarez 
and  the  Constitutional  Government  responsible  for 
the  debts  of  the  insurgents.  Jecker,  the  head  of  the 
banking-house,  had  in  some  way  become  a  French 
subject  since  this  debt  was  contracted,  and  thus  his 
exorbitant  demands  were  included  in  the  claim  of 
France,  and  were  made  to  play  an  important  part  in 
the  plans  of  the  Emperor  of  the  French  for  the  estab- 
lishment of  a  monarchy  in  Mexico. 

It  is  but  just  to  say  that  the  Mexican  Expedition 
never  obtained  the  slightest  degree  of  popularity  in 
France.  It  was  looked  upon  with  coldness,  indiffer- 
ence, dislike,  and  contempt,  by  the  people;  and  it  was 
ably  combated,  in  the  Corps  Legislatif  in  1863,  by 
leading  Deputies,  who  were  returned  by  overwhelm- 
ing majorities  in  the  subsequent  election,  thus  show- 
ing that  their  constituents  fully  approved  of  their 
position. 

But  whether  just  or  unjust,  whether  extortionate 
or  legal,  these  debts  were  made  the  basis  of  opera- 
tions under  the  Treaty  of  London.  There  were  also 
allegations  of  attacks  made  from  time  to  time  on  the 


238  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

persons  and  property  of  foreigners  in  Mexico,  which 
had  been  the  subject  of  much  diplomatic  correspond- 
ence for  several  years  without  prospect  of  satisfactory 
adjustment.  Spain's  chief  injury  was  the  failure  of 
the  Mon- Almonte  Treaty. 

Forty  years  of  almost  incessant  civil  war  had 
wrought  utter  confusion  to  the  finances  of  Mexico, 
as  well  as  to  her  social  conditions.  Her  government 
was  entirely  at  the  mercy  of  people  of  revolutionary 
spirit.  It  had  not  served  to  render  affairs  less  com- 
plicated, that  during  the  three  years  then  past  there 
had  been  two  opposing  governments  in  the  country 
with  which  to  treat,  neither  being  responsible  for  the 
acts  or  promises  of  the  other.  It  was  therefore, 
viewed  from  the  standpoint  of  the  foreign  powers, 
time  for  something  to  be  done  to  obtain  the  payment 
of  Mexico's  obligations  and  to  secure  to  foreigners  in 
that  country  immunity  from  outrage. 

The  treaty  was  doubtless  precipitated  by  the  decree 
of  the  Mexican  Government  suspending  the  payment 
of  foreign  debts  for  two  years.  England  and  France, 
as  we  have  seen,  at  once  broke  off  diplomatic  relations 
with  Mexico  until  the  decree  of  suspension  should  be 
revoked.  The  Spanish  Minister  had  already  been 
given  his  passports  as  a  persona  non  grata,  because  of 
his  too  intimate  connection  with  the  Zuloaga-Miramon 
government,  and  of  his  part  in  the  Mon-Almonte 
Treaty. 

It  is  not  to  be  overlooked  that  an  opportunity  for 
pursuing  such  a  course  as  was  now  determined  upon 
by  France  was  afforded  at  that  time  by  the  Civil  War 
then  in  progress  in  the  United  States.  The  foreign 
powers  regarded  that  war  between  the  States  as  likely 
to   result  in   the   independence   of  the   Confederate 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  239 

States  of  the  South.  Such  an  opportunity  as  this 
afforded  was  especially  appreciated  by  Louis  Napo- 
leon, Emperor  of  the  French,  who  had  long  cherished 
dreams  of  establishing  an  Empire  in  Mexico,  to  be 
to  some  extent  under  his  control.  With  the  United 
States  (as  he  supposed)  likely  to  be  divided,  and  with 
the  Confederate  States,  when  independent,  as  his 
allies,  he  need  have  no  fear  of  any  trouble  with 
the  Government  at  Washington  over  "the  Monroe 
Doctrine." 

Notwithstanding  the  stipulation  in  the  Treaty  of 
London  that  the  allied  forces  should  not  seek  any 
acquisition  of  territory,  or  exercise  any  influence 
over  the  internal  affairs  of  the  country  prejudicial  to 
the  rights  of  the  Mexicans  to  establish  such  form 
of  government  as  they  might  desire,  the  Emperor  of 
the  French  was  laying  plans  to  accomplish  both  the 
acquisition  of  territory  and  the  interference  in  the 
political  affairs  of  the  country.  He  was  already 
negotiating  with  certain  persons,  looking  to  the 
future  disposition  of  the  Mexican  State  of  Sonora 
and  adjacent  territory ;  and  he  had  been  in  consulta- 
tion with  General  Almonte,  General  Miramon,  Josd 
Maria  Gutierrez  de  Estrada,  Francisco  J.  Miranda 
("Padre  Miranda,"  a  turbulent  Mexican  cleric), 
Haro  y  Tamaris,  and  other  banished  Reactionary 
leaders.  It  was  largely  upon  such  ex  parte  testimony 
as  these  men  were  able  to  furnish  as  to  the  status  of 
Mexican  affairs,  that  he  had  laid  his  plans  for  the 
establishment  of  a  trans -Atlantic  Empire.  How  fully 
he  had  absorbed  this  scheme  may  be  judged  by  his 
remark,  after  the  complete  overthrow  of  the  Mexican 
Empire  was  regarded  by  every  one  else  as  merely  a 
question   of  a   few   months,  that  he  looked  upon  it 


240  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

as  the  greatest  creation  of  his  reign.  Subsequent 
events,  however,  proved  it  the  beginning  of  his  over- 
throw—  the  Moscow  of  the  Second  French  Empire 
of  the  Napoleons. 

The  allied  nations  proceeded  without  loss  of  time 
to  send  forces  to  occupy  the  coast  cities  of  Mexico, 
as  provided  in  the  treaty;  and  early  in  December, 
1861,  the  Spanish  squadron  arrived,  in  advance  of 
the  others,  at  Vera  Cruz.  A  week  later,  the  city  was 
occupied  by  the  Spanish  troops.  This  was  regarded 
as  not  in  accord  with  the  agreement,  and  was  made 
the  pretext,  on  the  part  of  France,  for  sending  out 
reinforcements  to  the  number  of  four  or  five  thousand 
men.  Here  again  was  an  occasion  for  the  French 
Minister  to  protest  that  it  was  not  the  intention  of 
France  to  interfere  in  the  internal  affairs  of  Mexico. 
An  assurance  to  that  effect  was  again  asked,  and  was 
earnestly  given. 

The  French  and  English  forces  arrived  on  the 
eighth  of  January,  1862,  and  the  whole  foreign  army 
was  placed  under  the  command  of  the  Spanish  Mar- 
shal Prim,  Count  of  Reus,  who  was  Commander-in- 
chief  of  the  Expedition  and  Plenipotentiary  of  Spain. 
This  army  then  consisted  of  about  six  thousand  Span- 
ish soldiers;  twenty-five  hundred  French  soldiers, 
under  Admiral  Jurien  de  la  Graviere;  and  one  line- 
of-battle  ship,  two  small  frigates,  and  seven  hundred 
English  marines,  under  Commodore  Dunlop.  The 
Count  de  Saligny  and  the  Admiral  Jurien  de  la 
Graviere  were  the  diplomatic  -  agents  of  France ;  and 
England  was  to  be  represented  by  Sir  Charles  Wyke. 

Through  its  minister  in  France,  the  Mexican  Gov- 
ernment had  been  advised  that  France  and  England 
were  taking  measures  to  compel  Mexico  to  accede  to 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  241 

their  demands,  and  that  Spain  was  intending  to  join 
them,  with  the  hope  of  establishing  a  monarchy  in 
that  country.  A  man  of  less  character  than  Benito 
Juarez  would  have  been  appalled  by  such  news,  fol- 
lowing closely  upon  three  years  of  civil  war  that  had 
sapped  the  resources  of  his  government.  But  Juarez 
was  of  tougher  fibre  than  others  of  his  countrymen. 
He  rose  to  the  occasion,  and  took  immediate  steps  to 
encounter  these  new  difficulties  in  the  way  of  estab- 
lishing constitutional  government.  He  appealed  to 
Mexicans  to  lay  aside  their  private  feuds  and  unite 
against  the  common  foe.  He  reorganized  his  army, 
and  made  efforts  to  defend  the  country.  He  raised 
money  by  forced  loans  or  voluntary  contributions, 
negotiated  upon  terms  the  most  unfavorable  to  the 
government,  as  is  usual  in  such  cases.  If  he  showed 
an  arbitrary  spirit  in  these  measures,  it  was  no  more 
than  the  emergenc}'  seemed  to  demand,  nor  was  it 
contrary  to  precedents  established  by  the  previous 
rulers  of  his  nation.  It  must  also  be  remembered 
that  all  he  did  had  in  view  the  final  establishment  of 
a  Constitutional  Government  which  was  to  do  away 
forever  with  the  necessity  of  applying  such  arbitrary 
measures  again. 

On  the  twenty-fifth  of  January,  1862,  Juarez  issued 
a  decree  declaring  that  all  men  between  the  ages  of 
sixteen  and  sixty  who  refused  to  take  up  arms  in 
defence  of  the  country  should  be  regarded  as  traitors ; 
establishing  courts-martial  in  the  place  of  the  ordi- 
nary tribunals ;  and  giving  authority  to  the  governors 
of  States  and  magistrates  of  towns  to  dispose  of  the 
persons  or  property  of  all  disloyal  persons  within 
their  jurisdictions.  It  declared  any  armed  invasion 
of  the  country  by  Mexicans  or  foreigners  without  a 

16 


242  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

previous  declaration  of  war,  and  any  invitation  offered 
by  Mexicans  or  foreign  residents  of  Mexico  for  such 
invasion,  to  be  crimes  against  the  Independence  of 
Mexico,  punishable  with  death. 

This  stern  decree  was  issued,  it  must  be  remem- 
bered, in  times  that  demanded  drastic  measures,  and 
for  the  governance  of  a  people  of  revolutionary  tend- 
encies who  were  yet  unprepared  for  constitutional 
government.  A  Reactionary  leader,  General  Robles, 
made  an  effort  to  join  a  party  in  the  French  camp 
soon  afterward,  but  was  arrested  by  the  Mexican 
authorities,  banished  from  the  capital,  and  confined 
on  parole  in  a  small  town.  He  violated  his  parole, 
and  escaped  from  his  imprisonment.  Before  he 
could  reach  other  plotters  against  the  government  of 
Juarez,  he  was  again  arrested,  and  under  the  decree 
of  January  twenty-fifth  was  sentenced  to  be  shot. 
General  Prim  and  the  English  Plenipotentiary  made 
an  effort  to  save  him,  and  succeeded  in  inducing  the 
Mexican  Minister  to  suspend  the  sentence  of  death ; 
but  the  courier  bearing  the  reprieve  lost  his  way,  and 
arrived  at  the  place  appointed  for  the  execution 
after  the  sentence  had  been  carried  out. 

Juarez  was  anxious  to  postpone  as  long  as  possible, 
and  to  avoid  altogether,  if  might  be,  a  collision  with 
the  foreign  troops.  He  accordingly  invited  the  en- 
voys of  the  allied  powers  to  a  conference,  to  be  held 
at  Orizaba,  in  April,  1862.  To  arrange  for  this 
conference,  a  preliminary  convention  was  held  at 
Soledad,  near  Vera  Cruz,  in  February.  The  Mexi- 
can Government  was  represented  on  this  occasion  by 
Manuel  Doblado,  who  acquitted  himself  as  an  able 
and  influential  diplomat,  winning  the  respect  and 
approval  of  the  British  and  Spanish  Plenipotentiaries. 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  243 

An  agreement  was  reached  respecting  the  matters  to 
be  discussed  and  decided  upon  at  Orizaba.  Doblado's 
argument  was  conclusive  that  the  robbery  of  the  funds 
at  the  British  Legation  by  Marquez  was  the  work  of 
bandits  for  whicli  the  Government  of  Mexico  could 
not  be  held  accountable;  and  he  also  showed  conclu- 
sively to  the  Spanish  Plenipotentiary  that  certain 
assassinations  of  which  he  complained,  and  for  which 
his  government  sought  redress,  were  acts  which  the 
government  of  Juarez  had  tried  to  prevent  and  was 
now  taking  energetic  measures  to  punish. 

Although  Doblado's  efforts  and  arguments  were 
less  successful  with  the  French  agents  than  with  the 
British  and  Spanish,  it  was  agreed  that  the  allies 
should  recognize  the  Mexican  Government  as  con- 
stitutional and  legitimately  established;  that  their 
troops  should  be  allowed  to  occupy  certain  towns, 
as  healthful  and  convenient  garrisons;  and  that  if 
the  conference  to  take  place  at  Orizaba  failed  of  a 
satisfactory  issue,  and  negotiations  were  broken  off, 
the  troops  of  the  allies  were  to  fall  back  from  the 
places  they  had  been  allowed  to  occupy  conditionally, 
and  hostilities  would  then  of  course  begin. 

At  the  Orizaba  Conference,  the  Count  de  Saligny 
declared  that  the  Mexican  Government  had  heaped  so 
many  fresh  grievances  upon  the  French  subjects  that 
he  could  no  longer  treat  with  it,  and  would  be  con- 
tent with  nothing  less  than  a  march  upon  the  capital 
of  the  country.  General  Laurencez  had  already 
arrived  in  ]Mexico  with  reinforcements  which  in- 
creased the  French  army  to  over  six  thousand  five 
hundred  men.  These  had  been  sent  in  order,  as  was 
alleged,  that  the  Spanish  forces  might  not  exceed  in 
number  those  of  France. 


244  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPTTBLIG 

With  these  reinforcements  came  also  General  Al- 
monte, Padre  Miranda,  Haro  y  Tamaris,  and  others 
whose  characters  were  odious  in  the  eyes  of  Mexico, 
and  whose  names  recalled  some  of  the  worst  scenes 
in  a  civil  war  that  had  proved  a  disgrace  to  the  civil- 
ization of  the  nineteenth  century,  and  who  were 
responsible  for  many  of  the  outrages  for  which  the 
a,llied  powers  now  sought  redress.  Almonte  might 
not  have  been  precisely  in  such  a  category,  but  he 
was  offensive  to  the  Constitutionalists  of  Mexico,  both 
because  of  his  former  connection  with  the  Conserva- 
tives and  Reactionaries,  and  because  while  living  in 
exile  in  Paris  he  had  been  active  in  poisoning  the 
mind  of  the  Emperor  of  the  French  in  regard  to 
Mexican  affairs.  Under  the  protection  of  the  French 
flag,  these  men  assumed  an  arrogant  air,  and  Almonte 
went  so  far  as  to  assume  the  title  of  "Provisional 
President  of  Mexico,"  and  to  issue  manifestos  and 
proclamations  calling  upon  the  Mexicans  to  overthrow 
the  government  of  Juarez.  Miranda  and  the  others 
openly  and  vauntingly  avowed  that  they  had  come  by 
the  express  command  of  the  Emperor  of  the  French, 
to  upset  the  government  of  President  Juarez.  The 
execution  of  Robles,  which  for  his  offence  at  such  a 
time  was  justifiable  in  any  country  of  the  world,  was 
proclaimed  as  a  murder,  and  was  given  as  a  new 
reason  for  the  French  support  of  the  projects  of 
Almonte.  Unquestionably,  the  French  expedition 
was  assuming,  — by  the  presence  of  General  Almonte, 
Padre  Miranda,  and  the  others,  —  the  character  of  an 
afterpiece  to  the  War  of  the  Reform. 

Juarez  protested  against  the  presence  of  these  men 
in  the  French  camp,  and  his  protest  was  emphasized 
by  the  declaration  of  the  English  and  Spanish  com- 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  245 

missioners  that  the  persistence  of  France  in  protecting 
the  Mexican  conspirators  was  contrary  to  the  terms 
of  the  Treaty  of  London.  But  all  was  to  no  avail. 
The  decisive  action  of  the  British  Commodore  in 
regard  to  Miramon  was  more  effectual.  Miramon 
attempted  to  join  Almonte  and  the  others  in  the 
French  camp,  but  Commodore  Dunlop  declared  that 
if  he  attempted  to  land  he  would  at  once  arrest  him 
on  account  of  his  part  in  the  robbery  of  the  British 
Legation.  Miramon  accordingly  thought  it  wise  to 
withdraw  to  Havana. 

In  the  attempt  to  adjust  the  claims  of  the  allied 
powers  at  Orizaba,  the  French  commissioners  de- 
manded on  behalf  of  France  a  round  sum  of  twelve 
million  dollars,  without  details  or  items,  "as  an 
approximation  to  the  value  of  the  French  claims  by 
a  million  or  two  more  or  less,"  in  addition  to  the 
Jecker  claim  of  one  million  five  hundred  thousand 
dollars.  It  was  shown,  however,  that  on  its  bonds 
issued  to  the  above  amount  the  government  of 
Miramon  had  received  no  more  than  seven  hundred 
and  fifty  thousand  dollars.  Jecker  was  demanding 
the  face  value  of  his  bonds  from  the  Juarez  Govern- 
ment, on  the  plea  that  one  government  was  bound 
by  the  acts  and  obligations  of  another.  Juarez 
offered  to  assume  the  seven  hundred  and  fifty  thou- 
sand dollars,  with  interest  at  five  per  cent,  but  re- 
pudiated the  idea  of  being  liable  for  the  one  million 
five  hundred  thousand  dollars. 

The  English  Commissioner  showed  that  the  de- 
mands of  the  French  could  only  lead  to  war,  as  no 
nation  on  earth  could  accede  to  them.  It  was 
unquestionably  with  war  in  view  that  the  French 
Commissioners  advanced  them.     The  projects  of  the 


246  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

three  allied  powers  were  soon  found  to  be  "  incompat- 
ible," and  the  English  and  Spanish  troops  were  with- 
drawn from  the  enterprise.  The  Treaty  of  London 
was  quickly  thrown  aside  by  the  commissioners  from 
France,  and  the  French  were  left  in  Mexico  to  carry 
out  the  purposes  of  Napoleon  III. 

In  April,  1862,  immediately  after  the  Convention 
of  Oi'izaba,  the  French  General  issued  a  proclamation 
declaring  a  military  dictatorship  established  in  Mex- 
ico, with  Almonte  as  Supreme  Chief  of  the  nation. 
The  same  day,  the  French  army  was  reorganized  in 
two  divisions,  and  advanced  towards  the  capital, 
one  division  by  way  of  Jalapa,  the  other  by  way  of 
Orizaba.  An  army  of  Mexicans,  under  the  com- 
mand of  General  Marquez,  joined  the  forces  of  the 
Interventionists. 

The  peril  in  which  Mexico  again  found  herself  had 
the  effect  of  sifting  her  military  leaders.  Zaragoza, 
Escobedo,  and  Porfirio  Diaz  remained  stanch  adher- 
ents of  the  Republic.  Comonfort  early  returned 
from  France,  and,  joining  the  forces  of  Juarez,  was 
appointed  Commander-in-chief.  Seilor  Gallardo, 
father  of  a  gallant  young  Republican  Colonel,  raised 
and  equipped  two  troops  of  cavalry,  and  undertook 
to  advance  twelve  thousand  dollars  a  month  for 
the  services  of  the  Republic  until  its  independence 
was  restored.  Vidaurri  held  the  State  of  San  Luis 
Potosi  for  the  Republicans  for  a  time,  and  then 
deserted  to  the  Imperialists.  Zuloaga  refused  to 
fight  against  his  country,  and  retired  altogether  from 
the  scene  of  the  approaching  conflict.  Mejia  joined 
the  cause  of  the  Interventionists,  and  Miramon  came 
back  to  Mexico  to  do  the  same  as  soon  as  it  was  safe 
for  him  to  enter  the  country. 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  247 

One  column  of  the  Army  of  the  Intervention  ad- 
vanced toward  the  capital  by  way  of  Orizaba  and 
Puebla.  By  the  French  it  was  supposed  that  the 
advance  was  to  be  a  mere  military  parade ;  that  the 
mass  of  the  Mexican  people  were  either  indifferent 
to  or  absolutely  in  favor  of  the  Intervention;  and 
that  the  few  who  objected  to  it  had  neither  strength 
nor  spirit  to  resist.  But  there  was  a  surprise  in  store 
for  the  advancing  army.  Puebla  was  found  to  be 
occupied  by  an  inferior  force  of  badly  equipped  raw 
recruits,  under  the  very  efficient  command  of  General 
Zaragoza,  who  had  prepared  for  the  advance  of  the 
French  invading  forces  by  hastily  fortifying  the  hills 
of  Guadalupe  and  Loretto.  No  plausible  excuse  was 
offered  by  the  French  for  attacking  Puebla.  The 
attacking  forces  numbered  more  than  seven  thousand 
well-organized  and  well-disciplined  men.  Yet  not- 
withstanding their  disadvantages  the  Republican 
forces  repulsed  the  invaders  with  terrible  slaughter, 
and  won  a  glorious  victory. 

The  battle  was  fought  on  the  fifth  of  May,  1862. 
It  was  exceedingly  inspiriting  to  the  Republicans, 
and  it  gave  to  Mexico  one  of  her  greatest  national 
feast  days,  Ul  Cinco  de  Maijo.  In  appreciation  of  his 
brilliant  victory  and  defence  of  the  city,  General 
Zaragoza  was  appointed  Military  Governor  of  Vera 
Cruz,  his  name  was  inscribed  in  letters  of  gold  upon 
the  walls  of  the  Hall  of  Congress,  and  the  official 
name  of  Puebla  was  changed  to  "  Puebla  de  Zara- 
goza." Porfirio  Diaz  was  promoted  to  the  rank  of 
General  for  the  brilliant  part  he  took  in  the  defence 
of  the  city. 

The  defeated  French  retreated  to  Orizaba,  not 
strong  enough  to  attack  again,  but  too  strong  to  be 


248  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

attacked.  Zaragoza  was  soon  transferred,  at  his  own 
request,  to  the  array  of  operations  under  Ortega,  and 
returned  to  the  defence  of'  Puebla.  He  attempted  to 
follow  up  the  advantage  he  had  gained,  by  marching 
against  the  French  at  Orizaba;  but  was  surprised 
and  defeated  at  Cerro  del  Borrego.  He  withdrew  to 
Puebla,  and  there  he  died  of  typhus  fever  the  follow- 
ing September,  to  the  great  loss  of  the  Republican 
cause,  for  he  was  regarded  as  the  greatest  military 
genius  the  country  had  ever  produced. 

Toward  the  end  of  September,  General  Laurencez 
was  superseded  in  the  command  of  the  Army  of  the 
Intervention  by  the  French  General  Forey,  who 
brought  from  France  sufficient  reinforcements  to 
raise  the  army  to  twenty  thousand  men.  Not  only 
did  he  assume  command  of  the  army,  but  he  also 
constituted  himself  Military  Dictator  over  the  whole 
country,  declaring  that  he  had  come  by  order  of  the 
Emperor  of  the  French,  to  destroy  the  government 
of  Juarez,  and  to  free  the  people  of  Mexico  from  his 
despotic  sway.  He  was  so  indiscreet  as  to  issue  a 
proclamation  confiscating  the  property  of  all  who 
failed  immediately  to  give  in  their  adhesion  to  the 
new  system.  This,  however,  met  with  no  favor  in 
Europe,  —  not  even  in  France,  where  the  papers  sar- 
castically commented  upon  the  "inconvenience  of 
addressing  remonstrances  to  Russia  regarding  the 
confiscations  in  Lithuania,  while  Forey  was  carrying 
the  same  system  a  step  or  two  farther  in  Mexico." 

The  French  army,  thus  reinforced,  began  a  second 
advance  toward  the  capital.  Puebla  was  captured 
in  May,  1863,  but  not  without  desperate  fighting,  for 
the  Mexicans  defended  their  city  inch  by  inch,  and 
preferred  death  to  submitting  to  any  terms  of  sur- 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  249 

render  offered  by  the  French.  The  city  was  finally 
taken,  however;  the  soldiers  who  had  held  it  so 
valiantly  were  either  slain  or  dispersed,  and  some  of 
the  officers  were  taken  prisoner  and  carried  away  to 
France.  Diaz  escaped  from  imprisonment  Ijefore  he 
could  be  carried  into  exile. 

The  fall  of  Puebla  broke  the  heart  of  the  Mexican 
resistance,  and  left  the  City  of  Mexico  exposed  to  the 
invaders  without  means  of  defence.  On  the  last  day 
of  May,  President  Juarez  left  the  capital,  accom- 
panied by  his  ministers,  and  set  up  his  government 
at  San  Luis  Potosi  on  the  tenth  of  June.  There  he 
remained  until  near  the  end  of  1863. 

On  the  eleventh  of  June  the  Army  of  the  Inter- 
vention occupied  the  capital.  General  Forey  was 
accompanied  by  Dubois  Saligny  (the  French  Com- 
missioner who  had  conducted  negotiations  on  behalf 
of  France  at  the  late  Conferences  of  Soledad  and 
Orizaba),  General  Marquez  (the  "Infamous  Mar- 
quez,  "as  Europeans  were  already  beginning  to  call 
him),  and  General  Almonte.  Forey  appointed  a  pre- 
fect for  the  city,  and  proceeded  to  select  thirty-five 
citizens  to  act  as  a  "  Supreme  Council  of  the  Nation," 
and  as  a  basis  for  the  establishment  of  a  permanent 
government.  The  Supreme  Council  elected  General 
Almonte,  General  Mariano  Salas,  and  Archbishoj) 
Labastida  as  Regents,  with  the  Bishop  of  Puebla  as 
the  alternate  of  the  Archbishop,  who  was  in  France. 
Into  the  hands  of  the  Regency  passed  the  govern- 
ment of  Mexico,  pending  the  completion  of  the  plans 
of  the  Emperor  of  the  French,  which  were  now  no 
longer  concealed,  and  were  found  to  include  the  long- 
cherished  schemes  of  the  Monarchical  or  Imperialistic 
party  of  previous  years. 


250  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Subsequently  an  "Assembly  of  Notables"  was 
organized  as  a  legislative  body.  It  was  composed 
of  two  hundred  and  thirty-one  members,  apparently 
selected  at  random,  representing  the  twenty-four 
States  of  Mexico  then  in  existence,  without  regard 
to  the  population  of  those  States.  They  were,  of 
course,   all  of  monarchical  predilections. 

On  the  tenth  of  July,  1863,  this  strangely  consti- 
tuted Assembly  passed  an  "Act"  adopting  for  the 
country  a  monarchical  form  of  government,  and 
offering  the  crown  to  Fernando  Maximiliano  (Ferdi- 
nand Maximilian),  Archduke  of  Austria.  It  further 
provided  that  in  case  Maximilian  should  decline  the 
crown  it  should  be  offered  to  any  Roman  Catholic 
prince  whom  the  Emperor  of  the  French  should  des- 
ignate. A  Committee  of  Monarchists  and  Reaction- 
aries (including  Gutierrez  de  Estrada,  who  was 
already  in  Europe)  was  appointed  to  proceed  to  the 
Archducal  Palace  of  Maximilian,  at  Miramar,  to 
offer  him  the  crown  and  hasten  his  departure  for 
Mexico. 

The  Regents  nominally  at  the  head  of  the  govern- 
ment of  Mexico  were  under  the  direct  control  of  two 
agents  of  the  Emperor  of  the  French.  They  were 
General  Forey,  Commander-in-chief  of  the  Army  of 
the  Interventionists,  and  Dubois  Saligny,  the  French 
Minister  who  had  been  unpleasantly  involved  in  the 
business  of  the  Intervention  from  the  beginning. 
That  all  the  actions  of  the  Assembly  of  Notables 
were  brought  about  by  these  two  persons,  acting 
under  explicit  instructions  from  Paris,  cannot  now 
be  doubted.  If  not  at  the  time  of  the  Treaty  of 
London,  very  soon  afterwards,  Napoleon  III.  had 
communicated  to  the  Imperial  house  of  Austria  his 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  251 

intention  of  placing  the  Archduke  Maximilian  at  the 
head  of  the  Empire  he  proposed  to  establish;  and 
this  had  been  the  subject  of  diplomatic  correspond- 
ence with  other  European  nations.  Hence  the  action 
of  the  Assembly  of  Notables  in  offering  the  crown  to 
Maximilian  was  no  surprise  to  Europeans. 

Before  the  end  of  1863,  both  Forey  and  Saligny 
were  recalled,  owing  to  the  too  great  precipitancy 
with  wliich  these  events  had  been  brought  about. 
Napoleon  deplored  the  actions  of  these  agents,  or  at 
least  the  frank  publicity  given  to  them,  as  of  "  too 
reactionary  "  a  character.  Forey  was  succeeded  in 
the  command  of  the  army  in  Mexico  by  Marshal 
Bazaine,  who  throughout  the  subsequent  history  of 
the  Intervention  proved  a  faithful  servant  of  Louis 
Napoleon. 

Under  the  command  of  Bazaine,  the  French  troops 
proceeded  to  occupy  the  interior  of  Mexico.  The 
army  was  again  divided  into  two  columns.  One  of 
these,  under  the  command  of  General  Marquez,  took 
the  road  to  Morelia.  The  other,  under  the  com- 
mand of  General  Tomas  Mejia,  advanced  toward 
Queretaro.  Within  a  month,  the  Interventionists 
had  control  of  the  country  as  far  as  Guadalajara 
in  the  northwest,  Queretaro  in  the  north,  and  Vera 
Cruz  in  the  east.  The  extreme  northern  States  and 
the  extreme  southern  States,  —  twelve  in  number,  — 
were  not  yet  occupied  b}'  the  Interventionists.  There 
were  Members  of  the  Assembly  of  Notables  claiming 
to  represent  those  States,  but  they  were  mere  refugees 
at  the  capital. 

Meanwhile,  the  Republican  forces  were  scattered 
but  not  exterminated.  There  were  bands  of  patriots 
in  Michoacan,  in  Jalisco,  in  Sinaloa,  in  Sonora,  in 


252  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Durango,  in  Zacatecas,  in  Tamaulipas,  in  the  moun- 
tains of  Puebla  and  Oaxaca,  in  Vera  Cruz,  Tabasco, 
and  the  south.  A  Republican  press  was  maintained 
by  able  political  writers,  and  continued  to  instruct 
the  people  in  their  rights  under  the  Constitution. 
Porfirio  Diaz  was  made  Commander-in-chief  of  the 
Republican  Army  in  the  South,  and  invested  with 
full  power  for  the  administration  of  affairs  and  for 
the  defence  of  the  southeastern  States,  —  that  is, 
Oaxaca,  a  part  of  Puebla,  Chiapas,  Tabasco,  Cam.- 
peche,  and  Yucatan.  He  took  uj)  and  maintained  a 
position  between  Puebla  and  Oaxaca. 

The  advance  of  the  French  army  in  the  direction 
of  San  Luis  Potosi  forced  the  Constitutional  Govern- 
ment from  that  city  to  Saltillo,  where  it  was  estab- 
lished in  November,  1863.  Being  informed  that 
Santiago  Vidaurri,  Governor  of  the  States  of  Leon 
and  Coahuila,  who  had  formerly  been  an  adherent  of 
the  Constitutional  party,  was  in  negotiation  with  the 
French,  Juarez  removed  the  seat  of  his  government 
to  Monterey.  Vidaurri  refused  to  recognize  the  Re- 
publican government,  and  fled  to  the  City  of  Mexico, 
where  he  openly  avowed  his  adherence  to  the  Im- 
perialists. Juarez  maintained  his  government  in 
Monterey  from  April  to  the  middle  of  August, 
1864. 

The  Committee  appointed  by  the  Assembly  of 
Notables  lost  no  time  in  discharging  the  duties  laid 
upon  them.  They  were  received  at  the  Archducal 
Palace  in  Austria,  and  made  known  to  the  Archduke 
their  business.  Much  to  their  surprise,  Maximilian 
withheld  his  acceptance  of  the  proffered  throne  until 
he  could  be  assured  that  the  people  of  Mexico  had, 
state  by  state  and  town  by  town,   expressed   their 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  253 

wish  that  he  should  come  to  reign  over  them,  by- 
suffrage  of  some  kind,  certified  in  such  way  that  he 
could  determine  the  number  of  voters  in  favor  of 
the  Empire,  and  the  ratio  of  this  number  to  the 
population  of  the  country.  He  desired  also  that 
the  European  nations  should  give  him  guarantees 
that  the  throne  of  Mexico  would  be  protected  from 
dangers  which  then  appeared  to  threaten  it. 

The  whole  matter  was  therefore,  in  effect,  referred 
back  to  Marshal  Bazaine,  as  the  agent  of  the  French 
Government,  to  secure  such  an  election  as  would 
satisfy  the  scruples  of  the  Archduke  and  induce  him 
to  accept  the  proffered  throne.  Shortly  afterwards, 
certificates  of  election  in  favor  of  the  Empire  and  of 
Maximilian  for  Emperor  were  produced  from  "all 
places  occupied  by  the  French  bayonets."  These 
words  are  significant  of  the  manner  in  which  the 
election  was  conducted,  and  indicate  how  faithfully 
Bazaine  was  prepared  to  perform  the  duties  intrusted 
to  him  by  the  Emperor  of  the  French.  That  Em- 
peror furthermore  gave  the  Archduke  every  assurance 
that  the  Empire  of  Mexico  would  receive  such  sup- 
port from  France  as  might  be  required,  but  he  believed 
that  it  could  be  upheld  without  further  bloodshed, 
all  "military  questions  "  having  been  already  settled. 

Maximilian  was  therefore  prepared  to  accept  the 
throne  as  early  as  the  tenth  of  December,  1863.  He 
concluded  all  the  preliminaries  with  Napoleon  HI. 
and  with  his  Imperial  brother,  Francis  Joseph  of 
Austria,  who  was  the  head  of  his  family.  This  was, 
however,  without  the  participation  in  any  way  of  the 
Austrian  Government.  That  government  studiously 
avoided  all  complication  in  the  affair,  and  it  is  clearly 
erroneous  to  speak  of  the  "  Austro-Freuch  "  or  of  the 


254  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

"  Franco-Austrian  Empire  "  in  Mexico.  The  Aus- 
trian Emperor  looked  with  disfavor  upon  the  scheme 
from  the  beginning,  and  the  Austrian  people  were 
bitterly  opposed  to  the  accejDtance  of  the  throne  by 
Maximilian.  The  "  thought  of  ruling  the  old  Empire 
of  the  Aztecs  was  not  devoid  of  poetic  charm  and 
romantic  character,"  said  the  Austrian  newspapers, 
"  but  the  time  had  gone  by  when  such  caprices  were 
sufficient  to  compromise  the  policy  of  great  states 
and  throw  them  into  endless  complications."  It 
was  deemed  especially  unwise  in  an  Austrian  prince 
to  accept  any  crown  from  the  hands  of  a  Napoleon. 
In  the  official  circles  of  the  Austrian  capital,  the 
Mexican  scheme  met  with  decided  resistance  up  to 
the  last  moment.  The  Archduke's  persistence,  how- 
ever, triumphed  over  all  opposition,  even  though  his 
decision  caused  a  coolness  between  himself  and  his 
Imperial  brother;  and  it  was  openly  declared  in 
Vienna,  upon  the  announcement  of  his  acceptance 
of  the  throne,  that  "Mexico  and  its  Emperor  were 
strangers  to  Austria  and  her  interests." 

In  the  journalistic  phrase  about  the  poetic  charm 
and  romantic  character  of  ruling  the  (supposed)  an- 
cient Empire  of  the  Aztecs,  in  all  probability  lay  the 
strongest  of  the  motives  actuating  Maximilian  in  the 
matter.  His  was  precisely  the  character  of  mind  to 
be  dazzled  by  the  romantic  traditions  regarding  Mexico 
which  had  been  set  afloat  in  Europe ;  and  to  be  af- 
fected by  the  belief,  widespread  in  Europe,  that  the 
Indians  of  Mexico  hoped  for  the  return  of  a  sovereign 
from  the  East  who  was  to  restore  a  former  govern- 
ment to  which  they  had  been  accustomed  in  the  be- 
ginning. This  belief  was  one  of  the  stock  arguments 
of  Gutierrez  de  Estrada,  in  his  "  open  letter  "  of  1840, 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  255 

and  in  pamphlets  upon  that  subject  subsequently- 
issued  from  his  European  exile. 

Ferdinand  Maximilian  was  at  this  time  in  the 
thirty -second  year  of  his  age.  He  had  been  trained 
for  the  naval  service,  and  had  spent  several  years  in 
travel  and  upon  the  seas.  In  1855  he  was  appointed 
Commander-in-chief  of  the  Austrian  Navy,  and  is 
credited  with  the  reorganization  of  the  navy  and  its 
elevation  to  a  respectable  place  among  the  navies  of 
Europe.  In  1857  he  married  the  Princess  Carlota  of 
Belgium,  a  woman  of  lovely  character  and  excellent 
mind.  He  was  appointed  by  his  brother,  the  Em- 
peror of  Austria,  Military  and  Civil  Governor  of 
Lombardy  and  Venice,  where  he  proved  a  liberal- 
minded  and  public-spirited  ruler.  The  capitals  of 
these  provinces  still  attest  the  attention  he  gave  to 
arts,  sciences,  and  public  improvements.  Indeed, 
the  bent  of  his  mind  seems  to  have  been  in  those 
directions  rather  than  toward  the  sterner  duties  of 
statesmanship.  The  books  he  wrote  were  of  travel 
and  of  "aphorisms,"  and  were  not  likely  to  attract 
notice  beyond  the  circle  of  courtiers  among  whom 
his  life  was  spent.  His  penchant  for  public  im- 
provement was  gratified  at  the  expense  of  the  public 
funds,  and  with  little  idea  of  public  or  private  econ- 
omy. The  magnificent  Archducal  Palace  of  Mira- 
mar,  on  the  rocks  overlooking  the  Gulf  of  Trieste, 
involved  him  heavily  in  debt.  The  French  govern- 
ment had  not  only  to  provide  the  money  for  the  pay- 
ment of  this  debt,  but  to  supply  the  means  to  defray 
the  expenses  of  his  journey  to  the  new  Empire. 

Unaffected  and  altogether  charming  in  his  man- 
ner, spotless  in  personal  character,  possessed  of  pure 
motives,    Maximilian   was   yet    lacking   in   political 


256  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

sagacity,  as  he  was  somewhat  effeminate  in  appear- 
ance. He  was  tall  and  slender,  with  blonde  hair 
and  beard,  both  worn  long  and  parted  in  the  middle. 
His  eyes  were  blue.  The  rather  weak  character  in- 
dicated by  his  personal  appearance  seemed  to  imply 
that  he  was  one  likely  to  be  deluded  by  the  promises 
of  Louis  Napoleon  and  deceived  as  to  the  wishes  of 
the  Mexican  people,  as  well  as  unsuspicious  of  the 
flattering  attentions  bestowed  upon  him  by  others, 
and  thus  easily  lured  to  his  ruin. 

On  the  eighth  of  April,  1864,  Maximilian  signed 
at  Vienna  the  "Family  Compact"  whereby  he  re- 
nounced all  rights  which  he  might  have  in  the 
succession  to  the  Austrian  throne,  and  dedicated 
himself  entirely  to  the  Mexican  enterprise.  Two 
days  later,  at  a  high  function  in  the  Palace  of 
Miramar,  the  Committee  of  the  Mexican  Assembly  of 
Notables  again  formally  tendered  him  the  Imperial 
crown  of  Mexico,  and  it  was  accepted  by  him  in  a 
speech  declaring  that  he  had  not  the  slightest  doubt, 
from  the  "  Act  of  Adhesion  "  then  presented  to  him, 
that  an  immense  majority  of  the  Mexican  people  were 
in  favor  of  the  Imperial  form  of  government  with 
himself  at  its  head.  Before  an  ecclesiastic  present, 
Maximilian  took  an  oath  that  he  would,  "  by  every 
means  in  his  power,  procure  the  Avell-being  and  pros- 
perity of  the  Mexican  nation,  defend  its  independ- 
ence, and  preserve  the  integrity  of  its  territory."  The 
Mexican  flag  was  unfurled  on  the  tower  of  Miramar, 
salutes  were  fired  by  the  vessels  in  the  harbor  of 
Trieste,  and  within  the  palace  and  among  the  crowds 
without,  the  greatest  enthusiasm  prevailed. 

The  same  day  was  executed  the  "  Treaty  of  Mira- 
mar," a  very  important  document  in  its  relation  to 


THE  SECOND  EMPIRE  257 

subsequent  events.  It  was  an  agreement,  the  details 
of  which  had  been  arranged  some  time  previously 
between  Maximilian  and  Napoleon  III.,  by  which 
Maximilian  was  to  pay  the  Jecker  claims,  the  sum 
of  fifty-four  million  dollars  for  the  support  of  the 
army,  and  all  the  expenses  of  the  expedition  of  the 
Intervention,  —  making  a  total  sum  of  one  hundred 
and  seventy-three  million  dollars  of  public  debt  with 
which  to  begin  his  career  as  Emperor  of  Mexico. 
The  Treaty  stipulated,  among  other  things,  that 
from  year  to  year  the  force  of  thirty-eight  thousand 
men,  which  then  composed  the  French  army  occupy- 
ing Mexico,  should  be  withdrawn  as  rapidly  as  Mexi- 
can troops  could  be  organized  to  replace  them,  but 
that  eight  thousand  men  of  the  French  army  should 
remain  in  Mexico  for  six  years.  The  French  troops 
were  to  be  in  complete  accord  with  the  Mexican 
Emperor,  and  the  French  military  commander  was 
not  to  interfere  in  any  branch  of  the  Mexican  govern- 
ment. 

Four  days  later,  the  Emperor  and  Empress  were  on 
their  way  to  the  New  World  in  an  Austrian  frigate 
escorted  by  a  French  man-of-war.  The  city  of  Rome 
was  visited  on  the  way,  and  the  young  Imperial  couple 
had  an  audience  with  the  Pope,  the  particulars  of 
which  are  shrouded  in  deepest  mystery.  But  the 
papal  interests  in  the  success  of  Conservative,  Reac- 
tionary, and  Monarchical  parties  having  been  already 
engaged,  and  the  new  Empire  having  in  its  inception 
been  committed  to  the  Roman  Catholic  religion,  the 
interview  is  generally  inferred  to  have  been  of  deep 
significance. 

The  Imperial  party  arrived  in  Vera  Cruz  on  the 
twenty-ninth  of   May,  1864.      The  sovereigns  were 

17 


258  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

received  by  General  Almonte  as  President  of  the  Re- 
gency. The  seventh  of  June  (the  twenty-fifth  birth- 
day of  the  Empress)  was  spent  by  the  Imperial  party 
in  Puebla,  on  the  way  to  the  capital.  Five  days 
later,  Maximilian  and  Carlota  arrived  in  the  City  of 
Mexico,  where  they  were  received  with  every  mani- 
festation of  enthusiasm  by  the  Imperialist  residents 
of  the  city.  In  selecting  his  Council  of  Mhiisters, 
Maximilian  took  many  who  had  been  associated  with 
the  government  of  previous  Absolutists.  He  ap- 
pointed as  his  Minister  of  State,  however,  a  pro- 
nounced Liberal,  thinking  thereby  to  conciliate  tlie 
Republicans  and  win  them  over  to  the  Empire ;  and 
the  Liberal  was  induced,  by  the  blandishments  of 
Carlota,  to  accept  the  responsibilities  of  that  trying 
position.  But  when  the  Emperor  asked  Mariano 
Riva  Palacio  to  take  a  portfolio  in  his  cabinet,  he 
encountered  a  person  of  entirely  different  character. 
Senor  Riva  Palacio  flatly  refused,  on  the  ground 
that  it  would  be  inconsistent  for  a  Republican  to 
hold  office  under  an  Empire. 

The  Regency  continued  in  office  until  the  arrival 
of  the  Emperor,  and  then  dissolved  by  limitation. 
The  members  retired,  or  assumed  other  duties  as- 
signed them  under  the  Imperial  government.  The 
Regents  left  the  record  of  few  official  acts  performed 
by  them,  —  only  such  as  were  intended  to  secure  the 
proper  accomj)lishment  of  what  might  be  called,  in 
a  country  where  every  new  scheme  of  government 
has  been  called  a  "  Plan  "  of  some  kind,  the  "  Plan 
Napoleon." 


THE  CONFLICT  259 


CHAPTER   XIII 

THE   CONFLICT   BETWEEN   THE   REPUBLIC   AND 
THE   EMPIRE 


I 


"^O  the  apparently  few  adherents  of  the  Re- 
public and  of  Constitutional  Government  in 
the  northern  States  of  Mexico,  the  events 
set  forth  in  the  preceding  chapter  must  have  been 
disheartening  in  the  extreme.  It  must  have  seemed 
that  the  end  had  come  to  all  possibility  of  a  Repub- 
lican form  of  government,  or  of  a  Constitution  that 
would  maintain  the  rights  of  individuals  irrespective 
of  class  and  in  the  face  of  the  claims  of  the  Church. 
But  to  the  iron-willed  man  who  was  at  the  head 
of  the  apparently  defeated  Republican  Government, 
there  was  no  such  word  as  surrender  when  applied  to 
a  great  principle. 

Juarez  felt  that  the  French  army  was  the  concrete 
obstacle  he  had  to  overcome.  All  else  was  for  the 
time  a  mere  incident  to  that.  He  foresaw  the  end, 
and  with  Indian  stoicism  he  bided  his  time,  view- 
ing meanwhile,  perhaps  with  grim  satisfaction,  all 
the  difficulties  which  he  knew  would  beset  the  at- 
tempts of  Maximilian  to  maintain  himself,  and  of  the 
Clerical  party  to  keep  its  hold  upon  the  government 
of  Mexico  and  to  rule  it  through  the  Empire.  It  was 
well  for  him  and  for  his  country  that  through  this 
grave  crisis  he  had  the  tenacity  of  purpose  which  is 
characteristic  of  the  race  to  which  he  belonged. 


260  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

In  the  middle  of  August,  1864,  Juarez  was  forced 
to  leave  Monterey  upon  the  approach  of  Imperial 
forces ;  and  after  some  detentions  in  Viesca,  Mapimi, 
and  Nazas,  —  necessary  for  the  re-organization  of  the 
slender  forces  of  the  Republican  Government,  — ■  he 
went  to  Chihuahua.  Here  he  was  able  to  maintain 
his  government  until  the  following  August  (1865), 
when  the  approach  of  some  Imperial  troops  again 
caused  the  removal  of  his  provisional  capital.  Ac- 
companied by  twenty-two  of  his  most  trusted  friends, 
the  President  went  to  the  frontier  town  of  Paso  del 
ISTorte  (now  Ciudad  Juarez),  and  there  established 
his  government. 

Among  his  twenty-two  close  adherents  (afterwards 
dubbed  "  the  Immaculates  ")  was  Sebastian  Lerdo  de 
Tejada,  brother  of  the  late  Miguel  Lerdo  de  Tejada, 
who,  in  the  capacity  of  Minister  of  State,  exerted  a 
powerful  influence  upon  the  affairs  of  the  Republic 
even  in  those  dark  days.  From  Paso  del  Norte, 
Lerdo  issued  a  circular  declaring  that  it  was  the  firm 
determination  of  the  President  not  to  abandon  the 
territory  of  Mexico,  but  to  maintain  the  struggle 
against  the  invaders  of  his  country.  The  circular 
was  followed  by  a  letter  from  the  President  confirm- 
ing it.  Both  documents  gave  proof  of  the  energy  of 
the  President  and  of  his  faith  in  the  final  triumph  of 
constitutional  government.  Juarez  declined  several 
invitations  from  the  Commandant  at  Fort  Bliss,  on 
the  United  States  side  of  the  Rio  Grande,  and  gave 
no  opportunities  for  the  enemies  of  the  Republic 
to  gain  the  impression  that  he  had  abandoned  the 
territory. 

The  term  for  which,  under  the  Constitution,  Juarez 
had  been  elected  President,  expired  while  he  was  a 


TEE   CONFLICT  261 

fugitive  from  his  capital.  It  would  scarcely  seem 
possible  that  the  Presidency  of  Mexico  under  such 
circumstances  could  be  the  object  of  any  one's  ambi- 
tion; stranger  yet  that  one  who  must  have  known 
the  situation  as  well  as  did  General  Jesus  Gonzalez 
Ortega  should  have  aspired  either  to  the  title  or  the 
office.  Ortega  had  virtually  abandoned  the  office  of 
President  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Justice  to  which 
he  had  been  elected,  the  Court  itself  having  prac- 
tically dissolved  during  the  peregrinations  of  the 
Executive  department  of  the  government.  Yet  in 
November,  1865,  Ortega,  by  means  of  a  pronuncia- 
mento,  claimed  the  executive  power.  The  term  of 
Juarez  had  expired,  he  announced,  and  there  had  been 
no  election  to  fill  the  vacancy  thus  created.  The 
Presidency  was  therefore  his  by  virtue  of  his  office  as 
President  of  the  Supreme  Court,  in  the  same  manner 
as  that  in  which  Juarez  had  himself  first  attained 
thereto. 

It  was  a  situation  calling  for  the  exercise  of  that 
cool  judgment  which  was  one  of  the  chief  character- 
istics of  Benito  Juarez.  Willingly  would  he  have 
embraced  this  opportunity  to  escape  the  cares  of  the 
office  of  President  of  Mexico,  when  it  was  engaged 
solely  in  struggling  against  adversity.  But  Juarez 
clearly  foresaw  the  disasters  that  must  inevitably 
overtake  the  Republic  if  a  change  were  effected  in 
the  government  under  the  circumstances  then  exist- 
ing. He  maintained  that  his  term  of  office  legally 
continued  until,  in  time  of  peace,  constitutional  elec- 
tions could  take  place  and  his  successor  could  be 
elected;  and  in  this  position  he  was  sustained  by  all 
the  Republican  authorities  remaining  in  the  Northern 
States. 


262  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Probably  Juarez  was  wise  enough  to  see  that  his 
best  course  was  to  wait  for  the  Empire  to  expire  felo 
de  se.  It  had,  in  fact,  already  reached  its  zenith, 
and  was  beginning  to  decline.  Its  earliest  months 
had  been  devoted  to  instituting  the  paraphernalia  of 
Imperial  dignity  in  its  alien  home.  There  can  be  no 
question  of  the  genuineness  of  Maximilian's  efforts 
to  "  regenerate  Mexico, "  —  to  quote  the  j)hrase  he 
loved  to  use.  That  he  made  every  effort  to  familiar- 
ize himself  with  his  new  country  and  its  needs  must 
also  remain  unquestioned.  But  after  the  novelty  of 
the  situation  wore  off,  he  failed  to  give  that  satis- 
faction to  his  partisans  which  had  been  expected. 
He  found  that  Mexico  was  not  easily  governed  by 
the  mere  issuance  of  decrees,  however  wisely  and 
beneficently  conceived.  He  discovered  also  that  the 
professed  partisans  of  the  Empire  were  not  to  be 
trusted,  and  were  not  at  peace  among  themselves. 
Efforts  which  he  made  to  placate  the  Liberals,  while 
failing  of  their  direct  object,  alienated  the  members 
of  his  own  party.  The  difficulties  of  the  situation 
were  enhanced  by  the  fickleness  of  the  Mexican  char- 
acter. We  have  seen  how  much  Juarez  had  to 
contend  with  in  this  trait  of  the  Mexicans.  Now 
Maximilian  found  that  the  many  who  had  deserted 
Juarez  for  what  was  then  apparently  the  more  popular 
cause,  were  equally  ready  to  desert  the  Imperialists 
when  occasion  offered. 

The  Emperor  came  also  into  collision  with  the 
Clerical  party  very  early.  Though  decreeing  that 
the  Roman  Catholic  religion  was  the  established  reli- 
gion of  the  country,  Maximilian  declared  that  other 
religions  might  be  tolerated  under  some  restrictions. 
The  earliest  demand  of  the  Clerical  party  was  that 


THE   CONFLICT  263 

the  property  taken  from  the  Church  by  the  decree  of 
sequestration  should  be  restored.  But  inasmuch  as 
this  property  had  gone  into  the  hands  of  third  parties, 
and  it  was  impossible  to  recover  it,  the  "Reform 
Laws  "  of  Juarez  were  allowed  to  remain  in  force. 
Upon  the  declaration  of  the  Emperor  to  that  effect, 
the  Papal  Nuncio  then  in  Mexico  at  once  withdrew, 
signifying  thereby  not  only  that  the  Clerical  party 
in  Mexico  was  offended,  but  the  Papal  See  as  well. 

Between  Marshal  Bazaine  and  the  Mexican  Em- 
peror, during  the  early  days  of  the  Empire,  the  warm- 
est friendship  existed.  So  great  was  the  Emperor's 
confidence  in  the  integrity  and  good  judgment  of  the 
Commander-in-chief  of  the  French  army,  that  it 
was  not  difficult  for  the  latter,  in  contravention  of 
the  Treaty  of  Miramar,  to  dictate  in  many  cases  the 
policy  of  the  Empire.  When,  however,  the  French 
soldier  discovered  that  the  interests  of  Maximilian 
and  those  of  Napoleon  were  not  absolutely  identical, 
he  hesitated  not  as  to  whom  he  owed  the  higher 
allegiance.  He  had  nothing  further  to  expect  in 
Mexico,  while  a  career  awaited  him  in  France,  and 
the  friendship  of  Napoleon  III.  was  greatly  to  be  pre- 
ferred to  that  of  his  puppet  on  the  throne  of  Mexico, 
whose  Empire  was  already  hopelessly  in  debt  and 
rapidly  falling  to  pieces. 

The  final  downfall  of  the  Empire  may  be  directly 
traced  to  the  action  of  the  government  at  Washing- 
ton. The  clouds  of  Civil  War,  hanging  so  heavily 
over  the  United  States  when  the  Treaty  of  London 
was  signed,  had  furnished  Napoleon  III.  with  the 
opportunity  to  carry  out  his  schemes.  He  looked 
for  the  dismemberment  of  the  United  States  and  the 
permanent  establishment   of   the    Southern   Confed- 


264  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

eracy.  That  the  Confederate  States  of  America  and 
the  Mexican  Empire  should  be  kindly  disposed  to 
each  other,  was  thought  to  be  quite  natural,  —  al- 
though this  might  seem  strange  in  view  of  the  fact 
that  the  people  of  the  Southern  Confederacy  were 
fighting  for  principles  almost  identical  with  those 
which  Juarez  was  striving  to  establish,  and  against 
a  principle  of  centralization  which  he  was  opposing. 
It  was  one  of  the  inconsistencies  of  politics,  that 
the  professedly  democratic  Southern  Confederacy, 
avowedly  opposed  to  Imperialism,  should  be  looked 
upon  as  the  ally  of  the  Empire  in  Mexico.  Neverthe- 
less, news  of  every  Confederate  victory  was  received 
in  France  with  enthusiasm,  and  the  French  news- 
papers made  much  of  the  reports  of  a  public  demon- 
stration in  Richmond,  the  capital  of  the  Confederate 
States,  on  the  receipt  of  the  news,  in  1863,  that  the 
French  army  had  captured  Puebla.  The  Confederate 
States  had  given  definite  pledges  that  an  alliance  with 
the  Mexican  Empire  might  be  counted  on  as  soon  as 
the  Confederacy  gained  its  independence.  It  was  an 
important  feature  of  the  Napoleonic  Plan. 

As  long  as  the  United  States  were  engaged  in  war 
within  their  own  borders,  and  especially  during  the 
dark  days  when  it  was  doubtful  what  the  issues  of 
the  struggle  would  be,  nothing  could  be  done  by  the 
government  at  Washington  beyond  protesting  against 
the  action  of  the  French  Emperor  in  trampling  upon 
the  rights  claimed  in  the  Monroe  Doctrine.  The 
United  States  government  remained  firm  in  its  early 
recognition  of  the  Juarez  government.  In  fact,  in 
July,  1862,  it  had  been  proposed  by  the  United  States 
government  to  loan  Mexico  sufficient  funds  for  the 
payment  of  all  her  foreign  debts  (some  seventy-two 


THE   CONFLICT  265 

millions  of  dollars),  and  to  take  as  a  pledge  for  the 
repayment  thereof  in  five  years  the  provinces  of 
Lower  California  and  Sonora  —  abont  one  hundred 
and  forty  thousand  square  miles.  But  Juarez  felt 
compelled  to  decline  this  offer,  as  well  as  another  of  a 
loan  of  ten  million  dollars  on  easy  terms  but  with 
the  same  pledge  of  territory  as  security  for  its  repay- 
ment. The  charge,  once  widely  circulated,  that 
Juarez  had  negotiated  the  sale  of,  or  was  desirous  of 
selling,  some  of  the  Mexican  territory,  may  have 
been  based  upon  these  offers  of  the  United  States. 
The  efforts  of  Napoleon  to  sell  Sonora  to  a  promi- 
nent Confederate  sympathizer  belong,  not  to  a  his- 
tory of  the  struggle  for  Constitutional  Government 
in  Mexico,  but  to  a  more  detailed  account  of  the 
Second  Mexican  Empire.  Maintenance  of  the  integ- 
rity of  Mexican  territory  was  one  of  the  political 
principles  which  Juarez  had  adopted;  and  he  was 
true  to  it,  even  when  it  might  seem  to  have  been  the 
better  statesmanship  or  better  financial  policy  to  have 
relaxed  it. 

The  government  at  Washington  had  declined  to 
pay  any  regard  to  the  notification  received  from  the 
"  Under  Secretary  of  State  and  Foreign  Affairs  of  the 
Regency  of  the  Empire  of  Mexico,"  of  the  action  of 
"  The  Assembly  of  Notables  "  on  the  tenth  of  July, 
1863.  Its  relations  with  the  Minister  Plenipoten- 
tiary of  the  Juarez  government  remained  unbroken 
throughout  the  years  when  it  must  have  seemed  to 
many  that  the  Empire  was  triumphant  and.  that  the 
restoration  of  the  Republic  was  well-nigh  hopeless. 
On  every  occasion  that  offered,  it  reiterated  the 
interest  it  felt  in  the  "  safety,  welfare,  and  prosperity 
of   Mexico,"  and  whenever  it  mentioned  Mexico  it 


266  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

implied  thereby  the  constitutionally  organized  gov- 
ernment of  the  Republic  there.  At  first  it  accepted, 
as  though  made  in  good  faith,  the  declaration  of 
France  that  she  was  at  war  with  Mexico  "for  the 
purpose  of  asserting  just  claims  "  and  obtaining  pay- 
ment for  just  debts  due  from  that  nation,  and  not  for 
the  purpose  of  colonizing  or  acquiring  any  territory 
for  herself  or  for  any  other  nation ;  that  she  did  not 
intend  to  occupy  Mexico  permanently,  nor  do  vio- 
lence to  the  sovereignty  of  the  people ;  and  that  "  as 
soon  as  her  griefs  were  satisfied  and  she  could  do  so 
with  honor,"  she  would  quit  Mexico  entirely. 

So  long  as  these  assurances  were  relied  upon,  the 
United  States  maintained  a  position  of  strict  neutral- 
ity, disclaiming  any  "  right  or  disposition  to  intervene 
by  force  in  the  internal  affairs  of  Mexico,  to  establish 
or  maintain  a  Republic  or  even  a  domestic  govern- 
ment, or  overthrow  an  Imperial  or  foreign  one  if 
Mexico  chose  to  establish  or  accept  it."  But  as  it 
was  clearly  stated  in  a  letter  from  the  Hon.  William 
H.  Seward,  Secretary  of  State,  to  the  United  States 
Minister  to  France,  September  twenty-sixth,  1863, 
the  government  at  Washington  claimed  to  know  that 
"the  inherent  normal  opinion  of  Mexico  favored  a 
government  there,  republican  in  form  and  domestic  in 
its  organization,  in  preference  to  any  monarchical  in- 
stitution to  be  imposed  from  abroad,  .  .  .  that  such 
normal  opinion  of  the  people  of  Mexico  resulted 
largely  from  the  influence  of  popular  opinion  in  the 
United  States,  and  was  constantly  invigorated  by  it." 
The  government  of  the  United  States  was  prepared, 
however,  to  declare  that  "should  France  determine 
to  adopt  a  policy  in  Mexico  adverse  to  American 
opinions  and  sentiments,  that  policy  would  probably 


THE   CONFLICT  267 

scatter  seeds  which  would  be  fruitful  of  jealousies 
which  might  ultimately  ripen  into  collision  between 
France  and  the  United  States  and  other  American 
Republics. " 

When  the  purposes  of  France  became  apparent 
beyond  all  possibility  of  doubt,  the  Senate  and  House 
of  Representatives  at  Washington  passed  a  joint  reso- 
lution to  the  effect  that  the  occupation  of  Mexico  by 
the  Emperor  of  the  French,  or  by  "the  person  indi- 
cated by  him  as  Emperor  of  Mexico, "  was  an  offence 
to  the  people  of  the  United  States ;  that  the  move- 
ments of  France,  and  the  threatened  movements  of 
"an  Empire  improvised  by  the  Emperor  of  the 
French,"  if  insisted  upon,  demanded  war;  and  this 
resolution  was  furthermore  declared  to  embody  noth- 
ing inconsistent  with  what  had  been  held  out  to 
France  from  the  beginning.  Although  the  United 
States  did  not  at  that  time  seem  in  a  position  to 
carry  out  its  threat  of  war  with  France,  there  was 
no  hesitancy  about  the  assertion  of  the  "Monroe 
Doctrine,"  and  it  was  hoped  that  the  means  to  main- 
tain the  position  thus  asserted  would  be  forthcoming 
if  required. 

All  protests  and  warnings  were,  however,  un- 
heeded by  France  so  long  as  the  war  continued  in 
the  United  States.  But  before  the  summer  of  1865, 
the  entire  aspect  of  affairs  took  a  change  totally  un- 
expected by  Napoleon  III.  The  Civil  War  came  to 
an  end,  without  any  dismemberment  of  the  United 
States.  The  Mexican  Empire  was  thus  left  without 
any  prospect  of  an  ally  in  the  North  American  con- 
tinent; while  the  government  at  Washington  was 
free  to  orive  to  the  French  Intervention  the  attention 
it  demanded.     It  returned  to  the  subject,  and  pur- 


268  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

sued  it  with  vigor.  It  declared  in  the  most  emphatic 
terms  that  France  had  trespassed  upon  the  rights 
which  the  United  States  claimed  as  set  forth  in  the 
"Monroe  Doctrine,"  both  in  attempting  European 
colonization  in  some  of  the  Mexican  States,  and  by 
establishing  and  maintaining  an  Empire  on  the 
American  continent.  It  demanded  that  the  French 
troops  be  withdrawn  from  Mexico  without  delay, 
and  that  all  attempts  at  colonization  cease ;  and  it 
emphasized  these  demands  by  ordering  an  officer  of 
high  rank  in  its  army  to  the  side  of  President  Juarez, 
and  by  placing  an  "  army  of  observation "  on  the 
Mexican  frontier. 

So  resolute  was  the  tone  of  this  diplomatic  corre- 
spondence, and  so  unmistakable  was  the  disposition 
of  the  government  at  Washington  to  enforce  its  de- 
mands by  war  should  this  be  necessary,  that  these 
warnings  could  no  longer  be  disregarded.  Napoleon, 
finding  public  opinion  in  France  strongly  opposed  to 
his  jDrojects  and  their  continuance,  yielded  to  the 
situation;  he  agreed  to  withdraw  his  troops  from 
Mexico  within  a  specified  time,  and  to  abstain  from 
further  interference  in  Mexican  affairs  or  attempts  at 
colonization  in  that  country.  The  triumph  of  the 
"  Monroe  Doctrine  "  was  complete. 

It  was  after  this  course  had  been  agreed  upon,  but 
before  the  mobilization  of  the  French  troops,  prepar- 
atory to  their  final  withdrav/al  from  the  country,  had 
begun,  that  Maximilian  took  the  step  which  sealed 
his  own  fate  and  that  of  his  Empire.  It  was  the 
issuing  of  the  famous  Decree  of  October  3,  1865. 
The  Mexicans,  who  are  expert  in  devising  nick- 
names, often  call  it  the  "Decree  of  Huitzilopochtli," 
that  being  the  name  of  the  War-god  of  the  Aztecs, 


THE   CONFLICT  269 

who  was  only  to  be  propitiated  by  human  sacrifices. 
This  decree  was  so  utterly  at  variance  with  the 
temper  and  spirit  of  the  Emperor's  official  acts  gen- 
erally, that  it  has  been  debated  as  to  whether  it 
originated  with  him  or  was  a  measure  dictated  by 
others.  It  was  held  subsequently  that  Bazaine  was 
responsible  for  the  false  information  upon  which  the 
decree  was  based,  and  had  inspired  the  decree  itself. 

The  decree  purported  to  be  based  upon  information 
that  President  Juarez  had  abandoned  the  Mexican 
territory,  crossed  the  northern  frontier,  and  gone  to 
Santa  F^,  New  Mexico.  It  declared  that  the  cause 
sustained  by  him  with  so  much  valor  had  at  last 
succumbed,  and  that  the  chief  had  abandoned  his 
country  and  his  government.  "Henceforth,"  it  went 
on  to  say,  "the  struggle  will  no  longer  be  between 
opposing  systems  of  government,  but  between  the 
Empire  established  by  the  will  of  the  people  and  the 
criminals  and  bandits  which  infest  the  country."  It 
therefore  declared  that  all  persons  carrying  arms 
against  the  Empire,  as  well  as  all  persons  aiding 
them  by  selling  them  arms  or  supplies,  were  to  be 
tried  by  courts-martial  and  condemned  to  death. 
Punishments  by  fine  and  imprisonment  were  pre- 
scribed for  all  who  in  any  other  way  opposed  the 
Empire. 

The  Emperor's  recognition  of  the  courage  and 
constancy  of  Juarez,  in  the  preamble  of  the  "  bloody  " 
decree,  caught  the  fancy  of  the  Mexicans  and  tickled 
their  sense  of  humor;  and  one  of  the  papers,  pub- 
lished in  the  capital,  produced  a  caricature  of  the 
Emperor  fastening  upon  the  breast  of  Juarez  (who 
wore  a  Phrygian  cap)  a  medal  for  courage  and  con- 
stancy.     In   various   ways   the    Emperor  had   paid 


270  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIG 

tribute  to  the  wisdom  and  statesmanship  of  the 
President,  —  sometimes  by  allowing  the  measures  of 
the  latter  to  stand  altogether  unopposed,  and  often  by 
his  failure  to  reverse  them  when  he  tried  to  do  so. 

Naturally,  this  decree  has  often  been  compared 
with  that  issued  by  Juarez  on  the  twenty-fifth  of 
January,  1862.  But  in  such  a  comparison  it  must 
not  be  forgotten  that  the  Imperial  decree  was  based 
upon  more  than  one  false  premise,  as  well  as  upon 
information  that  was  untrue  and  the  falsity  of  which 
was  easily  ascertainable.  It  was  a  false  premise  that 
the  President  had  abandoned  the  country  and  his 
government.  It  was  a  false  premise  that  the  Mexi- 
can Empire  had  been  established  by  the  will  of  the 
people,  and  that  the  supporters  of  constitutional 
government  were  criminals  and  bandits.  Far  differ- 
ent, therefore,  were  the  measures,  however  drastic, 
put  forth  by  a  Constitutional  ruler  in  support  of  a 
legitimate  national  government  threatened  with  trea- 
son within  and  invasion  from  without;  far  different 
would  have  been  the  most  cruel  decree  that  could 
have  been  sent  forth  under  such  circumstances,  from 
a  measure  adopted  to  sustain  an  Empire  obtruded 
upon  a  people  in  the  first  place,  and  then  in  the  last 
throes  of  dissolution,  being  dependent  upon  foreign 
arms  for  its  support  throughout. 

It  was  subsequently  claimed,  also,  in  mitigation  of 
the  criminality  of  the  Decree  of  October  3,  that  it 
was  only  intended  to  terrorize  the  opponents  of  the 
Empire,  and  was  not  expected  to  be  enforced.  Un- 
fortunately it  was  enforced,  and  in  such  a  manner  as 
to  be  the  suicidal  act  of  the  Imperial  Government. 
A  few  days  after  it  was  issued,  and  before  it  could 
be   generally  known  outside    of   the   capital   except 


TEE   CONFLICT  271 

in  the  Imperial  armj-,  General  Salazar  (Military 
Governor  of  Michoacan),  General  Arteaga,  Colonel 
Trinidad  Villagomez,  Colonel  Jesus  Diaz,  and  Cap- 
tain Gonzalez,  officers  of  the  Republican  army,  —  men 
of  excellent  reputation  and  high  standing,  —  were 
made  prisoners  in  the  State  of  Michoacan  by  Gen- 
eral Mendez  of  the  Imperial  army.  They  were  tried 
by  court-martial,  condemned  to  death,  and  on  the 
twenty-fourth  of  October  were  taken  to  Uruapan  and 
there  executed,  in  total  disregard  of  the  rules  of  war 
and  of  civilization. 

The  force  of  this  ill-advised  decree  could  not  have 
fallen  more  unfortunately  for  the  fate  of  the  Emperor. 
The  Imperialist  newspapers  at  the  capital  described 
Arteaga  as  "  an  honest  and  sincere  man,  whose  career 
had  been  distinguished  b}^  humanity.-"  Salazar  was 
one  who  could  write  to  his  mother  the  night  before 
his  execution :  "  My  conscience  is  at  rest.  I  go  down 
to  the  tomb  at  thirty-three  years  of  age,  without  a 
stain  upon  my  military  career  or  a  blot  on  my  name. " 
Two  hundred  Belgian  prisoners,  in  the  hands  of  the 
Liberals  at  Tacambaro,  protested  most  vigorously 
against  this  act  of  inhumanity,  and  stated  in  their 
letter  to  the  Emperor  that  they  had  come  to  Mexico 
solely  to  act  as  a  guard  of  honor  to  their  Empress, 
and  had  been  forced  to  fight  against  principles  iden- 
tical with  their  own. 

The  summary  execution  of  this  decree  upon  brave 
soldiers,  in  arms  in  defence  of  their  land  and  consti- 
tutional government,  raised  a  storm  of  indignation 
against  the  Emperor  and  his  ministers  in  still  another 
quarter.  Many  who  had  been  favorably  disposed 
toward  the  Empire  now  became  lukewarm,  or  turned 
directly  against  it ;  while  the  neutrals  were  prompted 


272  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

to  declare  themselves  openly  in  favor  of  the  Republic. 
If  such  were  the  workings  of  a  monarchical  form  of 
government,  they  were  thenceforth  in  favor  of  the 
Constitution  which  was  designed  to  furnish  immunity 
from  that  class  of  experiences  which  had  already 
stained  too  many  pages  of  the  history  of  Mexico. 
Disappointed  that  the  Empire,  with  its  "prince  of 
foreign  stock  at  its  head,"  did  not  furnish  an  im- 
provement upon  what  Mexico  already  knew  far  too 
well,  a  great  many  turned  toward  Juarez  with  the 
determination  to  support  him  in  his  efforts  to  rees- 
tablish constitutional  government.  And  thus  the 
fortunes  of  the  little  band  of  stalwart  Republicans  on 
the  frontier  began  to  turn. 

The  work  of  withdrawing  the  French  troops  from 
the  interior  and  concentrating  them  upon  the  capital 
was  successfully  accomplished  by  Bazaine  before  the 
end  of  1866.  Some  time  was  spent  in  arranging 
the  exchange  of  prisoners  between  the  foreign  and 
the  Republican  armies,  but  this  was  finally  done  in  a 
manner  greatly  to  the  credit  of  both  armies,  and  the 
forces  of  the  Republic  were  augmented  by  the  return 
of  some  of  those  previously  held  as  prisoners  by  the 
Imperialists.  Toward  the  close  of  January,  1867, 
the  foreign  army  began  to  retire,  "  and  extended  like 
a  girdle  of  steel  along  the  sandy  road  from  the  City 
of  Mexico  to  Vera  Cruz." 

Bazaine  used  his  influence  with  Maximilian  to 
induce  him  to  abdicate  and  return  with  the  French 
army  to  Europe.  The  only  way  open  to  him  to  dis- 
charge the  many  obligations  he  was  under  to  Maxi- 
milian was,  it  seemed  to  Bazaine,  to  urge  him  to 
escape  from  the  fate  that  must  inevitably  overtake 
him  if  he  persisted  in  remaining  in  Mexico.     This 


THE  CONFLICT  273 

he  urged  in  personal  interviews  and  in  many  letters ; 
and  the  last  act  of  Bazaine,  before  sailing  from  Vera 
Cruz,  in  March,  1867,  was  to  write  to  Maximilian 
offering  him  a  final  opportunity  to  escape  in  the 
vessels  provided  for  the  transportation  of  the  French 
army. 

Bazaine  returned  to  Europe  to  become  the  trusted 
Commander-in-chief  of  the  unfortunate  armies  of 
France  in  the  war  with  Prussia  in  1870-71.  He  was 
faithful  to  his  Emperor  to  the  very  end,  but  after  the 
surrender  of  Sedan  lost  the  confidence  of  the  French 
people.  He  was  court-martialled,  and  sentenced  to 
death.  After  an  escape  from  prison,  he  sank  into 
obscurity,  from  which  his  death  raised  his  name  for  a 
short  time.  He  carried  to  the  grave  the  maledictions 
of  the  Mexican  people,  in  whose  memory  dwelt  a  large 
number  of  cruelties  practised  in  his  ready  obedience 
to  the  behests  of  the  Emperor  Napoleon  IH. 

As  the  French  troops  had  withdrawn  from  the 
towns  of  Northern  Mexico,  the  Republicans  of  the 
northern  States  reunited  and  occupied  them.  Thus, 
in  November,  1865,  a  few  of  his  soldiers  having  cap- 
tured Chihuahua,  Juarez  promptly  transferred  thereto 
the  seat  of  his  government  from  Paso  del  Norte.  He 
had  to  retreat,  however,  before  returning  troops  in 
December,  and  was  in  Paso  del  Norte  again  on  the 
eighteenth  of  that  month.  Early  in  June,  1866,  the 
Republican  troops  were  sufficiently  reorganized  to 
gain  their  first  decided  victory  over  Mexican  Impe- 
rialists; Chihuahua  was  finally  evacuated  by  the 
Imperial  troops,  and  the  seat  of  the  Republican 
government  was  established  there. 

Thenceforth  the  tide  of  war  turned  in  favor  of  the 
Republican  arms.     Escobedo,  who  had  been  in  Texas 

18 


274  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

from  June,  1864,  to  the  latter  part  of  1865,  organ- 
izing help  for  Mexico,  surprised  and  captured  the 
Imperial  garrison  at  Monterey.  This  had  the  effect 
of  augmenting  his  forces  and  bringing  together  the 
dispersed  soldiers  of  the  Republic.  In  March,  1866, 
he  was  enabled  to  begin  offensive  operations  toward 
the  South.  In  June  he  captured  Saltillo,  after  a 
brief  resistance.  He  was  appointed  General-in-chief 
of  the  Army  of  the  North,  and  continued  his  success- 
ful operations.  In  September  he  marched  toward 
Guanajuato,  and  established  his  headquarters  in 
Celaya.  There  he  was  joined  by  forces  from  Mich- 
oacan  and  from  the  north.  Thereupon  Juarez  felt 
justified  in  transferring  his  seat  of  government  to 
Zacatecas  in  January,  1867;  but  on  the  twenty- 
seventh  of  that  month,  he  and  his  cabinet  barely 
escaped  falling  into  the  hands  of  Miramon,  and  were 
obliged  to  take  refuge  in  Sombrerete.  Escobedo 
defeated  Miramon  at  San  Jacinto  on  the  first  of  Feb- 
ruary, and  the  latter  retired  to  Queretaro.  Juarez 
removed  the  seat  of  his  government  to  San  Luis 
Potosi,  where  it  remained  throughout  the  closing 
scenes  of  the  Imperial  regime. 

After  the  news  came  to  Maximilian  of  the  final 
decision  of  Napoleon  III.  to  withdraw  his  support 
from  the  Mexican  Empire,  the  unhappy  Archduke 
pursued  for  a  time  a  vacillating  policy.  A  self- 
sacrificing  effort,  on  the  part  of  Carlota,  to  induce 
Napoleon  to  reverse  his  decision  and  adhere  to  the 
Treaty  of  Miramar,  resulted  in  disaster  to  the  beauti- 
ful Princess.  This  misfortune  made  the  position  of 
Maximilian  the  more  trying.  Plunged  in  melancholy 
by  his  domestic  sorrows,  and  with  the  support  with- 
drawn upon  which  his  Empire  had  chiefly  rested,  he 


THE  CONFLICT  275 

debated  with  himself  what  he  ought  to  do.  The 
purity  and  honesty  of  his  personal  motives  remain 
unquestioned.  He  had  accepted  the  task  of  "  regen- 
erating Mexico,"  and  of  giving  good  government  to 
that  country.  He  had  failed  to  accomplish  this.  He 
was  confronted  by  his  own  mistakes ;  but  he  felt  in 
duty  bound  to  embrace  an  opportunity,  if  it  were 
extended  to  him,  to  make  another  effort.  He  finally 
attempted  to  shift  the  responsibility  of  the  choice  of 
duties  resting  upon  him,  by  calling  a  meeting  of  his 
Council,  at  Orizaba,  in  November,  1866,  and  leaving 
with  that  body  his  abdication.  The  Council,  by  a 
small  majority,  declined  to  accept  it.  At  the  same 
time,  the  Church  party  stepped  forward  with  an  offer 
of  support  aiKl  a  proposition  to  try  the  Emperor  once 
more.  The  Empire  therefore  gathered  itself  together 
for  a  final  struggle. 

Miramon,  after  the  establishment  of  the  Regency, 
entered  Mexico  by  way  of  the  northern  frontier,  and 
hastened  to  the  capital  to  tender  his  services  to  the 
Empire.  They  were  not  accepted,  and  he  went 
abroad  again.  When  Maximilian  came,  Miramon 
renewed  his  offer,,  and  it  was  accepted;  but  Maxi- 
milian, fearing  that  his  presence  in  the  country  might 
embarrass  the  Imperial  government  in  some  way, 
asked  him  to  remain  abroad  and  "study  the  Prus- 
sian system  of  military  tactics."  Marquez  was  at 
the  same  time  sent  as  a  special  envoy  to  Turkey, 
that  the  Empire  might  not  be  embarrassed  by  his  too 
close  intimacy.  When  Miramon  now  opportunely 
returned  to  Mexico,  he  was  sent  by  Maximilian  to 
the  capital  to  take  command  of  a  division  of  the 
Mexican  Imperial  army  which  it  became  necessary 
to  organize  there  with  the  means  provided  by  the 


276  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

Church.  Marquez  was  recalled  and  made  Com- 
mander-in-chief of  the  forces  at  the  capital. 

It  was  then  decided  to  transfer  the  Imperial  seat 
of  government  to  Queretaro;  and  in  February,  1867, 
the  Emperor,  in  command  of  the  entire  army,  and 
with  Marquez  as  the  chief  of  his  forces,  set  out  to 
march  thither.  General  Tomas  Mejia,  as  commander 
of  the  Third  Division  of  the  Army  of  the  Empire, 
had  evacuated  San  Luis  Potosi  in  December,  1866, 
and  retired  to  Queretaro.  After  his  defeat  by  Esco- 
bedo  at  San  Jacinto,  Miramon  made  Queretaro  his 
objective  point;  and  subsequently  General  Mendez, 
from  Morelia,  added  to  the  number  of  Imperial  troops 
gathered  in  that  city,  which,  though  supposed  to  be 
a  stronghold  of  the  Church,  was  a  very  poor  strategic 
position,  being,  as  Maximilian  afterwards  called  it, 
"a  mouse-trap." 

The  troops  within  Queretaro  numbered  eight  thou- 
sand picked  men.  Maximilian,  writing  to  one  of  his 
ministers  on  the  ninth  of  February,  reviewed  the 
condition  of  his  army  after  he  had  been  abandoned 
by  the  French,  and  acknowledged  the  mistaken  im- 
pression under  which  he  had  labored  when  he  signed 
the  decree  of  October  3,  1865.  "The  Republican 
forces,  wrongly  represented  as  demoralized,  disor- 
ganized, and  united  solely  by  the  hope  of  pillage," 
he  wrote,  "  prove  by  their  conduct  that  they  form  a 
homogeneous  army  whose  stimulus  is  the  courage 
and  perseverance  of  a  chief  moved  by  a  great  idea  — 
that  of  defending  the  national  independence  which 
he  believes  threatened  by  the  establishment  of  our 
Empire." 

The  opportunity  for  which  the  Republican  govern- 
ment had  so  long  and  so  patiently  waited  had  arrived 


THE   CONFLICT  277 

at  last,  and  Juarez  took  advantage  of  it.  In  Novem- 
ber, Escobedo  found  himself  at  the  head  of  an  army- 
numbering  fifteen  thousand  men.  He  was  ordered 
to  advance  upon  Queretaro.  After  an  obstinate 
fight  with  the  Imperialists  on  the  heights  of  San 
Gregorio,  Escobedo,  his  army  now  increased  to 
twenty  thousand  men,  surrounded  Queretaro,  and 
from  the  twelfth  of  March  to  the  fifteenth  of  May, 
1867,  held  the  city  in  a  state  of  siege. 

The  Imperialists  made  a  series  of  brilliant  sorties. 
In  one  of  these,  Marquez  was  sent  to  the  City  of 
Mexico  with  Vidaurri,  — ■  the  former  to  raise  rein- 
forcements for  the  relief  of  the  besieged,  the  latter 
to  assume  the  office  of  Lieutenant  of  the  Empire. 
Marquez,  in  disobedience  of  the  Emperor's  orders, 
and  perfidious  as  ever,  went  to  the  relief  of  Puebla, 
then  hard  pressed  by  the  soldiers  of  General  Porfirio 
Diaz.  His  idea  appears  to  have  been  that  the  Empire 
was  about  to  go  to  pieces,  but  that  there  were  chances 
of  three  governments  being  established,  one  in  the 
North,  one  with  Queretaro  as  its  capital;  and  that 
his  career  lay  in  the  establishment  of  the  third,  with 
Puebla  as  its  capital,  if  not  the  City  of  Mexico.  He 
was  defeated  by  Diaz,  and  returned  to  the  capital. 
There  he  assumed  dictatorial  powers,  marked  by  the 
cruelty  for  which  he  was  always  famous. 

On  the  fourteenth  of  May,  a  general  sortie  from 
Queretaro  had  been  planned,  and  the  Emperor  met 
with  his  officers  in  a  Council  of  War.  It  was  then 
declared  by  Mejia  that  the  success  of  the  movement 
was  impossible  at  that  time,  and  upon  his  advice  the 
matter  was  postponed  for  twenty-four  hours.  After 
the  breaking  up  of  the  Council,  Colonel  Miguel 
Lopez,   a   favorite   member   of  the   Emperor's   staff 


278  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

went  over  to  the  Republican  headquarters  and  gave 
information  which  enabled  a  small  detachment  of  the 
Republican  army  to  enter  the  city  at  daybreak  the 
next  morning. 

The  Emperor  was  awakened  by  his  secretary,  in 
his  headquarters  in  the  Church  of  La  Cruz,  early  on 
the  fifteenth  of  May,  and  was  bidden  to  try  to  escape. 
He  went  out  hurriedly,  and  was  joined  by  Mejia  on 
the  Cerro  de  las  Campanas.  The  assault  on  the  city 
threw  everything  into  confusion.  The  little  party  of 
Imperialists  on  the  Cerro  attracted  the  attention  of 
the  Republicans,  and  the  fire  of  some  of  the  batteries 
was  directed  toward  it.  Maximilian  asked  Mejia,  the 
stoical  Indian  soldier  at  his  side,  Avhat  chances  there 
were,  and  received  the  reply  that  it  Vv^as  utterly  futile 
to  prolong  the  struggle.  A  white  flag  was  displayed, 
and  Maximilian  delivered  his  sword  to  a  Republican 
officer  who  rode  up  in  response  to  the  signal.  Thus 
ended  the  Second  Mexican  Empire. 

Mendez  was  apprehended,  and  with  the  recollection 
vivid  in  the  minds  of  his  captors  of  his  too  prompt 
execution  of  the  decree  of  October  third,  he  was  un- 
ceremoniously shot.  Miramon  was  wounded  in  the 
assault  upon  the  city,  and  Avas  put  under  arrest. 

Shortly  afterwards,  the  Teatro  de  Iturbide,  in  the 
city  of  Queretaro,  was  the  scene  of  a  remarkable 
court-martial.  "  Fernando  Maximiliano  of  Hapsburg, 
Archduke  of  Austria,"  was  arraigned,  with  Miguel 
Miramon  and  Tomas  Mejia  as  particeps  criminis,  on 
charges  of  filibustering,  treason,  and  putting  forth 
the  Decree  of  October  third,  1865.  Nothing  was  said 
in  the  process  about  an  order,  issued  as  lately  as  the 
fifth  of  the  preceding  February,  for  the  prompt  exe- 
cution of  Juarez  and  his  ministers  should  they  fall 


THE  CONFLICT  279 

into  the  hands  of  the  Imperialists,  though  that  order 
was  then  actually  in  the  hands  of  the  President.  The 
process  against  Maximilian  was  not  actuated  by  a 
spirit  of  revenge. 

The  conduct  of  Maximilian  throughout  these  scenes 
was  heroic,  and  such  as  to  awaken  the  interest  and 
attract  the  sympathy  of  the  entire  world.  He  had 
been  a  weak  ruler,  the  dupe  of  more  than  one  unprin- 
cipled person,  and  the  tool  of  those  who  were  seeking 
to  overthrow  constitutional  government  in  Mexico. 
But  he  was  a  brave  and  noble  prince.  Too  ill  to  be 
present  at  the  trial,  he  placed  his  defence  in  the 
hands  of  Mariano  Riva  Palacio  (the  noted  Republican 
who  had  declined  a  place  in  his  Council),  and  gave 
his  attention  to  the  arrangement  of  his  worldly 
affairs  in  the  prospect  of  death.  He  made  several 
projDositions  to  leave  the  country,  but  they  were  not 
accepted. 

Senor  Riva  Palacio,  with  the  assistance  of  other 
distinguished  lawyers,  did  all  in  his  power  to  save 
his  unfortunate  client,  but  without  success.  The 
court-martial,  sitting  from  10  A.  M.  on  the  fourteenth 
of  June  until  10  p.  M.  on  the  fifteenth,  brought  in  a 
verdict  of  guilty,  and  fixed  the  death  penalty.  The 
death  sentence  was  approved  at  once  by  the  General 
of  the  army,  and  the  execution  was  ordered  to  take 
place  the  next  day.  It  was  postponed,  by  telegram 
from  Juarez,  until  the  nineteenth. 

In  the  interval,  every  effort  possible  was  made  to 
save  the  life  of  the  unfortunate  prisoners.  Senor  Riva 
Palacio  went  to  San  Luis  Potosi  to  plead  with  the 
President.  The  Princess  Salm-Salm  rode  across  the 
country,  a  hundred  and  twenty  miles,  on  a  similar 
errand.     Those  who  were  in  San  Luis  Potosi  at  the 


280  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

time  tell  how  the  President  suffered  during  his  inter- 
views with  those  who  pleaded  for  the  lives  of  the 
condemned  men.  Although  personally  inclined  to 
show  clemency,  it  seemed  to  Juarez  necessary  to 
strike  a  decisive  blow  in  behalf  of  the  maintenance 
of  the  Republic.  The  possibility  of  Mexico's  having 
to  go  through  similar  bitter  experiences  was  to  be 
obviated  at  all  cost.  "Now  or  never,"  said  Lerdo  de 
Tejada,  "we  must  consolidate  the  Republic."  Juarez 
felt  that  he  was  compelled  by  stern  necessity  to  take 
the  life  of  the  noble  Maximilian  and  of  his  two  com- 
panions in  arms.  "If  all  the  kings  and  queens  of 
Europe  were  prostrate  before  me,  I  could  not  save 
the  life  for  which  you  plead,"  he  said  to  those  who 
approached  him.  "  I  do  not  take  it.  It  is  the  law,  — 
the  people  demand  it,  not  I.  If  I  fail  to  do  the  will 
of  the  people,  my  life  would  justly  be  the  penalty." 

A  protest  from  the  United  States  government  was 
also  received,  but  all  to  no  avail.  Maximilian  sent 
in  an  appeal,  not  on  his  own  behalf  but  on  behalf  of 
his  companions  in  misfortune,  which  met  with  no 
better  success. 

On  the  morning  of  the  nineteenth  of  June,  at 
seven  o'clock,  the  stern  sentence  of  the  court-mar- 
tial was  executed  upon  Maximilian,  Miramon,  and 
Mejia,  upon  the  Cerro  de  las  Campanas,  the  spot 
where  Maximilian  had  surrendered  to  the  Army  of 
the  Republic.  The  bright  dream  of  Napoleon  III., 
of  the  establishment  of  an  Empire  in  the  New 
World,  was  at  an  end.  The  Republic  of  Mexico 
was  triumphant. 

It  has  been  customary  to  blame  Juarez  for  this 
apparently  needless  taking  of  the  life  of  the  noble- 


THE  CONFLICT  281 

hearted  but  weak  Maximilian.  But  it  would  seem, 
upon  carefully  looking  at  all  the  circumstances,  that 
it  was  the  great  occasion  in  the  life  of  Benito  Juarez 
when  he  was  to  be  pitied  rather  than  blamed,  and 
that  throughout  that  trying  period  he  was  acting 
contrary  to  his  own  inclinations,  and  in  obedience  to 
what  he  regarded  as  the  stern  law  of  duty  and  neces- 
sity. He  may  have  erred  in  his  judgment  as  to  the 
necessities  of  the  case,  but  he  was  honest  as  to  his 
convictions,  and  he  had  the  courage  to  act  in  accord- 
ance therewith,  even  though  the  penalty  was  to  bear 
the  odium  of  having  needlessly  executed  the  death- 
sentence. 

If  we  are  to  look  at  the  matter  from  the  standpoint 
of  Juarez,  we  must  take  into  account  his  whole 
career,  give  due  weight  to  the  tasks  he  had  assumed, 
and  consider  what  must  have  appeared  to  him  the 
probable  result  of  his  leniency  to  the  most  important 
personage  he  had  ever  held  in  his  power.  He  could 
be  lenient  with  any  one  else  with  less  risk  to  the 
future  welfare  of  his  country.  He  had  taught  stern 
lessons  to  conspirators  in  the  Conservative  and  Reac- 
tionary parties ;  it  was  absolutely  necessary  to  extend 
the  lesson,  and  show  that  conspirators  were  not  to  be 
allowed  to  succeed  even  though  they  used  a  European 
prince  for  their  foil.  Nor  were  foreign  princes  hence- 
forth to  think  it  safe  to  lend  themselves  as  tools  for 
the  schemers  against  constitutional  government  in 
Mexico,  or  to  be  carried  away  with  the  glamour  of 
an  imagined  monarchy  in  the  "  Halls  of  the  Monte- 
zumas."  It  was  necessary  that  Emperors,  and  Em- 
perors' sons,  be  taught  that  they  could  not  join  with 
impunity  in  plots  against  the  independence  of  a 
nation.     Neither  high  admiration  for  the  virtues  of 


282  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

the  Archduke,  nor  pity  for  his  suiferings,  should 
blind  our  eyes  to  the  baneful  consequences  that  must 
have  ensued  from  the  suppression  of  independence 
and  nationality  in  Mexico.  It  was  a  disagreeable 
lesson  which  the  New  World  had  to  teach  the  Old, 
and  we  may  pity  rather  than  blame  the  master  who 
had  the  courage  to  teach  it. 

Diaz,  in  the  south,  had  gained  possession  of 
Puebla,  had  defeated  Marquez,  and  dispersed  the 
soldiers  of  the  latter.  He  had  followed  up  his  ad- 
vantage by  advancing  and  laying  siege  to  the  capital. 
He  was  joined  by  part  of  the  army  from  the  north, 
after  the  fall  of  Queretaro.  The  capital  surrendered 
on  the  twenty-first  of  June.  Marquez  hid  himself 
from  the  fury  of  the  citizens,  from  whom  he  had 
kept  all  knowledge  of  the  fall  of  Queretaro,  and  upon 
whom  he  had  inflicted  his  accustomed  cruelties.  He 
succeeded  in  escaping  to  Habana.  Vidaurri,  the 
traitor,  was  discovered  in  hiding,  and,  without  the 
formality  of  a  trial,  was  executed. 

With  the  indisputable  title  of  having  saved  the 
honor,  the  independence,  and  the  national  dignity 
of  Mexico,  Juarez  returned  to  the  City  of  Mexico  on 
the  fifth  of  July,  1867,  and  established  the  seat  of  his 
government  in  its  proper  place.  His  moderation  in 
dealing  with  the  conquered  enemies  of  the  govern- 
ment was  in  striking  contrast  with  the  conduct  of 
Conservatives  and  Reactionaries  whenever  they  had 
been  triumphant.  It  promised  well  for  constitutional 
government.  The  Imperialist  chiefs,  and  their  fol- 
lowers to  the  number  of  about  two  hundred,  were 
imprisoned  in  old  conventual  houses  until  they  could 
be  regularly  tried ;  but  only  nineteen  were  executed, 


THE   CONFLICT  283 

and  these  were  guilty  of  more  than  political  offences. 
Among  them  was  General  Tomas  O'Horan,  who  had 
proved  treacherous  at  the  time  of  Ocampo's  assassi- 
nation. There  was  but  little  confiscation  of  property, 
and  the  Constitutional  Government  directed  its  ener- 
gies toward  the  repair  of  the  evils  wrought  by  the 
war. 

Before  the  end  of  the  year,  the  body  of  Maximilian 
was  requested  on  behalf  of  his  family;  and  after  a 
delay,  in  which  it  was  necessary  for  the  New  World, 
through  Benito  Juarez,  the  Indian  President  of 
Mexico,  to  teach  another  lesson  to  the  Old  World,  — 
a  lesson  in  diplomacy  and  international  courtesy,  — 
the  body  was  delivered  to  an  Admiral  of  the  Austrian 
Navy,  and  was  taken  to  Vienna.  There  it  was  re- 
ceived with  Imperial  honors,  and  entombed  in  the 
vaults  of  the  Capuchin  Monastery. 


284  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 


CHAPTER   XIV 

THE  RESTORED  REPUBLIC  AND  THE  DEATH 
OF  JUAREZ 

BY  the  triumph  of  the  Republic  over  the  Em- 
pire, Benito  Juarez  reached  the  pinnacle  of 
his  fame,  and  vindicated  his  right  to  be  re- 
garded as  the  greatest  of  national  heroes  of  Mexico 
up  to  that  time.  His  name  was  already  a  household 
word  throughout  his  own  country,  and  was  well 
known  in  Europe.  Europeans,  however,  having  lent 
too  ready  an  ear  to  tales  related  for  political  effect  by 
Conservatives  and  Reactionaries,  and  having  been 
remiss  in  more  honest  efforts  to  learn  the  character 
of  the  man,  did  him  an  injustice  in  regarding  him  as 
an  Indian  savage,  "less  civilized  than  Theodore  of 
Abyssinia, "  and  as  quite  capable  of  devising  a  plot 
to  "exterminate  the  entire  white  population  of 
Mexico "  and  to  sell  a  part  of  the  territory  to  the 
United  States. 

His  return  to  the  capital,  in  1867,  after  an  absence 
of  five  years,  furnishes  an  opportunity  to  pay  some- 
what closer  attention  to  his  personality  than  has  been 
permitted  heretofore  in  the  course  of  this  history; 
and  without  some  knowledge  of  this  man's  person- 
ality it  is  impossible  to  understand  the  history  of  the 
struggle  for  constitutional  government  in  Mexico. 
He  was  now  in  the  sixty-second  year  of  his  age, 
though  in  his  personal  appearance  giving  little  indi- 
cation of  his  years,  as  was  characteristic  of  persons 


THE  RESTORED  REPUBLIC  285 

of  his  race.  A  somewhat  stoical  temperament,  a 
reserve  in  matters  of  public  importance,  coolness  and 
self-possession  in  the  face  of  danger,  patient  endur- 
ance of  adversity,  dignified  courtesy  at  all  times  — 
these  were  other  racial  characteristics  which  he  pos- 
sessed to  a  marked  degree. 

He  was  short  of  stature,  but  of  powerful  frame, 
like  most  of  the  Zapotecans,  and  had  small  hands  and 
feet.  His  was  a  "very  dark  complexioned  Indian 
face,  which  was  not  disfigured,  but  on  the  contrary 
made  more  interesting,  by  a  very  large  scar  across  it. 
He  had  black  piercing  eyes,  and  gave  the  impression 
of  a  man  reflecting  much  and  deliberating  long  and 
carefully  before  acting."  His  dress  was  that  of  the 
Mexican  student  or  professional  man  —  plain  black 
broadcloth,  unrelieved  by  any  official  or  military 
insignia.  This  placed  him  in  such  striking  contrast 
with  the  brilliant  dress  affected  by  other  Mexican 
officials,  who  were,  almost  to  a  man,  military  officers, 
and  with  the  foreign  diplomats  with  whom  he  came 
in  contact,  that  he  was  known  in  semi-diplomatic 
language  as  "The  President  in  the  Black  Coat." 
While  other  public  men  in  Mexico  had  military  titles, 
he  preferred  to  be  known  simply  as  Ciudadano  — 
Citizen. 

They  were  greatly  mistaken  who  supposed  him 
deficient  in  mental  acquirements.  He  was  able  to 
write  French  with  ease;  and  could  read  English, 
though  he  never  attempted  to  speak  it.  He  was 
well  read  in  Constitutional  law.  History  was  his 
favorite  study.  He  received  the  degree  of  Doctor 
of  Civil  Law  from  his  alma  matei\  and  the  honor  was 
worthily  conferred.  His  state  papers  were  models  of 
clearness  and  exact  style. 


286  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

The  conduct  of  the  Church  in  Mexico  had  been 
such  as  to  embitter  him  against  that  phase  of  religion 
which  manifests  itself  wholly  in  institutionalism. 
On  the  subject  of  personal  religion  he  maintained 
such  an  impenetrable  reserve  as  to  make  it  impos- 
sible to  say  to  what  extent  he  was  a  religious  man. 
He  was  doubtless  affected  by  the  reaction  from  the 
devoteeism,  at  one  time  so  prevalent  in  Mexico,  and 
represented  by  men  of  the  Santa  Anna  stamp,  —  a 
reaction  that  carried  many  of  the  public  men  into 
religious  indifferentism,  if  not  agnosticism.  Juarez 
was  excommunicated  by  the  Church  in  which  he  was 
born  and  for  whose  ministry  he  was  at  first  intended. 
He  never  sought  to  have  the  ban  of  excommunication 
removed.  He  instituted  in  Mexico  a  policy  of  reli- 
gious toleration;  and  not  unlikely,  could  the  influ- 
ences of  a  purer  form  of  Christianity  than  what  he 
saw  around  him  have  extended  to  him,  he  might 
have  sought  to  give  his  religion  some  expressive 
form.  His  attitude  toward  the  Church  of  Rome 
probably  gave  some  color  of  vengefulness  to  the 
measures  of  reform  which  he  advanced;  but  they 
were  in  reality  actuated  by  his  regard  for  the  rights 
of  man  and  the  welfare  of  the  State.  He  had  an 
innate  sense  of  justice,  and  desired  to  see  the  privi- 
leges which  the  Church  was  enjoying  at  the  people's 
cost  restored  to  the  people  to  whom  they  properly 
belonged.  Even  Maximilian,  devotee  of  the  Church 
though  he  was,  bore  frequent  testimony  to  the  wis- 
dom of  Juarez's  statesmanship  and  to  the  justice  of 
his  measures  in  regard  to  the  Church. 

Despite  the  Decree  of  January,  1862,  and  his 
refusal  to  interfere  to  suspend  the  law  in  the  case  of 
Maximilian,  and  despite  the  seeming  hardness  of  his 


THE  RESTORED  REPUBLIC  287 

Indian  nature,  Benito  Juarez  was  a  humane  man, 
rising  in  that  respect  far  above  the  average  of  Mexi- 
can public  men  of  his  time.  He  sought  to  prevent 
the  execution  of  the  death  sentence  upon  Robles, 
though  that  sentence  was  justified  under  the  circum- 
stances by  the  rules  of  war  in  any  civilized  land. 
There  is  small  doubt  that  he  would  have  been  glad 
of  Maximilian's  escape  could  it  have  been  effected 
without  any  dereliction  on  his  part.  Vengeance  was 
foreign  to  his  nature.  Bloodshed  was  no  part  of  his 
policy.  After  the  close  of  the  War  of  the  Reform, 
he  was  provoked  to  no  reprisals  by  the  constant 
cruelties  and  reckless  military  executions  which  had 
characterized  the  conduct  of  his  savage  opponents; 
and  there  is  no  act  of  wanton  bloodshed  or  popular 
vengeance  chargeable  upon  the  successful  party  in 
that  strug'Q:le.  He  was  the  author  of  more  than  one 
decree  of  amnesty  at  times  when  he  had  his  enemies 
in  his  power.  The  French  prisoners  taken  at  Puebla, 
in  1862,  were  sent  to  the  French  camp  under  safe 
conduct;  their  wounded  were  cared  for;  their  medals 
and  decorations  were  restored  to  them,  and  money 
was  provided  them  for  their  expenses.  While  in 
Paso  del  Norte,  and  his  government  was  at  its 
lowest  ebb,  Juarez,  who  was  in  other  matters  a  poor 
financier,  managed  to  despatch  more  than  twenty 
thousand  dollars  to  France  for  the  relief  of  the 
Mexican  prisoners  taken  to  that  country  by  the 
French  after  the  fall  of  Puebla  in  1863. 

Juarez  stood  out  conspicuously  in  the  history  of 
IMexico  as  a  thoroughly  honest  and  incorruptible 
man.  He  was  thus  placed  in  striking  contrast  with 
the  representatives  of  some  of  the  European  nations 
with  whom  he  was  called  upon  to  treat  in  1862.    Not 


288  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

the  least  difficult  of  the  tasks  which  confronted  him 
in  his  public  career,  and  in  his  efforts  to  establish 
constitutional  government,  was  that  of  maintaining 
a  high  standard  of  morality  in  his  administration. 
The  public  men  of  Mexico,  who  had  been  trained  in 
the  old  Spanish  school  of  politics,  or  in  the  later 
school  of  Santa  Anna,  were  accustomed  to  no  such 
distinctions  between  right  and  wrong  as  the  new 
Constitution  presupposed  or  as  Juarez  in  his  govern- 
ment made.  They  were  incapable  of  appreciating 
the  nice  distinctions  between  honesty  and  fraud  being 
constantly  made  by  their  Indian  President.  The 
robbing  of  the  conduda  at  Laguna  Seca,  in  1860, 
by  Degollado,  was  an  ordinary  transaction  in  the 
history  of  Mexico  —  quite  characteristic,  indeed,  of 
the  Zuloaga-Miramon-Marquez  regime.  But  it  was 
absolutely  unique  in  the  administration  of  Benito 
Juarez,  who  was  deeply  mortified  by  it  and  did  all 
in  his  power  to  make  apology  and  restitution. 

Juarez  was  a  patriot.  Love  of  country,  and  the 
desire  to  set  her  far  forward  toward  the  realization  of 
the  destiny  which  he  felt  to  be  hers  by  nature  and  by 
the  will  of  Providence,  actuated  his  whole  life  and 
engaged  all  his  energies  of  body  and  mind.  It  took 
strange  forms  sometimes,  —  as,  for  example,  at  the 
breaking  out  of  the  war  with  the  Interventionists, 
when  he  refused  all  offers  of  foreign  troops  for  his 
army,  declaring  that  he  would  invite  no  foreigner  to 
shoot  down  men  who,  though  in  rebellion  against 
Mexico,  were  yet  citizens  of  that  nation. 

Simple  in  his  tastes,  not  personally  ambitious, 
deprecating  pomp  or  display,  Benito  Juarez  gave  his 
life  to  the  effort  to  set  law  above  force  in  Mexico,  and 
served  his  country  in  honorable  poverty  in  the  Chief 


THE  RESTORED  REPUBLIC  289 

Magistracy  for  thirteen  years,  the  greater  part  of  the 
time  an  exile  from  his  capital. 

In  August,  1867,  Juarez  called  for  a  general  elec- 
tion for  Members  of  Congress  and  for  President. 
The  election  was  to  determine  the  propriety  of  his 
action  in  continuing  in  the  Presidency  in  Paso  del 
Norte  after  the  expiration  of  his  former  term  of  office. 
He  was  elected  over  Sebastian  Lerdo  de  Tejada  and 
Porfirio  Diaz,  and  his  action  at  Paso  del  Norte  was 
thereby  fully  sustained.  He  began  a  new  constitu- 
tional term  in  the  Presidency,  upon  his  installation 
in  that  office  in  December. 

It  might  seem  that  the  country  had  now  had  its 
fill  of  revolutions  and  pronunciamentos,  and  was 
ready  to  cooperate  with  the  President  in  an  effort  to 
maintain  peace  and  constitutional  government.  But 
the  administration  of  Juarez  was  much  disturbed  by 
revolutionary  attempts  made  by  those  who  were  still 
under  the  spell  of  the  ancient  Spanish  methods  of 
"practical  politics."  Santa  Anna  entered  the  Re- 
public with  no  very  honorable  intentions,  we  may  be 
sure.  He  was  taken  prisoner  and  sentenced  to  be 
shot,  but  was  allowed  to  escape,  and  returned  to  the 
place  of  his  former  exile.  Probably  the  measure  by 
which  Juarez  himself  would  have  preferred  that  his 
administration  of  the  government  from  1867  to  1871 
should  be  best  known  was  his  decree  of  General 
Amnesty.  Under  its  provisions,  even  Santa  Anna 
was  enabled  to  return  to  Mexico  and  spend  the  re- 
mainder of  his  days  at  the  capital. 

As  the  electoral  campaign  of  1871  approached, 
Juarez  was  advised  by  many  of  his  best  friends  to 
decline  a  reelection.     They  urged  that,  inestimable 

19 


290  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

as  was  the  value  of  the  services  he  had  rendered  in 
securing  the  Constitution  and  in  maintaining  the 
government  of  Mexico  thereunder  during  the  period 
of  stress  and  storm  from  1861  to  1867,  he  was  not 
a  pronounced  success  in  the  administration  of  the 
Presidency.  His  preeminent  quality  —  adherence  to 
a  great  principle  in  the  face  of  opposition  —  did  not 
especially  fit  him  for  the  task  of  building  upon  the 
foundation  he  had  laid.  He  was  blind  to  the  actual 
needs  of  the  nation,  it  was  said.  His  mind  was  giv- 
ing way,  some  alleged,  —  and  such  might  well  have 
been  the  case,  in  one  wlio  had  passed  through  all  that 
he  had  suffered.  He  remained,  however,  firm  in  the 
belief  that  his  presence  in  the  administration  was 
necessary  for  the  continuance  of  the  effort  to  maintain 
good  government  in  Mexico,  and  prevent  a  suspen- 
sion of  the  Constitution  which  had  been  established 
at  so  much  cost.  He  therefore  entered  as  a  candidate 
against  the  same  opponents  as  four  years  previously. 
The  contest  was  an  exciting  one,  and  his  election 
was  extremely  close.  Congress  met  on  the  sixteenth 
of  September,  and  it  was  not  until  the  twelfth  of 
October  that  Juarez  was  officially  declared  elected 
by  the  vote  of  a  plurality  of  the  States.  Pronun- 
ciamentos  followed,  but  Juarez,  with  indomitable 
energy,  confronted  every  attempt  to  overthrow  the 
Constitution  and  return  to  the  former  methods  of 
governing  the  country  by  force. 

On  the  seventeenth  day  of  July,  1872,  he  who  had 
never  before  known  more  than  a  day's  sickness,  was 
taken  suddenly  ill  with  heart  disease.  Near  mid- 
night on  the  eighteenth  he  died.  Two  days  later 
the  body  was  taken  to  the  National  Palace,  where  it 
lay  in  state,  under  guard  of  government  officials,  and 


THE  RESTORED  REPUBLIC  291 

was  visited  by  throngs  of  Mexicans  of  all  classes.  On 
the  twenty-second  it  was  borne  through  the  streets  of 
the  capital,  followed  by  five  thousand  people,  and  laid 
to  rest  in  the  Panteon  of  San  Fernando.  There,  over 
the  dust  of  Benito  Juarez,  now  rests  an  exquisitely 
sculptured  marble  group  representing  the  grief  of 
Mexico  over  the  death  of  her  great  national  hero. 
Thither,  on  the  eighteenth  of  July  every  year,  lovers 
of  constitutional  government  go  to  rehearse  the  story 
of  his  noble  and  devoted  life,  and  of  how  through  his 
efforts  the  Constitution  of  Mexico  came  into  being. 
And  it  is  well  that  this  annual  pilgrimage  be  made, 
and  this  commemoration  be  observed,  lest  in  the 
midst  of  the  prosperity  and  peace,  and  the  national 
greatness  to  which  they  have  recently  attained  and 
the  progress  they  are  now  making,  the  people  of 
Mexico  forget  how  much  of  all  this  is  due  to  the 
Zapotecan  who  spent  his  life  in  an  honorable  endeavor 
to  give  a  Constitution  and  Constitutional  Government 
to  a  previously  misgoverned  land. 


292  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 


CHAPTER   XV 

CONSTITUTIONAL   GOVERNMENT   BEARING 
FRUITS 

JUAREZ  had  not  been  inducted  into  office  in 
December,  1871,  without  a  formal  protest  from 
Porfirio  Diaz,  whose  action  in  regard  thereto  — 
taking  the  name  of  the  "Plan  de  Noria  "  —  might 
be  regarded  as  revolutionary  and  reactionary.  His 
proposition  was  to  avoid  threatened  evils  by  conven- 
ing an  Assembly  of  Notables,  and  to  reorganize  the 
government.  The  movement  collapsed  with  the  death 
of  Juarez,  who  was  immediately  succeeded  in  the 
Presidency  by  Sebastian  Lerdo  de  Tejada,  the  Presi- 
dent of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Justice,  and  constitu- 
tional successor  to  the  Presidency. 

Sebastian  Lerdo  de  Tejada,  like  his  brother  Miguel, 
was  a  scholar  and  a  gentleman.  He  had  long  been 
identified  with  the  struggle  for  constitutional  govern- 
ment, and  was,  as  we  have  seen,  one  of  the  "Im- 
maculates "  of  the  fugitive  government  of  Juarez. 
He  had  been  perhaps  unpleasantly  influential  in  that 
government  in  the  trying  time  when  it  had  the  con- 
demned Austrian  Archduke  to  dispose  of.  In  the 
subordinate  positions  he  had  occupied  under  Juarez, 
he  passed  readily  for  a  statesman  and  a  patriot.  But 
both  statesmanship  and  patriotism  failed  to  stand  the 
severe  test  to  which  his  sudden  call  to  the  Presidency 
subjected  them. 


CONSTITUTIONAL  GOVERNMENT  293 

Nor  was  he  the  man  to  lead  turbulent  Mexicans  on 
to  an  appreciation  of  the  blessings  they  might  enjoy 
under  constitutional  government.  He  was  somewhat 
under  the  spell  of  the  old  system.  He  sought  at 
first  to  maintain  the  policy  of  Juarez,  and  retained 
his  cabinet,  which  was  something  of  an  affront  to 
the  leaders  of  the  movement  under  the  "Plan  de 
Noria."  He  looked  upon  Porfirio  Diaz  from  the 
start  as  a  dangerous  rival,  and  had  him  proscribed. 
He  tried  to  strengthen  himself  in  the  affection  of  the 
people  by  a  Decree  of  General  Amnesty,  and  then 
ordered  a  special  election.  He  thus  began  a  consti- 
tutional term  of  four  years  in  the  Presidency,  in 
December,  1872. 

For  three  years  his  administration  was  tolerated, 
and  the  country  was  quiet  and  progressive.  His 
contribution  to  the  history  of  Constitutional  revision 
was  the  adoption  of  the  following  Reform  laws  as 
Amendments  to  the  Constitution  on  the  twenty-fifth 
of  September,  1873. 

"Article  I.  The  State  and  the  Church  are  independent 
of  one  another.  Congress  may  not  pass  laws  establish- 
ing or  prohibiting  any  religion. 

"  Art.  2.  Marriage  is  a  civil  contract.  This  and  the 
other  acts  relating  to  the  civil  state  of  persons  belong 
to  the  exclusive  jurisdiction  of  the  functionaries  and 
authorities  of  the  civil  order,  within  limits  provided  by 
laws,  and  they  shall  have  the  force  and  validity  which 
the  same  attribute  to  them. 

"Art.  3.  No  religious  institution  may  acquire  real 
estate  or  capital  fixed  upon  it,  with  the  single  exception 
established  in  Article  27  of  this  Constitution. 

"Art.  4.  The  simple  promise  to  speak  the  truth  and  to 
comply  with  the  obligations  which  have  been  incurred, 


294  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

shall  be  substituted  for  the  religious  oath,  with  its  effects 
and  penalties." 

And  to  Article  5  of  the  original  Constitution  were 
added  the  words: 

"The  law,  consequently,  may  not  recognize  monastic 
orders,  nor  may  it  permit  their  establishment,  whatever 
may  be  the  denomination  or  object  with  which  they  claim 
to  be  formed." 

The  immediate  effect  of  these  additions  to  the  Con- 
stitution was  the  suppression  of  the  last  remaining 
religious  order  in  Mexico  —  the  Sisters  of  Charity. 

It  was  evident,  as  the  expiration  of  his  term  of 
office  drew  near,  that  Lerdo  was  preparing  to  secure 
a  reelection.  It  was  alleged  also  that  his  administra- 
tion had  lost  the  confidence  of  the  Mexican  people. 
It  had  been  guilty  of  gross  abuses  under  certain  elec- 
tion laws,  the  passage  of  which  it  had  secured.  It 
had  subverted  the  Federal  system  and  reestablished 
Centralism.  It  was  charged  with  corruption  in  the 
granting  of  subsidies  and  franchises  to  railroads,  with 
reckless  financiering  in  refunding  the  English  debt, 
and  with  jeopardizing  the  territory  to  the  United 
States.  A  remedy  for  the  evils  thus  alleged  to  have 
been  brought  upon  the  country  was  not  to  be  secured 
by  pacific  means,  owing  to  the  outrageous  manner  in 
which  the  elections  were  conducted.  There  were 
hints,  also,  that  Lerdo  had  taken  at  least  the  sub- 
diaconate  in  the  Church,  and  was  hence  ineligible  to 
the  Presidency  under  Article  77  of  the  Constitution, 
which  says  that  the  President  shall  "  not  belong  to 
the  ecclesiastical  order." 

The  days  of  "  Plans "  and  pronunciamentos  had 
not  fully  passed;   for  in  January,  1876,  the  "Plan 


CONSTITUTIONAL  GOVERNMENT  295 

de  Tuxtepec  "  was  put  forth  in  the  State  of  Oaxaca, 
and  by  midsummer  the  whole  country  was  again  in  a 
state  of  revolution.  General  Porfirio  Diaz  appeared 
upon  the  scene  early  in  April,  emerging  from  a  place 
of  exile  not  far  from  the  Rio  Grande.  The  last  of 
the  "Plans,"  as  indorsed  by  him,  furnishes  a  fair 
specimen  of  this  class  of  pronunciamentos,  which  has 
played  such  a  prominent  part  in  the  history  of  Mexico. 
It  was  as  follows : 

"Article  1.  The  Supreme  law  of  the  Republic  shall  be 
the  Constitution  of  1857,  the  Reform  act  promulgated 
September  25,  1873,  and  the  Law  of  December  14,  1874. 

"Art.  2.  The  same  law  making  the  President  and 
Governors  of  the  States  ineligible  to  the  same  position 
will  be  maintained,  this  being  a  measure  of  constitutional 
reform  which  we  agree  to  sustain  by  all  the  legal  means 
afforded  to  us  by  the  Constitution. 

"Art.  3.  We  repudiate  Don  Sebastian  Lerdo  de  Tejada 
as  President  of  the  Republic,  and  all  those  persons 
employed  by  him  or  occupying  positions  under  him, 
or  elected  at  the  elections  of  July,  1875. 

"Art.  4.  All  State  Governments  adhering  to  this  Plan 
will  be  recognized ;  those  refusing  to  do  so  will  be  placed 
imder  a  provisional  government  to  be  appointed  by  the 
executive  officer  of  the  army. 

"Art.  5.  The  election  of  the  officers  of  the  Union  will 
be  held  two  months  after  the  capture  of  the  capital  of  the 
Republic,  at  such  places  as  the  Executive  shall  appoint 
one  month  after  the  capture,  and  will  be  held  under  the 
election  laws  of  February  12,  1857,  and  October  23, 
1872.  At  the  time  appointed  for  the  interior  elections, 
Congress  shall  assemble,  and  shall  proceed  immediately 
to  carry  out  the  provisions  of  Article  51  of  the  first-men- 
tioned laws,  in  order  that  the  constitutional  President  of 
the  Republic  may  enter  upon  the  discharge  of  the  func- 


296  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

tions  of  bis  office,  and  that  the  supreme  tribunal  may  be 
installed. 

"Art.  6.  The  executive  powers,  except  those  which 
are  purely  administrative,  will  be  conferred  during  the 
elections  upon  the  President  of  the  Supreme  Court  of 
Justice,  or  upon  the  magistrate  discharging  the  duties  of 
his  office,  provided  they  shall  have  accepted  in  all  their 
parts  and  provisions  the  conditions  of  this  Plan,  and 
shall  have  signified  their  said  acceptance  by  publishing 
the  same  in  the  public  press  within  one  month  from  the 
day  the  said  Plan  shall  have  been  published  in  the  news- 
papers of  the  capital.  The  neglect  or  refusal  on  the  part 
of  the  functionary  will  invest  the  chief  military  officer  of 
that  State  with  the  powers  of  chief  executive." 

The  situation  was  complicated  by  a  pronunciamento 
issued  by  Iglesias,  President  of  the  Supreme  Court 
of  Justice,  whose  argument  was  that  if  Lerdo  were 
not  President  he  was  his  constitutional  successor. 
Iglesias  attempted  to  establish  his  government  in 
Guanajuato,  and  it  seemed  for  a  time  that  Mexico 
had  gone  back  to  the  old  unhappy  days  of  rival  parties 
and  revolutions.  The  three  new  parties  received  the 
names  of  "Lerdistas,"  "  Porfiristas, "  and  "Iglesistas," 
respectively. 

Diaz  took  command  of  the  revolutionary  army,  and 
pursued  an  energetic  and  finally  successful  campaign. 
The  decisive  battle  was  fought  at  Tecoac,  in  the 
autumn  of  1876,  and  the  victory  was  with  the 
"  Porfiristas."  The  "  Iglesistas  "  promptly  collapsed. 
Lerdo  fled  to  the  United  States,  taking  with  him 
some  of  the  public  funds.  General  Diaz  advanced 
to  the  capital  in  November,  and  was  proclaimed 
Provisional  President.  The  following  April  he  was 
elected    "  Constitutional "    President,    and    was    so 


J 


CONSTITUTIONAL  GOVERNMENT  297 

formally  declared  by  Congress  for  a  term  ending 
November  30,  1880. 

There  is,  of  course,  much  reasonable  doubt  as  to 
the  legality  of  the  steps  by  which  the  Presidency  of 
General  Porfirio  Diaz  was  brought  about.  The  career 
of  this  wonderful  man,  who  was  now  at  the  head  of 
affairs,  reflects  much  of  the  history  of  his  country  at 
the  time  the  struggle  for  constitutional  government 
was  going  on,  and  explains  many  of  the  strange  fea- 
tures of  a  movement  by  which  a  man  attaining  to 
power  by  means  that  can  only  be  called  unconsti- 
tutional, and  subversive  of  all  law,  should  finally 
establish  constitutional  government  in  his  land. 

Diaz  was  a  Oaxacan,  born  on  the  anniversary  of 
the  Grito  de  Dolores,  in  1830.  Through  his  mother 
he  derived  some  Indian  blood.  Like  many  of  his 
time,  he  was  at  first  intended  for  the  Church ;  but  at 
an  early  age  he  volunteered  for  service  in  the  war 
with  the  United  States,  though  he  was  not  sent  to 
the  front.  He  then  decided  upon  a  career  at  the 
bar,  took  a  four  years'  course  at  the  Institute  with 
which  Juarez  was  connected,  and,  entering  the  law- 
office  of  Juarez,  became  Professor  of  Roman  Law  in 
his  alma  mater.  In  war  and  politics,  he  took  lessons 
under  Herrera  in  the  revolt  against  Santa  Anna.  He 
received  honorable  wounds  on  the  side  of  good  gov- 
ernment in  the  little  wars  waged  in  the  neighborhood 
of  Oaxaca,  until  he  got  a  Lieutenant-Colonelcy,  and 
finally  came  to  be  Chief  of  a  Brigade  in  the  War  of 
the  Reform.  The  bare  record  of  his  military  exploits, 
wounds,  captures,  and  escapes,  in  the  War  of  the 
Reform  and  in  that  of  the  Intervention,  would  read 
like  a  romance. 

As  the  Empire  fell  to  pieces,  the  effort  was  twice 


298  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

made  by  the  Imperialists  to  make  Diaz  President. 
But  Diaz  was  loyal  to  the  Republic  as  established 
under  the  Constitution  of  1857,  and  to  his  friend  and 
early  benefactor  Benito  Juarez.  After  the  fall  of 
Queretaro  he  secured  the  surrender  of  the  City  of 
Mexico,  and  prepared  for  the  return  of  Juarez  to  his 
capital.  He  then  retired  to  his  estate  of  "La  Noria," 
in  the  State  of  Oaxaca.  The  "  Progresistas  "  made 
him  their  candidate  for  the  Presidency,  against 
Juarez,  in  1867;  but  he  made  little  effort  on  behalf 
of  his  election.  When,  however,  Juarez  was  re- 
elected in  1871,  and  showed  a  laxity  about  the 
reforms  which  he  had  promised  to  institute,  and 
gave  further  evidence  of  failing  powers,  Diaz  pro- 
tested in  the  famous  pronunciamento,  or  "  Plan  de 
Noria."  Friendly  as  he  was  with  Juarez,  he  placed 
the  principles  for  which  Juarez  stood  before  Juarez 
himself. 

It  would  have  been  remarkable  indeed  if,  when  the 
"  Plan  de  Tuxtepec  "  was  proclaimed,  it  had  failed 
to  appeal  to  Porfirio  Diaz.  It  would  have  been 
remarkable  indeed  if  such  a  man  had  failed  to  see,  in 
the  course  events  were  taking,  the  great  opportunity 
for  Mexico  to  establish  constitutional  government 
permanently.  He  was  by  training  a  military  strate- 
gist. His  mind  was  trained  to  seek  ends,  irrespective 
of  the  means  employed.  To  secure  the  vantage-point 
from  which  to  render  the  Constitution  operative  in 
the  government  of  Mexico,  no  other  course  was  open 
to  Diaz  and  his  followers  than  that  which  was  suc- 
cessfully pursued  under  the  "Plan  de  Tuxtepec." 

It  may  be  that  none  of  these  considerations  were  in 
the  mind  of  Diaz  and  his  followers  at  the  time,  or 
until  long  subsequently;  and  in  such  a  case  the  his- 


CONSTITUTIONAL  GOVERNMENT  299 

tory  of  Mexico  is  by  no  means  unique.  In  other 
nations,  the  path  to  independence  and  to  constitu- 
tional government  has  led  through  acts  that  were  in 
themselves  unconstitutional.  And  Mexico's  training 
for  national  life  had  not  been  such  as  to  prepare 
her  to  take  in  every  case  a  course  of  unimpeachable 
legality. 

Whether  or  not  these  ideas  were  in  the  minds  of 
Diaz  and  his  followers  before  the  success  of  the  "  Plan 
de  Tuxtepec,"  it  is  obvious  that,  immediately  after 
the  establishment  of  General  Diaz  in  the  Presidency 
by  means  of  a  constitutional  election,  his  unquestioned 
purpose  was  to  confine  every  act  of  the  government 
within  the  limits  of  the  Constitution  of  1857.  It  was 
a  slow  and  tedious  process  by  which  the  nation  and 
those  employed  in  the  national  government  were  to 
be  trained  up  to  such  a  course.  Nor  is  it  to  be 
doubted  or  denied  that  the  earlier  administration  of 
Diaz  was  full  of  mistakes.  But  nevertheless  Mexico 
began  forthwith  to  develop  all  the  resources  of  a 
great  and  powerful  nation. 

Soon  the  time  came  to  furnish  proofs  of  the  inten- 
tion of  the  new  administration  to  maintain  the  Consti- 
tution. In  accordance  with  the  "Plan  de  Tuxtepec," 
the  Constitution  was  amended  to  inhibit  the  President 
from  holding  office  for  consecutive  terms.  When, 
in  1880,  the  term  for  which  Diaz  had  been  elected 
expired,  he  steadfastly  adhered  to  his  purpose  of 
abiding  by  the  constitutional  provision  which  ren- 
dered him  ineligible  for  a  succeeding  term.  In  vain 
was  it  pleaded  that  there  were  no  others  who  could 
be  trusted  to  carry  out  his  schemes  for  constitutional 
government;  he  declined  to  allow  his  name  to  be 
exploited  as  a  candidate  for  the  office.     There  were 


300  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

no  less  than  eight  presidential  candidates  in  the 
field;  and  of  these,  General  Manuel  Gonzalez  —  by 
no  means  the  best  of  the  eight  — ■  was  constitutionally 
elected. 

Gonzalez  was  not  a  man  of  the  new  type  of  states- 
man needed  in  Mexico,  and  his  administration  was  in 
many  respects  a  reaction  from  the  high  principles 
which  had  begun  to  prevail.  The  influence  of  Por- 
firio  Diaz  was  all  that  kept  it  from  reverting  to  the 
days  of  Santa  Anna.  Diaz  was  for  a  time  a  member 
of  the  cabinet  of  Gonzalez,  at  another  time  Senator 
from  the  State  of  Morelos,  and  at  another  time  Gov- 
eriior  of  Oaxaca.  In  each  capacity  he  sought  the 
material  welfare  of  Mexico.  The  friendly  relations 
cultivated  with  the  United  States,  and  the  investment 
of  American  capital  in  railroads  and  other  enterprises 
in  Mexico,  went  on  with  success,  even  though  the 
moral  tone  of  the  government  seemed  retrogressive. 

In  1884,  Diaz  was,  with  practical  unanimity,  re- 
elected President.  But  ere  the  administration  of 
Gonzalez  gave  place  to  that  of  Diaz  under  the  Con- 
stitution, an  incident  occurred  which,  while  it  seemed 
for  a  time  about  to  engulf  the  country  in  revolution, 
gave  signs  of  a  regeneration,  and  that  the  lessons  of 
the  Constitution  were  being  learned. 

Under  the  spell  of  the  old  system  of  politics,  a 
measure  was  proposed  by  which  the  English  debt  was 
to  be  refunded.  The  measure  was  in  most  particulars 
acceptable  to  all  persons  interested,  but  there  were 
certain  features  which  were  clearly  in  the  category 
of  contracts  made  by  the  government  in  the  most 
corrupt  periods  of  its  existence.  It  was  evidence 
of  an  awakened  national  conscience  that  the  measure 
met  with  opposition  when  it  came  up  for  final  passage 


CONSTITUTIONAL  GOVERNMENT  301 

in  the  Mexican  Congress.  And  it  was  a  healthy  sign 
that  the  insurrection  that  resulted  was  led  by  the 
students  of  the  University.  The  postponement  of 
the  measure  until  after  the  inauguration  of  Diaz  was 
celebrated  as  a  triumph  for  Los  Estudiantes^  who 
obtained  credit  for  the  success  of  their  opposition. 
Thenceforth  a  new  element  was  introduced  into 
national  affairs.  Indifferentism  in  the  citizens  had 
been  an  evil  with  which  the  advocates  of  constitu- 
tional reform  in  Mexico  had  always  to  contend. 
Now  there  was  evidence  that  the  young  citizens  were 
taking  an  interest,  —  that  there  were  young  men  in 
course  of  training  for  an  intelligent  participation  in 
national  affairs. 

The  second  constitutional  term  of  President  Diaz 
was  inaugurated  with  financial  reforms  which  were 
in  themselves  an  earnest  of  greater  things  to  come. 
It  was  not  very  long  before  the  finances  of  Mexico 
were  placed  upon  a  firm  and  altogether  satisfactory 
basis,  and  the  credit  of  the  nation  was  recognized  in 
all  the  exchanges  of  Europe.  Alcabalas  (local  duties 
which  goods  of  all  descriptions  had  to  pay  at  state  and 
city  boundaries),  a  long  surviving  relic  of  Spanish 
domination,  were  abolished.  The  whole  system  of 
tariff  was  revised  and  improved.  Home  industries 
were  encouraged,  and  the  railroad  and  telegraph  lines, 
begun  in  a  feeble  way  in  the  time  of  Juarez,  were 
extended  until  distances  were  annihilated  in  Mexico 
as  in  all  parts  of  the  United  States. 

Immense  sums  were  spent  upon  public  improve- 
ments. The  improvements  made  in  the  harbor  at 
Tampico  increased  the  facilities  for  Mexico's  foreign 
trade.  The  drainage  canal,  intended  to  solve  the 
problem   of  protecting  the  Valley  of   Mexico  from 


302  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

those  inundations  with  which  the  Spaniards  had 
begun  to  struggle  three  centuries  before,  was  begun 
and  carried  to  a  successful  termination.  The  agri- 
cultural resources  of  the  country  were  developed,  and 
manufactures  were  encouraged.  The  prison  system 
was  improved,  and  reformatories  have  already  taken 
the  place  of  what  were  in  former  times  nests  of  crime 
and  harbors  for  the  criminal  classes.  In  the  re- 
organization of  the  army,  the  matter  was  managed 
with  such  statesmanship  that  the  country  was  rid  of 
the  banditti,  who  now  find  it  to  their  interests  to 
serve  the  country  as  soldiers,  with  the  prospect  of 
promotion,  rather  than  to  pursue  their  nefarious  call- 
ing as  outcasts  from  society. 

But  the  greatest  result  was  attained  in  the  stimulus 
given  to  education.  A  system  of  public  schools  has 
been  built  up  which  is  surpassed  by  nothing  else- 
where in  the  world.  It  fixes  a  minimum  of  instruc- 
tion, beyond  which  anything  that  is  useful  and 
honorable  may  be  taught. 

It  was  not  at  once  that  all  this  was  accomplished ; 
and  it  is,  in  fact,  only  in  process  of  accomplishment 
at  the  present  time.  President  Diaz  learned,  and 
the  country  learned  with  him  in  1888,  that  in  one 
important  particular  the  "Plan  de  Tuxtepec"  pro- 
j)osed  a  political  principle  that  was  very  defective, 
and  that  the  changes  it  had  wrought  in  the  Consti- 
tution of  1857  were  far  from  desirable.  Rotation  in 
office  might  be  in  theory  advisable  in  a  country  which 
was  likely  to  be  governed  by  time-serving  politicians, 
and  where  politicians  are  not  educated  up  to  a  sense 
of  their  duty  and  responsibility;  but  when  reforms 
are  to  be  instituted,  and  a  nation  is  to  be  regenerated, 
time  is  required,  and  the  work  is  not  benefited  by  a 


CONSTITUTIONAL  GOVERNMENT  303 

change  of  administration  and  of  policy  every  four 
years.  And  for  a  nation  such  as  Mexico  to  learn 
self-government  thoroughly,  a  long  paternalism  is 
necessary.  Juarez  had  some  such  idea,  but  had  been 
unable  to  put  it  in  practice. 

So,  when  the  second  constitutional  term  for  which 
Porfirio  Diaz  had  been  elected  President  drew  toward 
its  close,  and  thoughtful  men  who  were  beginning  to 
have  a  high  regard  for  the  needs  of  the  nation  cast 
about  them  as  to  who  could  be  found  to  take  his  place 
and  carry  out  his  work  of  reform,  it  was  generally 
conceded  that  it  would  be  far  easier  to  amend  the 
Constitution  by  eliminating  the  clause,  added  after 
the  "Plan  de  Tuxtepec,"  making  the  President  in- 
eligible for  two  terms  in  succession,  and  leave  the 
Constitution  as  it  was  adopted  in  1857.  And  though 
good-natured  critics  called  attention  to  what  they 
chose  to  call  the  inconsistency  of  a  man's  consenting 
to  this  amendment  of  the  Constitution  after  he  had 
come  to  power  upon  a  "platform"  or  "plan"  ex- 
pressly declaring  against  such  a  succession  in  office, 
yet  nearly  all  are  ready  to  recognize  that  an  effort  to 
be  precisely  "  consistent "  about  details  which  stand 
in  the  way  of  progress  may  sometimes  amount  to 
stubbornness. 

So  the  Constitution  was  amended,  in  1888,  to  allow 
a  President  tAVO  consecutive  terms;  and  in  1892  all 
limitations  were  abolished  and  the  Constitution  was 
made  to  conform  in  that  regard  with  the  instrument 
which  was  adopted  in  1857,  through  the  efforts  of 
Ocampo,  Gomez  Farias,  Miguel  Lerdo  de  Tejada, 
and  Benito  Juarez.  In  1892,  in  1896,  and  again  in 
1900,  there  was  no  one  to  run  against  Porfirio  Diaz 
for  the  Presidency  of  Mexico.     Nor  is  it  likely  that 


304  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

any  one  will  be  found  to  compete  with  him  for  the 
Presidential  office,  or  for  his  place  in  the  popular 
regard,  until  he  concludes  that  his  work  of  reform  is 
in  such  shape  that  it  can  be  safely  committed  to  the 
hands  of  another,  or  until  death  shall  close  one  of 
the  most  remarkable  careers  of  recent  times.  And 
it  is  to  be  greatly  hoped  that  whoever  then  succeeds 
him  will  be  a  man  who  has  learned,  by  close  obser- 
vation of  the  lives  of  Juarez  and  Diaz,  and  of  the 
course  of  Mexican  history  for  the  past  half-century, 
what  blessings  are  to  be  obtained  by  means  of  a  true 
Constitutional  Government. 

THE   END 


APPENDIX  A  305 


APPENDIX   A 

CHRONOLOGICAL   SUMMARY   OF 

PRINCIPAL   EVENTS 

RELATED   TO   MEXICAN   HISTORY 

1469.  Marriage  of  Ferdinand  and  Isabella,  union  of  Aragon 
and  Castile,  and  virtual  beginning  of  Spanish  national 
history. 

1481.    Inquisition  established  at  Sevilla. 

1492.  The  Great  Voyage  of  Discovery. 

1493.  The  Papal  Bulls  of  Partition. 

1501.    Papal  Bull  entitling  Spanish  sovereigns  to  tithes  in  the 

colonies. 
1503.    Casa  de  Contratacion  established. 
1508.    Papal  Bull  giving  to  King  of  Spain  right  of  collation  to 

benefices  in  the  colonies. 
1511.    Consejo  de  las  Indias  instituted  by  Ferdinand. 

1518.  Expedition  of  Grijalva  to  Yucatan. 

1519.  Carlos  I.  of  Spain  elected  Emperor  and  becomes  Charles  V. 

of  Germany.     Cortes  lands  in  Mexico. 

1520.  Retreat  of  Cortes  from  Tenochtitlan. 

1521.  Tenochtitlan  captured  and  destroyed  by  Cortes  and  vir- 

tual subjugation  of  Mexico. 

1522.  Cortes  Governor,  Captain-General,  and  Chief  Justice  of 

New  Spain. 

1523.  Pedro  de  Alvarado  sent  by  Cortes  to  Guatemala. 

1524.  Consejo  de  las  Indias  perfected  by  Charles  V.     Arrival 

in  Mexico  of  the  Franciscan  "Twelve  Apostles." 

1527.  Bishopric    of    Mexico    created.     Juan    de    Zumarraga, 

Bishop. 

1528.  First  Audiencia  in  New  Spain. 

1529.  Second  Audiencia  in  New  Spain. 

20 


306  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

1530.  "  La  Puebla  de  los  Angeles  "  founded  in  Mexico. 

1531.  Alleged  apparition  of  the  Virgin  of  Guadalupe  in  Mexico. 

1534.  Four  Bishoprics  created  in  New  Spain. 

1535.  Antonio  de  Mendoza,  first  Viceroy  of  New  Spain.     First 

printing-press  and  first  book  published  in  the  New 
World,  in  Mexico.  Peninsula  of  Lower  California 
discovered. 

1536.  Cabeza  de  Vaca  and  three  companions,  survivors  of  the 

Narvaez  expedition  of  1528,  meet  Spanish  explorers  in 
northern  Mexico. 

1540.  Expedition  of  Francisco  Vasquez  de  Coronado  in  search 

of  the  "  Seven  Cities  of  Cibola." 

1541.  Guadalajara  founded  in  New  Spain. 

1542.  Death  of  De  Soto  on  the  Mississippi.     Valladolid  (now 

Morelia)  founded  in  New  Spain. 

1544.  Las  Casas  Bishop  of  Chiapas  in  Mexico. 

1545.  Archbishopric  of  Mexico  created. 

1550.  Mendoza    promoted   from  vireinate  of   New   Spain   to 

that  of  Peru.  Luis  de  Velasco,  "the  Emancipator," 
Viceroy  of  New  Spain. 

1551.  Alonso  de  Montufar,  Archbishop  of  Mexico. 

1552.  Santa  Hermandad  established  in  New  Spain. 

1553.  University  of  Mexico  founded. 

1556.  Abdication  of  Carlos  I.  and  accession  of  Felipe  II. 

1563.  City  of  Durango  founded  in  New  Spain. 

1566.  Gaston  de  Peralta,  Viceroy. 

1568.  Martin   de    Enriques   de    Almanza,    "the    Inquisitor," 
Viceroy. 

1571.  Inquisition  established  in  the  New  World. 

1572.  Arrival  of  the  Jesuits  in  Mexico. 
1574.  First  Auto-de-fd  in  Mexico. 

1.577.    Drake  lands  at  Bodega  Bay  and  takes  possession  of  Cali- 
fornia for  England  calling  it  "  New  Albion." 
1580.    Lorenzo  Juarez  de  Mendoza,  Viceroy. 

1584.  Pedro   Moya  de  Contreras  Archbishop  of  Mexico  and 

Viceroy. 

1585.  Humana's  expedition  into  New  Mexico  results  in  the 

settlement  of  Paso   del   Norte.     Alvaro  Manrique  de 
Zufiiga,  Viceroy. 
1590.    Luis  de  Velasco,  son  of  "  the  Emancipator,"  Marquis  of 
Salinas,  Viceroy. 


APPENDIX  A  307 

1595.  Gaspar  de  Zuniga  y  Acevedo,  Count  of  Monterey,  Viceroy. 

One  of  the  dates  assigned  for  the  foundation  of  Santa 
Fe,  New  Mexico. 

1596.  Expedition    of    Sebastian   Viscayno   along    the    Pacific 

coast. 
1598.    Death  of  Felipe  II.  and  accession  of  Felipe  III.     First 
Spanish  settlement  in  New  Mexico  by  Juan  de  Oiiate. 

1602.  Second  expedition  along  the  Pacific  coast  reaches  point 

two  degrees  north   of   Cape   Mendocino  on   coast  of 
California. 

1603.  Juan  de  Mendoza  y  Luna,  Marquis  of  Montes  Claros, 

Viceroy. 

1607.  Velasco,  jNIarquis  of  Salinas,  Viceroy  a  second  time. 

1608.  Probable  date  of  founding  of  Santa  Fe. 

1612.  Diego  Fernandez  de  Cordova,  Marquis  of  Guadalcazar, 
Viceroy. 

1621.  Diego  Carrillo  Mendoza  y  Pimentel,  Marquis  of  Gelves, 
Viceroy. 

1624.    Rodrigo  Pacheco  Osorio,  Viceroy. 

1635.    Lope  Diaz  de  Armendariz,  Viceroy. 

1640.    Diego  Lopez  Pacheco  Cabrero  y  Bobadillo,  Viceroy. 

1642.  Juan  de  Palafox  y  Mendoza,  Bishop  of  Puebla  and  Royal 
Visitor,  Viceroy  for  about  five  months  and  then  suc- 
ceeded by  Garcia  Sarmiento  Sotomayor,  Count  of 
Salvatierra. 

1648.  Marcos  Lopez  de  Torres  y  Rueda,  Bishop  of  Yucatan, 
Viceroy. 

1650.   Luis  Enriques  de  Guzman,  Count  of  Alba  Liste,  Viceroy. 

1653.    Francisco  Fernandez  de  la  Cueva,  Viceroy. 

1660.    Juan  de  Leiva  y  de  la  Cerda,  Viceroy. 

1664.  Diego   Osorio    Escobar  y   Llamas,   Bishop    of    Puebla, 

Viceroy  for   a  few  months   and    then   succeeded  by 
Antonio  Sebastian  de  Toledo. 

1665.  Death  of  Felipe  II.  and  accession  of  Carlos  II. 

1673.  Pedro  NuQo  Colon  de  Portugal  y  Castro,  Viceroy  for 
six  days  and  then  succeeded  by  Fray  Payo  de  Rivera, 
Archbishop  of  Mexico,  who  proves  one  of  the  best  of 
Viceroys. 

1680.    Tomas  Antonio  Manrique  de  la  Cerda,  Viceroy. 

1686.  Melchor  Portocarrerro  Laso  de  la  Vega,  Count  of  Mon- 
clova.  Viceroy. 


308  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

1688.    Gaspar  de  la  Cerda  Sandoval  Silva  y  Mendoza,  Viceroy. 

1696.  Juan  de  Ortega  Montaiiez,  Bishop  of  Michoacan,  Viceroy, 
quickly  succeeded  by  Jose  Sarmiento  Valladares,  Count 
of  Moctezuma  (more  properly  Moteczuma), 

1700.  Death  of  Carlos  II.,  end  of  Hapsburg  line  of  Spanish 

Kings;  accession  of  Felipe  V.  and  beginning  of  the 
Borbon  dynasty. 

1701.  Montaiiez,  Bishop  of  Michoacan,  Viceroy  a  second  time, 

succeeded  in  a  few  months  by  Fernandez  de  la  Cuevas 

Enriques. 
1711.    Fernando  Alencastro  Noi'ona  y  Silva,  Viceroy. 
1716.    Baltasar  de    Zuiiiga    Guzman    Sotomayor    y  Mendoza, 

Viceroy. 
1718.    Casa  de  Contracion  transferred  to  Cadiz. 
1722.    Juan  de  Acuna,  Viceroy. 
1734.    Juan  Antonio  de  Vizarron  y  Eguiarreta,  Archbishop  of 

Mexico,  Viceroy. 

1740.  Pedro  de  Castro  Figueroa  y  Salazar,  Viceroy. 

1741.  Jose  Antonio  Villasenor  y  Sanchez,  "  Cosmographer  of 

New  Spain." 

1742.  Pedro  Cebrian  y  Agustin,  Viceroy. 

1746.  Death  of  Felipe  V.  and  accession  of  Fernando  VI.    Juan 

Francisco  de  Guemes  y  Horcasitas,  Viceroy. 

1747.  City  of  Mexico  reported  by  Villasenor,  the  "  Cosmogra- 

pher," to  contain  fifty  thousand  families  of  Europeans 
and  Creoles,  forty  thousand  Meztizos,  mixed  castes  and 
negroes,  and  eight  thousand  Indians. 
1755.    Agustin  de  Ahumada  y  Villalon,  Viceroy. 

1759.  Death  of  Fernando  VI.  and  accession  of  Carlos  III. 

1760.  Francisco   Cajigal   de   la   Vega,   ex-Governor  of   Cuba, 

Viceroy  for  a  short  time,  succeeded  by  Joaquin  de 
Monserrat. 
1763.    Louisiana  acquired  by  Spain. 

1766.  Carlos  Francisco  de  Croix,  Viceroy, 

1767.  Expulsion  of  Jesuits  from  Spain  and  Spanish  America. 
1771.    Antonio  Maria  de  Bucareli  y  Ursua,  Viceroy;  the  best 

of  rulers  in  New  Spain, 
1779.   Martin  de  Mayorga,  Governor  of   Guatemala,  becomes 

Viceroy. 
1783.   Matias  de  Galvez,  "the  Diligent,"  Viceroy. 
1785.    Bernardo  de  Galvez,  Viceroy. 


APPENDIX  A  309 

1787.  Alonso  Nunez  de  Haro  y  Peralta,  Archbishop  of  Mexico, 

Viceroy  for  a  few  months;  succeeded  by  Manuel  An- 
tonio Flores,  Governor  of  Bogota. 

1788.  Death  of  Carlos  III.  and  accession  of  Carlos  IV. 

1789.  Juan  Vicente  Pacheco  de  Fadilla,  Viceroy. 
1794.    Miguel  de  la  Grua  Talamanca,  Viceroy. 

1798.  Miguel  Jose  de  Azanza,  "  the  Bonapartist,"  Viceroy. 

1800.  Felix  Berenguer  de  ]\Iarquina,  Viceroy. 

1801.  Retrocession  to  France  of  Louisiana  by  secret  treaty. 
1803.  Jose  de  Iturrigaray,  "  the  Monarchist,"  Viceroy. 

1808.  Intervention  of  Napoleon  Bonaparte  in  Spanish  affairs. 

Revolution  in  Spain.  Abdication  of  Carlos  IV.  and 
accession  of  Fernando  VII.  Joseph  Bonaparte  usurps 
the  throne.  National  revolt  and  establishment  of 
Juntas.  English  Alliance  and  Peninsula  Wax.  Iturri- 
garay deposed  and  Pedro  Garibay,  "  the  Revolutionist," 
made  Viceroy  ad  interim. 

1809.  Francisco  Javier  Lizana,  Archbishop  of  Mexico,  Viceroy. 

1810.  Pedro  Catani,  President  of  Audiencia,  Viceroy  ad  interim, 

succeeded  by  Francisco  Javier  Venegas.  Grito  de 
Dolores  (September  16). 

1811.  Execution  of  Hidalgo  and  other  Revolutionists. 

1812.  Liberal  Constitution  in  Spain. 

1813.  Congress  of  Chilpantzingo.    Mexican  Declaration  of  In- 

dependence and  first  Mexican  Constitution. 

1814.  Release  of  Fernando  VII.  from  captivity.     Absolutism 

reestablished  in  Spain. 

1815.  Capture  and  execution  of  Jose  Maria  Morelos,  —  "  the  last 

victim  of  the  Inquisition." 

1816.  Juan  Ruiz  de  Apodaca,  "the  Unfortunate,"  Viceroy. 

1817.  Freebooting  expedition  of  Mina  into  Mexico. 

1820.  Restoration  of  Constitution  of  1812  in  Spain.     Inquisi- 

tion finally  abolished.  Vicente  Guerrero  becomes 
formidable  Independent  chief  in  Mexico. 

1821.  Francisco  de  Novella,  Viceroy  ad  interim.     Plan  de  Iguala 

and  Treaty  of  Cordoba.  Independence  of  Mexico, 
Iturbide,  the  Liberator.  Regency  installed.  Juan 
O'Donoju,  the  last  of  the  Viceroys. 

1822.  Mexican   Congress  organized.     Borbonista,   Republican 

and  Iturbidista  political  parties  formed.  Iturbide, 
Emperor. 


310  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

1823.  Abdication  of  Iturbide  and  collapse  of  the  First  Mexican 

Empire.  Centralist  and  Federalist  parties  formed. 
Monroe  Doctrine  proclaimed. 

1824.  Federal  Constitution  proclaimed.    Mexican  United  States 

organized.     Guadalupe  Victoria,  President. 

1828.  Yorkino  and  Escoces  party  names  become  prominent. 

Rise  of  High  Liberal  or  Radical,  Conservative  and 
Moderate  parties.  Election  of  Manuel  Gomez  Pedraza 
as  President. 

1829.  Vicente  Guerrero  proclaimed   President.     Spain's  effort 

to  reclaim  Mexico.  Jose  Maria  Bocanegra,,  Acting 
President. 

1830.  Anastasio  Bustamante,  President. 

1832.  Melchor  Muzquiz,  Acting  President.  Antonio  Lopez  de 
Santa  Anna,  President;  Valentin  Gomez  Farias,  Vice- 
President. 

1834.  Gomez  Farias  proclaims  programme  of  Government  Re- 

forms. 

1835.  Constitution  of  "  Las  Siete  Leyes  "  replaces  Constitution 

of  1824.     Central  Republic  established. 

1836.  New  Constitution  proclaimed.     General  Barragan,  Act- 

ing President,  followed  by  Josd  Justo  Corro  as  Acting 
President.  Spain  acknowledges  the  Independence  of 
Mexico.     Revolt  of  Texas. 

1837.  Anastasio  Bustamante,  President. 

1840.  Gutierrez  de  Estrada's  letter  proposing  an  Empire. 

1841.  Santa  Anna,  Provisional  President. 

1842.  Javier  Echavarria,  Acting  President  pending  the  Plan  de 

Tacubaya;  succeeded  by  Santa  Anna,  Provisional 
President. 

1843.  Bases  Organicas  Politicas  de  la  Republica  Mexicana  and 

final  centralization  of  the  government. 

1845.  Revolutions  culminate  in  deposition  and  impeachment 

of  Santa  Anna  and  elevation  of  Jos^  Joaquin  Herrera 
to  the  Presidency.  Annexation  of  Texas  to  the  United 
States.     War  between  Mexico  and  the  United  States. 

1846.  Mariano  Paredes  y  Arrillaga,  President  with  Monarchical 

tendencies.  Advance  of  General  Taylor  to  Monterey. 
California  and  New  Mexico  captured  by  the  United 
States.  Paredes  succeeded  by  Nicolas  Bravo  and  the 
latter  by  Mariano  Salas,  pending  the  election  of  Santa 
Anna  as  President. 


APPENDIX  A  311 

1847.  Presidential  functions  exercised  by  Santa  Anna,  Gomez 

Farias,  and  others.  Constitution  of  1824  in  force  for 
a  short  time.  American  army  under  General  Scott 
advance  from  Vera  Cruz  to  the  Capital. 

1848.  Jose  Joaquin  Herrera  elected  President.    Treaty  of  Gua- 

dalupe-Hidalgo ends  war  with  the  United  States. 

1851.  Mariano  Arista,  President, 

1852.  Juan  Bautista  Ceballos,  President,  succeeded  by  Manuel 

Maria  Lombardini  as  Acting  President. 

1853.  Santa  Anna,  President,  —  Absolutism  triumphant.    Santa 

Anna  decrees  himself  Perpetual  Dictator. 

1854.  General  Juan  Alvarez  pronounces  in   Acapulco.      Plan 

de  Ayotla  proclaimed.  Final  deposition  and  exile  of 
Santa  Anna. 

1855.  Alvarez   Provisional    President  under   Plan   de  Ayotla, 

succeeded  by  Ignacio  Comonfort.  Ley  Juarez  pro- 
claimed. 

1856.  Ley   Lerdo  proclaimed.     Constituent    Congress    adopts 

"  Estatico  Organico  Provisional  de  la  Republica  Mexi- 
cana,"  as  tentative  Constitution. 

1857.  Final  Constitution  adopted  and  Ignacio  Comonfort  elected 

and  installed  as  Constitutional  President.  Reactionary 
movement  headed  by  Felix  Zuloaga. 

1858.  Comonfort   abandons   Presidency   and   is   succeeded  by 

Benito  Juarez  as  Constitutional  President.  Reaction- 
aries elect  Zuloaga  and  he,  IVIiguel  Miramon  and  others 
attempt  to  control  the  Pi-esidential  office  and  are  known 
as  Anti-Presidents. 

1859.  Juarez  finally  establishes  his  government  in  Vera  Cruz. 

War  of  the  Reform. 

1860.  Juarez  issues  Reform  Decrees  from  Vera  Cruz.     Decisive 

Battle  of  Calpulalpam,  collapse  of  Reactionaries,  and 
return  of  Juarez  and  Constitutionalists  to  the  capital. 

1861.  Juarez  constitutionally  elected    President.     Decree  sus- 

pending for  two  years'  payment  of  foreign  debts. 
Forces  of  England,  France,  and  Spain  arrive  in  Vera 
Cruz  to  carry  out  provisions  of  Treaty  of  London. 

1862.  Convention    of    Soledad    and    Conference    at    Orizaba. 

Treaty  of  London  dissolved.  England  and  Spain  with- 
draw from  Mexico.  French  army  advances  and  is 
defeated  at  Puebla  in  battle  of  Cinco  de  Mayo. 


312  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

1863.  French  capture    Puebla  and    advance    to    the   capital. 

Republican  government  retires  to  San  Luis  Potosi, 
thence  to  Saltillo,  and  thence  to  Monterey.  French 
organize  government  at  capital  and  elect  Maximilian 
of  Austria  Emperor. 

1864.  Maximilian  arrives  in  Mexico.     Juarez  at  Chihuahua. 

1865.  Juarez  at  Paso  del  Norte.     United  States  Government 

demands  withdravi^al  of  French  troops  from  Mexico. 
Maximilian's  famous  decree  of  October  3. 

1866.  Withdrawal  of   French  troops  from  North  of   Mexico. 

Republican  forces,  recruited  and  re-organized,  advance 
toward  the  South.     Juarez  returns  to  Chihuahua. 

1867.  French  troops  withdraw  from  Mexico.     Collapse  of  the 

Second  Mexican  Empire.  Execution  of  Maximilian. 
Juarez  returns  to  the  capital  and  is  re-elected  Constitu- 
tional President. 

1871.  Juarez  again  elected  Constitutional  President. 

1872.  Death  of  Juarez  and  accession  of  Sebastian  Lerdo  de 

Tejada  to  the  Presidency. 

1873.  Reform  Laws  incorporated  in  the  Constitution  of  1857. 

1876.  Successful  Plan  de  Tuxtepec  and  Provisional  Presidency 

of  Porfirio  Diaz. 

1877.  Porfirio  Diaz  elected  Constitutional  President. 
1880.    Manuel  Gonzales  elected  Constitutional  President. 
1884.    Porfirio  Diaz  elected  Constitutional  President. 
1888,  1892,  1896,  1900.     Diaz  again  elected  President. 


APPENDIX  B  313 


APPENDIX   B 

BIBLIOGRAPHY 

Abbott,  Gorham  D.     Mexico  and  the  United  States :  their 

Mutual  Relations  and  their  Common  Interest.     Xew  York, 

1869. 
Aguilar,  Cexobio.     La  Revolucidn  de  Setiembre  de  1866  en 

el  Estado  de  Chiapas.     Chiapas,  1867. 
Alajian,  Lucas.     Disertaciones  sobre  la  Ilistoria  de  la  Repub- 

lica  de  Mexico.     3  vols.     Mexico,  1844-49. 
Historia  de  Mexico  desde  los  primeros  movimientos  que 

preparan  su  Independencia  en  el  aiio  de  1808  hasta  la  epoca 

presente.     5  vols.     Mexico,  1849-51. 
Alvarez,  Ignacio.     Estudios  sobre  la   Historia   General  de 

Mexico.     5  vols.     Zacatecas,  1875-76. 
Alvarez,  Jos^  J.     Parte  General  sobre  la  Campaiia  de  Puebla. 

Mexico,  1856. 
Alvirez,  Manuel  T.     Reflexiones  sobre  los  decretos  episco- 

pales  que  prohiben  el  juramento  constitutional.    Mexico,  1857. 
Anales  del  Ministerio  de  Fomento  de  Mexico.    9  vols.     Mexico, 

1877-91. 
Ancona,  Eligio.     Historia  de  Yucatdn  desde   la  epoca  mas 

reraota  hasta  nuestros  dias.     4  vols.     Barcelona,  1889. 
Apuntamientos   sobre  Derecho  Publico  Eclesiastico.     Mexico, 

1857. 
Apuntes  para  la  Historia  de  la  Guerra  entre  Mexico  y  los  Estados 

Unidos.     Por  15  redactores  mexicanos.     Mexico,  1848. 
Arias,  Juan  de  Digs.     Resena    Histdrica    del    Ejercito   del 

Norte  ;  sitio  de  Queretaro  ;  Captura  de  Maximiliano.     Mex- 
ico, 1867. 
Arista,  Mariano.     Resena   Histdrica  de  la  Revolucidn  que 

desde  6  de  Junio  hasta  8  de  Octubre  tuvo  lugar  en  la  Repub- 

lica  el  ano  de  1833  a  favor  del  sistema  central.    I\Iexico,  1835. 


314  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Arrangoiz,  Francisco  de  Paula  de.  Apuntes  para  la  His- 
toria  del  Segundo  Imperio  Mexicano.     Madrid,  1809. 

Mexico  desde  1808  hasta  1807.     Madrid,  1871. 

Arroniz,  JoAQUix.  Ensayo  de  una  historiade  Orizaba.  Mex- 
ico, 1807. 

Arroniz,  Marcos.  Manual  de  Biografia  Mexicana,  d  Galena 
de  hombres  celebres  de  Mexico.     Paris,  1857. 

Manual  de  Historia  y  Cronologia  de  Mexico.     Paris,  1858. 

■ Manual  del  Viajero  en  Mexico,  d  Corapendio  de  la  Historia 

de  la  Ciudad  de  Mexico,  con  la  descripcidn  e  historia  de  sus 
templos,  conventos,  edificios  piiblicos,  las  costumbres  de  sus 
habitantes,  etc.     Paris,  1858. 

AzNAR,  Marcial.  Observaciones  histdrico-politicas  sobre 
Juarez  y  su  epoca.     Mexico,  1887. 

Balbontin,  Manuel.     La  Invasidn  Americana,  1846  a  1848. 

Mexico,  1883. 
Balmes,  Jaime.     Observaciones  Sociales  Politicas  y  Econdmi- 

cas  sobre  los  Bienes  del  Clero.     Guadalajara,  1856. 
Bancroft,  Hubert  Howe.      History   of    Mexico.      5    vols. 

1883-86. 
A  Popular  History  of  the  Mexican  People.     San  Francisco, 

1887. 

Historia  de  Mdxico.     San  Francisco  and  Mexico,  1890. 

Resources  and  Development  of  Mexico.     San  Francisco, 

1893. 
Vida  de  Porfirio  Diaz.     Resena  histdrica  y  social  del  pasado 

y  presente  de  Mexico.     San  Francisco,  1SS7. 
Bandelier,  Adolf  F.     An  Archaeological  Reconnoissance  into 

Mexico.     Boston,  1885. 
On  the  Art  of  War,  etc.     On  the  Distribution  of  Lands, 

etc.     On  the  Social  Organization  and  Mode  of  Government 

of  the   Ancient   Mexicans.      Three   pamphlets.      Reprinted 

from  Reports  of  the  Peabody  Museum.     Salem,  1877,  1878, 

1879. 
Baqueiro,  Serapio.     Ensayo  histdrico  sobre  las  Revoluciones 

de  Yucatdn  desde  el  ano  de  1840  hasta  1864.    2  vols.    Merida, 

1871-79. 
Barcena,  Mariano.     Ei;isayo  de  una  historia  anecdotica  de 

Mexico.     Mexico,  1862. 
Bascii,  Samuel.     Recuerdos  de  Mexico.     Mexico,  1870. 


APPENDIX  B  315 

Baz,  Juax  Jos^.  Articulos  diversos  de  la  Bandera  Eoja  de 
Morelia,  escritos  en  1859.     Mexico,  18'Jl. 

Biografia  del  General  Santa  Anna  y  Compendio  Secreto  que 
celebrd  con  el  Presidente  de  los  Estados  Unidos.  Mexico, 
1847. 

Bivouacs,  Les,  de  Vera  Cruz,  ^  Mexico  par  un  Zouave.  Paris 
et  Leipsick,  1865. 

Blackaiar,  Frank  W.  Spanish  Institutions  of  the  South- 
west.    Baltimore,  1891. 

Blake,  Mary  Elizabeth,  and  Sullivan,  Margaret  F. 
Mexico,  Picturesque,  Political,  Progressive.     Boston,  1888. 

Brocklehurst,  T.  U.     Mexico  of  To-day.     London,  1883. 

Brown,  Hubert  W.  Latin  America.  The  Pagans,  Papists, 
Patriots,  Protestants,  and  the  Present  Problem.  New  York, 
1001. 

BuELNA,  E.  Breves  Apuntes  para  la  Guerra  de  Intervencidn 
en  Sinaloa.     Mazatlan,  1884. 

Bullock,  W.  H.  Six  Months'  Residence  and  Travels  in  Mex- 
ico.    2  vols.     London,  1825. 

Burke,  Ulick  Ralph.  A  Life  of  Benito  Juarez,  Constitu- 
tional President  of  Mexico.     London  and  Sydney,  1894. 

BusTAMANTE,  CXrlos  Maria.  Apuutes  para  la  Historia  del 
Gobierno  del  General  Don  Antonio  Lopez  de  Santa  Anna 
desde  principios  de  OcLubre  de  1841  hasta  6  de  Diciembre  de 
1844,  en  que  fue  depuesto  del  mando  por  uniiorme  voluntad 
de  la  Nacidn.     Mexico,  1845. 

Campana  del  General  Don  Felix  Maria  Calleja,  del  Ejercito 

Real.     Mexico,  1828. 

Cuadro  Historico  de  la  Revolucidn  de  la  America  Mexi- 

cana,  comenzada  en  15  de  Setiembre  de  1810  ]3or  el  C.  Miguel 
Hidalgo  y  Costilla.     6  vols.     Mexico,  1823-25. 

Diario  Historico  de  Mexico.     Zacatecas,  1896. 

Butler,  William.  Mexico  in  Transition  from  the  Power  of 
Political  Romanism  to  Civil  and  Religious  Liberty.  New 
York,  1893. 

Butler,  John  W.  Sketches  of  Mexico  in  Prehistoi'ic,  Primi- 
tive, and  Colonial  Times.     New  York,  1894. 

Calderon  de  la  Barca,  Madame.  Life  in  Mexico  during 
a  Residence  of  Two  Years  in  that  Country.  2  vols.  Boston, 
1843. 


316  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Calvo,  Charles.  Annales  Historiques  de  la  Revolution  de 
I'Amerique  latine.     5  vols.     Paris,  1864-67. 

Carbajal  Espinosa,  Francisco.  Historia  de  Mexico  desde 
los  primeros  tiempos  de  que  hay  noticia  hasta  mediados  del 
siglo  XIX.     2  vols.     Mexico,  1862. 

Carrion,  Antonio.  Historia  de  la  Ciudad  de  la  Puebla  de  los 
Angeles  (Puebla  de  Zaragoza).     2  vols.     Puebla,  1897-1900. 

Castelli,  Paul.  L'Armee  Fran9aise  au  Mexique  et  I'Emper- 
eur  Maximilien  I.     Puebla,  1864. 

Castillo  Negrete,  E.  del.  Mexico  en  el  Siglo  XIX.  40 
vols.     Mexico,  1881-89. 

Causa  criminal  instruida  al  Exmo.  Sr.  Presidente  Constitutional, 
General  de  Division,  Don  Antonio  Lopez  de  Santa  Anna, 
acusado  del  de  lito  de  traicidn  contra  la  forma  de  gobierno 
establecido  en  las  bases  orgdnicas.     Mexico,  184G. 

Causa  de  Fernando  Maximiliauo  de  Hapsburgo  que  se  la  titu- 
lado  Emperador  de  Mexico  y  sus  Generales  Miguel  Miraradn 
y  Tomds  Mejia,  sus  complices  por  delitos  contra  la  Indepen- 
dencia  y  seguridad  de  la  Nacidu.     Mexico,  1868. 

Chevalier,  Michel.  Le  Mexique,  Ancien  et  Moderne.  Paris, 
1864. 

Coleccion  de  las  Leyes  Fundamentales  que  ban  regido  en  la  Re- 
piiblica  Mexicana,  y  de  los  Planes  que  ban  tenido  el  misrao 
caracter,  desde  el  ailo  de  1821  hasta  el  de  1856.     Mexico,  1856. 

Correspondencia  de  la  Legacidu  Mexicana  en  Washington, 
1865-66-67.     2  vols.     Mexico,  1868-69. 

Critica  sobre  el  dictamen  de  la  Comisidn  especial  del  Consejo  de 
Vera  Cruz  acerca  de  la  resistencia  del  Sr.  Obispo  de  Puebla 
al  obedecer  el  decreto  mim.  54  de  aquella  Legislatura  que 
trata  de  Extincidn  de  Conventos,  ocupacidn  de  bienes  de  regu- 
lares,  etc.     Paebla,  1834. 

Cuevas,  Luis  Gonzaga.  Porvenir  de  Mexico.  3  vols.  Mex- 
ico, 1851-52. 

Daran,  Victor.     Le  General   Miguel   Miramdn.     Notes  sur 

I'Histoire  du  Mexique.     Rome,  1886. 
Davila  y  Arrillaga,  Jos^  Mariano.     Continuacidn  de  la 

historia  de  la  Compani'a  de  Jesus  en  Nueva  Espana,  del  P. 

Francisco  Javier  Alegre.     2  vols.     Puebla,  1888-89. 
De  los  Rios,  Enrique  M.     Maximiliano  y  la  Toma  de  Querd- 

taro.     Mexico,  1889. 


APPENDIX  B  317 

Despojo  de  los  Bienes  Eclesiasticos.  Apuntes  interesantes  para 
la  Historia  de  la  Iglesia  Mexicana.     Mexico,  1847-49. 

Diario  de  Mexico.     13  vols.     Mexico,  1805-10. 

Diario  Histdrico  de  los  sucesos  acaecidos  en  Mexico  desde  el  15 
hasta  el  30  de  Setiembre  de  1808,  con  motivo  de  la  prisidn 
del  Virey  D.  Jose  de  Iturrigaray.     Mexico,  1873. 

Diccionario  Geografico,  Estadistico,  Histdrico,  Biogrdfico,  etc., 
de  la  Repiiblica  Mexicana.     4  vols.     Mexico,  1874-75. 

Diccionario  Universal.     10  vols.     Mexico,  1853-56. 

Disciu-so  pronunciado  en  el  palacio  de  Miramar  el  3  de  Octubre 
de  1863  por  Don  J.  M.  Gutierrez  de  Estrada,  presidente  de  la 
Diputacidn  Mexicana,  encargada  de  ofrecer,  en  nombre  de  la 
Junta  de  Notables  la  corona  de  Mexico  i.  su  alteza  imperial  y 
real  el  Archiduque  Maximiliano  de  Austria,  y  contestacidn  de 
S.  A.  I.  Y.  R.  el  Archiduque.     Paris,  1863. 

Documentos  Diploinaticos  presentados  por  el  Gobierno  Espaiiol 
al  Senado.  La  Cuestidn  de  Mexico  en  el  Senado  y  Congreso 
Espanol.     Mexico,  1863. 

Documentos  para  la  Historia  de  Mexico.  20  vols.  Mexico, 
1853-57. 

DoMEXECH,  E.  Histoire  du  Mexique.  Juarez  et  Maximilien. 
Correspondances  Inedites  des  Presidents,  Ministres  et  G^nd- 
reaux,  de  Juarez  de  Maximilien  et  de  Charotte.  2  vols. 
Paris,  1868. 

Le  Mexique  tel  qu'il  est.     Paris,  1867. 

DoMEXECH,  J.  Passama.  L'Empire  Mexicain,  la  pax  et  les 
interests  du  Monde.     Mexico,  1865. 

Droux,  Leon.  Le  Mexique.  Ses  Ressources  et  son  avenir. 
Paris,  1864. 

Dubl.Cn,  Manuel,  y  Lozano,  Jos^  Maria.  Legislacidn 
Mexicana,  6  Coleccidn  completa  de  las  disposiciones  legislati- 
vas  expedidas  desde  la  Independencia  de  la  Repiiblica.  32 
vols.     Mexico,  1876-1903. 

Elizaga,  Lorenzo.  La  Corte  de  Roma  y  el  Emperador  Maxi- 
miliano. Relaciones  de  la  Corte  de  Roma  con  el  Gobierno 
Mexicano.     Mexico,  1870. 

Elorriaga,  Francisco.  Mexico  y  la  Intervencidn.  Mexico, 
1861. 

EscuDERO,  Ignacio  M.  Apuntes  Historicos  de  la  carrera 
militar  del  Seiior  General  Porfirio  Diaz,  Presidente  de  la  Re- 
piiblica Mexicana.     Mexico,  1889. 


318  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

Evans,  Col.  Albert  S.  Our  Sister  Republic.  Hartford, 
1880. 

FoLSOM,  Charles  J.  Mexico  in  1842  :  a  description  of  the 
Country,  its  natural  and  political  features ;  with  a  sketch  of 
its  history.  To  which  is  added  an  account  of  Texas  and 
Yucatdn;  and  of  the  Santa  Fe  Expedition.  New  York, 
1842. 

Forbes,  Alexander.  California:  A  history  of  Upper  and 
Lower  California  from  their  first  discovery  to  the  present 
time.     London,  1839. 

Fossey,  Mathieu  de.     Le  Mexique.     Paris,  1857. 

Viage  a  Mexico.     Mexico,  1844. 

Foster,  J.  W.  International  Awards  and  National  Honor. 
Washington,  1886. 

Furber,  George  C.     History  of  Mexico.     Cincinnati,  1850. 

Gallo,  Eduardo  L.      Hombres    Illustres   Mexicanos.      Bio- 

grafias  de  los  personajes  notables  desde  antes  de  la  Conquista 

hasta  nuestros  dias.     4  vols.     Mexico,  1873-75. 
Gamboa,  Jos^  M.     Leyes  Coustitucionales  de  Mexico  durante 

el  Siglo  XIX.     Mexico,  1901. 
Garcia  Icazbalceta,  Joaquin.      Coleccidn  de  Documentos 

para  la  Historia  de  Mexico.     2  vols.     Mexico,  1858-66. 
Garcia  Cubas,  Antonio.      Atlas   Geografico,   Estadistico   6 

Histdrico  de  la  Repiiblica  Mexicaua.     Mexico,  1858. 
Coinpendio  de  la  Historia  de  Mexico  y  de  su  Civilizacidn. 

Mexico,  1893. 
Cuadro  Geografico  Estadistico,  Descriptivo  e  Historico  de 

los  Estados  Unidos  Mexicanos.     Mexico,  1884. 
Diccionario    Geogrdfico,    Histdrico    y   Biografico,    de    los 

Estados  Unidos  Mexicanos.     5  vols.     Mexico,  1891. 
Gaulot,  Paul.     Reve  d'Enipire.     Paris,  1889. 

Fin  d'Empire.     Paris,  1890. 

L'Empire  de  Maximilien.     Paris,  1890. 

Gay,  Josi2  Antonio.     Historia  de  Oaxaca.     2  vols.     Mexico, 

1881. 
GoDOY,  Jos:^  F.     Enciclopedia  Biogrdfica  de  contempordneos. 

Washington,  1898. 
Gonzalez,  Agustin  R.      Historia  del  Estado  de  Aguascali- 

eutes.     Mexico,  1881, 


APPENDIX  B  319 

Gonzalez,  Eleuterio.     Coleccidn  de  Noticias  y  Docuraentos 

para  la  Historia  del   Estado   de   Nuevo   Leon.      Monterey, 

1867. 
Griffin,  Solomon  Bulkley.     Mexico  of  To-day.    New  York, 

1886. 
GuERRA,  Josif.     Historia  de  la  Revolucioa  de  Nueva  Espafia. 

2  vols.     London,  1813. 
Gutierrez  de  Estrada,  Jose  Mari'a.     Mexico  y  el  Archi- 

duque  Fernando  Maxirailiano  de  Austria.     Mexico,  1864. 

Hans,  Alberto.     Queretaro.     Mexico,  1S69. 

Haven,    Gilbert.      Our   Next-door   Neighbor.      New   York, 

1875. 
Hellwald,    Friedrich    von.      Maximilian    I.,    Kaiser   von 

Mexico.     Wien,  1869. 
Helps,  Sir  Arthur.     A  History  of  the  Spanish  Conquest  of 

America.     London,  1855-61. 
Hidalgo,  D.   J.      Apuntes   para   escribir   la   Historia  de   los 

proyectos  de  Monarquia  eu  Mexico  desde  el  reinado  de  Car- 
los  III.  hasta  la   iustalacidn  del   Emperador   Maximiliauo. 

Mexico,  -1868. 
Ibar,  Francisco.     Muerte  Politica  de  la  Republica  Mexicana. 

Mexico,  1829. 
Ibarra,  Domingo.     Episodios  Histdricos  Militares  que  ocur- 

rieron  en  la  Republica  Mexicana.     Mexico,  1890. 
Iglesias,  Jos^  M.     Revistas  Histdricas  sobre  la  Intervencidn 

Francesa  en  JNIexico.     3  vols.     JMexico,  1868-69. 
Iturbide,  AgustIn.     Manifiesto  del  General  Don  Agustin  de 

Iturbide,  Libertador  de  Mdxico.     Mexico,  1871. 

Juarez  y  Cj^sar  Cantu.  Refutacidn  de  los  cargos  que  hace  en 
su  ultima  obra  del  Historiador  Italiano  contra  el  Benemerito 
de  America.     Mexico,  1885. 

Juarez,  Benito.  Manifiesto  justificativo  de  los  castigos  Na- 
cionales  en  Queretaro.     Mexico,  1869. 

Keratry,  Comte  E.  de.  L'elevation  et  la  chute  de  I'Empe- 
reur  Maximilien.  Intervention  Fran^aise  au  Mexique,  1861- 
1867.     Paris,  1867. 

La  Creance  Jecker.     Paris,  1868. 

Kollowitz  Grafin  Paula.  Eine  Reise  nach  Mexico  im 
Jahre  1864.     Wien,  1867. 


320  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Lafragua,  J.  M.  Historia  de  la  Revolucidn  de  Mexico  con- 
tra la  Dictadura  del  General  Santa  Anna,  1853-1855.  Mexico, 
1856. 

Lara,  Aniceto  de.  Resumen  Histdrico  de  los  Hechos  Not- 
ables de  los  Partidos  Yorkino,  Escoces  y  Santanista,  desde 
la  Indepeudencia  hasta  la  toma  de  Mexico  por  los  Norte- 
Americanos.     Mexico,  1852. 

Lefevre,  E.  Documentos  oficiales  recogidos  en  la  Secretaria 
privada  de  Maximiliano.  2  vols.  Bruselas  y  Londres, 
1869. 

Le    Mexique    et    I'lntervention    Europ^enne.       Mexico, 

1862. 

Lempriere,  Charles.  Notes  in  Mexico  in  1861-1862.  Lon- 
don, 1862. 

Leon,  Dr.  Nicolas.  Compendio  de  la  Historia  General  de 
Mexico,  desde  los  tiempos  prehistdricos  hasta  el  ano  1900. 
Mexico,  1902. 

Ligera  Reseiia  de  los  partidos,  Facciones  y  Otros  males  que 
agobian  d  la  Repiiblica  IMexicana.      Mexico,  1851. 

Los  Rios,  E.  J.  DE.  Compendio  de  la  Historia  de  Mexico. 
Mexico,  1852. 

LuMMis,  Charles  M.  The  Awakening  of  a  Nation.  New 
York,  1898. 

Lyox,  Capt.  G.  F.  Journal  of  a  Residence  and  Tour  in  the 
Republic  of  Mexico  in  the  year  1826.     London,  1828. 

Marmolejo,  Lucio.  Efemerides  Guanajuatenses.  Guana- 
juato, 1884. 

Martinez,  Victor  Josi5.  Sinopsis  Histdrica,  Filosdfica  y 
Politica  de  las  Revoluciones  Mexicanos.     Mexico,  1884. 

Masseras,  E.     Essai  d'Erapire  au  Mexique.     Paris,  1879. 

Mayer,  Braxtz.  Mexico  as  it  was  and  as  it  is.  New  York, 
1844. 

Mexico,  Aztec,  Spanish,  and  Republican.  2  vols.  Hart- 
ford, 1853. 

Memorandum  sobre  el  proceso  del  Archiduque  Fernando  Maxi- 
miliano de  Austria,  por  los  CC.  Mariano  Riva  Palacio  y  Lie. 
Rafael  Martinez  de  la  Torre.  Defensa  del  Archiduque  de 
Austria,  por  los  CC.  Jesus  Maria  Vazquez  y  Eulalio  Maria 
Ortega,  en  el  proceso  que  se  formd  en  la  ciudad  de  Quer^taro. 
Mexico,  1867. 


APPENDIX  B  321 

Mexico  i.  traves  de  los  Siglos.  Historia  general  y  completa  del 
desenvolvimiento  social,  politico,  religioso,  militar,  artistico, 
cientifico  y  literario  de  Mexico  desde  la  antiguedad  m^s 
remota  hasta  la  epoca  actual.     5  vols.     Barcelona,  1884-88. 

Mexico,  el  Imperio  y  la  Intervencidn.     Mexico,  1867. 

Mill,  Nicholas.     History  of  Mexico.     London,  1824. 

LIoRA,  J.  M.  L.  Mexico  y  sus  Revolnciones.  3  vols.  Paris, 
1836. 

Mosaico  Mexicaiio.     7  vols.     Mexico,  1810-42. 

Moses,  Bernard.  The  Establishment  of  Spanish  Rule  in 
America.     New  York,  1898. 

Museo  Mexicano.     5  vols.     Mexico,  1843-45. 

Naredo,  Josif  Maria.  Estudio  Geogrdfico,  Histdrico  y  Es- 
tadistico  del  Canton  y  de  la  Ciudad  de  Orizaba.  2  vols. 
Orizaba,  1898. 

Niox,  G.     Expedition  du  Mexique,  1801-67.     Paris,  1874. 

Noll,  A.  H.  A  Short  History  of  Mexico.  Chicago,  1890. 
New  and  Revised  edition,  1903. 

Observador  de  la  Republica  Mexicana.    3  vols.     Mexico,  1827. 
OcAMPO,    !Melchor.      Obras    completas.      2    vols.      Mexico, 

1900-01. 
Ortiz,  Tadeo.    Mexico  considerado  como  nacidn  independiente 

y  libre.     Burdeos,  1832. 

Papeles  y  correspondencia  de  la  Familia  Imperial  de  Francia. 

Documentos  referentes  a  la  Intervencidn  de  Mexico.     Mexico, 

1873. 
Pavia,    Lazaro.     El    Imperio    en     la    Peninsula   Yucateca. 

Apuntes  para  la  historia,  1861  d  1867.     Mexico,  1897. 
Payxo,    INIanuel.      Compeudio   de   la    Historia  de   Mexico. 

Mexico,  1891. 
Cuentas,  Gastos,  Acreedores  y  otros  asuntos  del  tiempo  de 

la  Intervencidn  Francesa  y  del  Imperio.     Mexico,  1868. 
Memoria  sobre    la  Revolucidn    de   Diciembre    de   1857. 

Mexico,  1860. 
Mexico  and  her  Financial  Questions  with  England,  Spain, 

and  France.     Mexico,  1862. 
Mexico  y  sus  Cuestiones  Financieras  con  la  Inglaterra,  la 

Espana  y  la  Francia.     Mexico,  1862. 
21 


322  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIC 

Paz,  Ireneo.    Algunas  Campanas.    Memorias  escritas.    3  vols. 

Mexico,  1884-86. 

Los  Hombres  Prominentes  de  Mexico.     Mexico,  1888. 

Perez  Verdia,  Luis.     Compendio  de  la  Historia  de  Mexico, 

desde  sus  primeros  tiempos  hasta  nuestros   di'as.      Mexico, 

1900. 
Pesado,  JosiS  Joaquin.     El  Libertador  de  Mexico.    D.  Agus- 

tiu  de  Iturbide.     Biografia.     Mexico,  1872. 
Peza,  Ignacio  de  la,  y  Pradillo,  Agustin.    Maximiliano 

y  los  Ultimos  Sucesos  del  Imperio  en  Queretaro  y  Mexico. 

Mexico,  1870. 
Poinsett,  J.  R.     Notes  on  Mexico.     London,  1825. 
PoLA,  Angel.      Los   Traidores   Pintados,   etc.      Biografia  de 

D.  Antonio  Pelagio  de  Labastida  y  Davalos,  etc.     La  Plaza 

de  Queretaro,  etc.    INIexico,  1900. 
PoRTiLLA,  Anselmo  de  LA.     Espaiia  en  Mexico.     Cuestiones 

Histdricas  y  Sociales.     INIexico,  1871. 
Mexico  en  1856  y  1857.      Gobierno  del  General  Comon- 

fort.     New  York,  1858. 
Prescott,  William  H.     The  Conquest  of  Mexico.     Boston, 

1858. 
Prieto,  Guillermo.     Lecciones  de  Historia  Patria.     Mexico, 

1893. 


Ramirez  de   Arellano,  Manuel.      Apuntes   de    la   Cam- 

pana  de  Oriente.     Mexico,  1859. 

Ultimas  horas  del  Imperio.     Mexico,  1869. 

Riva    Palacio,    Vicente,    y   Payno,   Manuel.      El  Libre 

Rojo.     1520-1867.     Mexico,  1870. 
Rivera  Agustin.     Anales  Mexicanos.     La  Reforma  y  el  Se- 

gundo  Imperio.     3  vols.     Lagos,  1890-91 . 
Rivera,  Manuel.     Historia  Antigua  y  Moderna  de  Jalapa  y 

de  las  Revoluciones  del  Estado  de  Veracruz.     5  vols.     Mexico, 

1869-71. 

Los  Gobernantes  de  Mexico.     2  vols.  Mexico,  1872. 

Robinson,  Fay.     Mexico  and  her  Military  Chieftains.     Hart- 
ford, 1848. 
Robinson,  W.  Davis,     Memorias  de  la  Revolucidn  de  Mexico 

y  de  la  Expedicidn  del  General  D.  Francisco  Javier  Mina. 

London,  1824. 


APPENDIX  B  323 

RocAFUERTE,  YicENTE.  Ensajo  Politico.  El  Sistema  Co- 
lombiano,  Popular,  Electivo  y  Representative,  es  el  que 
mds  conviene  d  la  America  Independiente.  New  York, 
1823. 

Ensayo  sobre  tolerancia  religiosa.     Mexico,  1831. 

Ruiz,  Eduardo.  Historia  de  la  Guerra  de  Intervencidn  en 
Michoacdu.     Mexico,  1896. 

Salm-Salm,    Felix,    Prinz     du.      Queretaro.      Blatter    aus 

meinem  Tagebuch  in    Mexico.      Nebst  einera  Auszuge   aus 

dem  Tagebuche  der  Prinzessin  Agnes  zu  Salm-Salm.     2  vols. 

Stuttgart,  1868. 
Salm-Salm,  Agnes,  Princess.     Diary.     New  York. 
Santa  Anna,  Antonio  Lopez   de.     Apelacio'n   al  buen  cri- 

terio  de  los  Nacionales  y  Extranjeros.     Mexico,  1849. 
Segura,  Josi5  Sebastian.     Boletin  de  las  Leyes  del  Imperio 

Mexicano,  etc.     4  vols.     Mexico,  1863-6.5. 
SosA,    Francisco.      Biografias   de    Mexicanos   Distinguidos. 

Mexico,  1881. 
Episcopado   Mexicano.      Galen'a    Bibliogrdfica  Ilustrada 

de  los  Arzobispos  de  Mexico  desde  la  epoca  colonial  hasta 

nuestros  dias.     Mexico,  1879. 
Las  Estatuas  de  la  Eeforma.     Noticias  Biograficas  de  los 

personages  en  ellas  representadas.     Mexico,  1900. 
Suarez  y  Navarro,  Juan.     Historia  de  Mexico  y  del  General 

Santa  Anna.      Corapreiide  los  acontecimientos  poli'ticos  que 

han  tenido  lugar  en  la  nacidn  desde  el  aiio  de  1821.     Mexico, 

1850. 
Informe   sobre   las   frecuentes  revoluciones   ocurridas  en 

Yucatdn  y  medios  de  evitarlas  asi  como  la  venta  de  indi'genas. 

Mexico,  1861. 

Testory,  El  Abate.  El  Imperio  y  El  Clero  Me'xicano. 
Mexico,  1865. 

Thompson,  Waddy.  Recollections  of  ^Mexico.  New  York, 
1847. 

Tylor,  E.  B.  Anahuac ;  or  Mexico  and  the  Mexicans.  Lon- 
don, 1861. 

Torrente,  Mariano.  Historia  de  la  Revolucidn  Hispano- 
Americana.     3  vols.     Madrid,  1830. 


324  FROM  EMPIRE  TO  REPUBLIG 

Van  der  Smissen,  Baron.     Souvenirs  du  Mexique,  1864-67. 

Bruxelles,  1892. 
Verdad  Desnuda,  La.     Mexico,  1833. 
Verdadero  origen,   etc.    de   la    aprehensidn   y   destitucida   del 

Virey  Don  Jose  de  Iturrigaray,  etc.     Mexico,  1820. 
View  of  South  America  aud  Mexico,  etc.     New  York,  1825. 

Ward,  H.  G.     Mexico  in  1827.     2  vols.     London,  1828. 
Wilson,  R.  A.     Mexico  and  its  Eeligion.     New  York,  1855, 

Young,  Philip.     History  of  Mexico.     Cincinnati,  1850. 

Zamacois,  Niceto  de.  Historia  de  Mejico.  20  vols.  Bar- 
celona, 1877-85. 

Zarate,  Julio.  Compendio  de  Historia  General  de  Mexico 
para  uso  de  las  Escuelas.     Mexico,  1899. 

Zavala,  Lorenzo  de.  Ensayo  Histdrico  de  las  Revoluciones 
de  Mexico  desde  1808  hasta  1830.  2  vols.  Paris  and  New 
York,  1831-32. 

Zenex,  Atico  Selvas.  Episodios  Histdricos  de  America. 
Paris,  1891. 

Zercero,  Anastasio.  Memoria  para  la  Historia  de  las  Revo- 
luciones en  Mexico.     Mexico,  1869. 


APPENDIX  G  325 


APPENDIX   C 

NOTES   ON   THE   HISTORICAL   GEOGRAPHY 
OF   MEXICO 

A  STUDY  of  the  historical  geography  of  Mexico  properly 
begins  with  a  consideration  of  Spain's  possessions  on  the  North 
American  continent  prior  to  the  year  1821. 

It  was  about  the  middle  of  the  eighteenth  century  that  Span- 
ish territory  in  North  America  reached  its  maximum  extent. 
"With  the  changes  which  subsequently  took  place  in  the  north- 
ern boundaries  on  the  Atlantic  coast,  we  have  little  to  do,  for 
Florida  was  not  a  part  of  New  Spain.  On  the  Pacific  coast, 
Spain  claimed  all  the  territory  from  Panama  to  Prince  William's 
Sound,  though  no  permanent  settlements  had  been  made  north 
of  San  Francisco.  By  the  Treaty  of  Nootka  (1790),  to  which 
Spain  and  England  were  parties,  the  former  renounced  all  sov- 
ereignty to  the  North  Pacific  coast.  Subsequently  (1795),  she 
fixed  the  limits  of  her  territory  on  what  is  now  the  northern 
boundary  of  California. 

By  the  Treaty  of  Ildefonso  in  1802,  Spain  gave  up  to  France 
the  Territory  of  Louisiana,  which  had  been  hers  since  1760. 
Napoleon,  the  following  year,  sold  Louisiana  to  the  United 
States.  Spain  and  France  were  at  the  time  rival  claimants  to 
the  territory  lying  west  of  the  Sabine  River  in  Texas,  and  the 
United  States  succeeded,  by  the  terms  of  the  purchase,  to  the 
claim  of  France  in  that  territory.  It  was  not  until  1819  that 
the  boundary  line  between  the  United  States  and  the  northern 
provinces  of  New  Spain  was  established,  and  then  it  was  as  one 
of  the  terms  of  the  Treaty  by  which  the  United  States  effected 
the  purchase  of  Florida. 

This  boundary  line  began  at  the  mouth  of  the  Sabine  River 
and  ascended  that  river  to  the  thirty-second  parallel  of  north 
latitude ;  thence  it  ran  due  north  to  the  Red  River  ;  thence  up  the 


326  FROM  EMPIRE   TO  REPUBLIC 

river  to  a  point  one  hundred  degrees  ■west  of  Greenwich ;  thence 
due  north  to  the  Arkansas  River  and  up  that  river  to  its  head  ; 
thence  to  the  forty-second  parallel  of  latitude ;  thence  along 
that  line,  which  -was  the  line  adopted  by  Spain  in  1795,  to  the 
Pacific  Ocean.  This  line,  so  far  as  it  affected  the  boundary  of 
Texas,  was  affirmed  in  a  treaty  with  ISIexico  in  1828  and  ten 
years  later  in  a  treaty  with  the  Republic  of  Texas. 

The  blue  line  on  the  accompanying  map  shows  the  extent  of 
territory  comprised  in  the  First  Mexican  Empire  and  in  the 
United  States  of  Mexico  up  to  the  year  1836.  In  that  year 
Texas  revolted  and  established  her  independence  of  Mexico. 
The  boundaries  of  the  new  Republic  of  Texas  were  by  no  means 
clearly  defined  and  the  lands  between  the  Rio  Grande  and  the 
Rio  Nueces  were  in  dispute  between  Mexico  and  Texas.  A 
further  dispute  would  undoubtedly  have  arisen  in  regard  to  the 
western  boundary  of  Texas  had  not  the  war  between  the  United 
States  and  ^Mexico  resulted  in  the  loss  to  Mexico  of  the  territory 
including  the  dubious  boundary  Hue.  A  green  line  upon  the 
accompanying  map  indicates  the  boundary  of  Mexico  after  the 
revolt  of  Texas,  according  to  the  claims  of  the  latter. 

By  the  Treaty  of  Guadalupe-Hidalgo  at  the  close  of  the  war 
with  the  United  States  in  1848,  the  northern  boundary  of  ]\Iex- 
ico  was  established  upon  the  Gila  River  and  extended  eastward 
to  the  Rio  Grande,  and  down  the  Rio  Grande  to  its  mouth,  as 
indicated  by  a  red  line  upon  the  accompanying  map. 

By  a  treaty  concluded  in  1853,  with  James  Gadsden  represent- 
ing the  United  States,  Mexico  sold  to  the  latter  a  tract  south  of 
the  Gila  River  which  is  known  historically  as  the  "  Gadsden 
Purchase,"  and  is  indicated  upon  the  accompanying  map  by  a 
red  tint.  Thus  the  northern  boundary  of  ^Mexico  became  fixed 
as  it  is  to-day. 

It  is  in  no  way  remarkable  that,  after  the  loss  of  so  much 
territory,  the  "  maintenance  of  the  territorial  integrity  of  Mex- 
ico "  should  become  one  of  the  fixed  principles  of  government  in 
that  country,  answering  to  the  "  Monroe  Doctrine  "  in  the 
United  States  in  the  tenacity  with  which  it  is  held,  the  empha- 
sis with  which  it  is  asserted,  and,  it  might  be  added,  the  curi- 
ous manner  in  which  it  has  sometimes  been  applied  in  poUtical 
argument. 


i:n"dex 


INDEX 


Abasalo,  38 

Acambaro,  45 

Acapulco,  54,  61,  119,  178,  211 

Aculco,  47 

Aguas  Calientes,  170 

Agustin  I.,  see  Iturbide,  Agustin 

Ahualulco,  214 

Alaman,   Lucas,    98,    116,  118,   119, 

157-159,  174,  176 
Alameda,  194 
Alamo,  The,  134 
Aldama,  38,  39,  49 
Alexander  VI.,  Pope,  8 
Alhondiga,  43-45,  49,  50 
Allende,  Ignacio,  38,  39,  41,  46,  49, 

93 
Almonte,  General,  134,  155,  157,  163, 

230,  239,  244-246,  249,  258 
Alvarez,  Juan,  73,  82,  176-181,  183, 

184,  192,  223 
America,  11,  24,  26,  27,  34,  40,  58, 

01 
Anahuac,  65 
Aiiaya,  Pedro,  167,  1G8 
Apatzingan,  05 
Apodaca,  Juan   Ruiz  de,  72-75,  82, 

83 
Aranjuez,  26 

Archiepiscopal  Palace,  33 
Ario,  68 

Arista,  Mariano,  127,  170-172 
Arteaga,  General,  271 
Asturians,  27 
Asturias,  58,  68 
Atenquique,  214 
Atotoniico,  40 


Audiencia,  3-5,  7,  10,  20,  29,  31-33, 

35,  36,  38,  53,  57,  81,  94 
Austria,  175,  250,  252-254 

,  Emperor  of,  255 

Auto-da-fe,  69 
Ayolla,  164 
Ayotla,  200 

,  Plan  de,  see  Plan  de  Aj'otla 

Ayuntamiento,  3,  5,  30,  31 
Aztecs,  1,  2,  13,  268 

Bajio,  82 

Barcena,  Manuel  de  la,  85 
Barragan,  Miguel,  130,  132,  135 
Bases  Organicas,  see  Constitution  of 

1843 
Bayonne,  26,  27 
Bazaine,  Marshal,  251,  253,  263,  269, 

272,  273 
Belgium,  255 
Bernardo  Galvez,  6 
Biblioteca  Nacional,  221 
Bliss,  Fort,  260 
Bocanegra,  Jose  Marfa,  117 
Bonaparte,  Joseph,  27,  28 

,  Louis,  27 

,  Xapoleon,  see  Xapoleon  I. 

Bravo,  Nicolas,  82,  86,  88,  95,  97.  98, 

102,  106,  112,  122,  140,   151,   157, 

160, 161 
Bucareli,  6 

Buena  Vista,  166, 167 
Buenos  A3'res,  4 
Bustamante,  Anastasio,  82,  115,  117- 

119,  121, 129,  136-139, 147,  154, 159 
,  Carlos  Man'a,  56,  61,  82,  103 


330 


INDEX 


Cadiz,  Spain,  19,  34,  56,  58,  98 

Cajiga,  223,  224 

Calderon,  Count  of,  see  Calleja  del 

Key,  Felix  Maria 
Calientes,  Aguas,  148 
California,  160,  169,  265 
Calleja  del  Rev,  Felix  Maria,  47,  52, 

55,  59,  60,  72,  73,  115 
Calpulalpam,  221,  222 
Campeche,  252 
Canaleja,  168 
Canalizo,  Valentin,  140, 147-150, 153, 

154 
Capuchin  monastery,  283 
Carlos  I.,  11 

III.,  12,  19 

IV.,  25,  26,  91 

Carlota,  255,  257,  258,  274 

Carmelites,  10 

Carrera,  Martin,  178,  179 

Carretas,  214 

Casa  de  Contratacion,  18,  19,  44 

Catani,  Pedro,  36,  42 

Catliedral,  49,  100 

Ceballos,  Juan  Bautista,  171,  172 

Celaya,  41,  211,  274 

Central  America,  129,  140 

Cerro  de  las  Campanas,  278,  280 

Cerro  del  Borrego,  248 

Cerro  Gordo,  168 

Chapultepec,  203 

Chiapas,  91,  252 

Chihuahua,  49, 171,  260,  273 

Chili,  4 

Chilpantzingo,  61 

China,  91 

Chinos,  see  Zambos 

Cinco  de  Mayo,  247 

Ciudad  Juarez,  see  Paso  del  Norte 

Ciudadela,  161 

Coahuila,  103,  116,  252 

Coat-of-arms,  National,  101 

Colima,'  212,  213 

Comonfort,    Ignacio,   177,    179,    181, 

183,   184,   185,  192-194,  196,    198, 

200,  203,  204,  211,  218,  223,  246 
Confederate  States  of  America,  264 
Congress,  53,  61-66,  68-71,  86-89,  93- 

102, 105,  110-115, 117,118, 121-125, 


129-132, 135,  136, 139-141, 146, 147, 

149-152, 154,  159-163, 165, 166, 168, 

171,   172,   174,  176,    177-179,   186, 

193,   194,   196-199,  204,   224,  229, 

301 
Consejo  de  las  Indias,  see  Council  of 

the  Indies 
Constitution  of  1812,  56-60,  66,  67, 

69,  73-75,  78,  111 

1813  (1st  Mexican),  65-67 

1824,    104-106,    114,    115,    121, 

122,   125,   130-133,  162,  164,   188, 

207,  209 

1836,  132,  133,  138-140,  209 

1843,    140-144,    146,    147,    149, 

152,  157,  199,  200,  203 
1857,    172,    176,    178,    187-203, 

204,  211,  217,  218,  225,  294,  298, 

299,  302,  303 

1857  amended,  303 

Cordoba,  84 

,  Treaty  of,  84,  85,  87,  88, 101,  235 

Corpus  Christi,  156,  160 

Corro,  Jos6  Justo,  135,  136 

Cortazar,  148,  150, 152 

Cortes,  Hernando,  1,  2,  3,  8,  22 

Cortes,  Spanish,  27,  34,   35,  42,  56- 

59,  61,  66,  67,  74,  75,  81,  87,  88,  98 
Cos,  Dr.,  52,  55,  61,  65,  68 
Council  of  Castile,  27 

of  the  Indies,  2,  5,  15-18,  28,  57 

Creoles,  13,  14,  21,  24,  29-35,  37-39, 

41,  42,  47,  62,  71,  74,  76,  77,  79,  82, 

87,  92,  111,  115,  118,  120 
Croix,  Marquis  of,  6 
Cuautla,  59 
Cuba,  117,  154,  163 
Cuernavaca,  179, 192,  193,  200 
,  Plan  de,  see  Plan  de  Cuernavaca 

Decree  of  Huitzilopochtli,  268,  270, 

276,  278 
Degollado,  Santos,  213-216,  220,  224, 

228,  288 
Diaz,  Jesus,  271 
,  Porfirio,  210,  214,  246,  247,  249, 

252,  277,  282,  289, 292,  293,  295-304 
Diaz  de  la  Vega,  Romulo,  179,  180 
Doblado,  Manuel,  192,  211,  242,  243 


INDEX 


331 


Dolores,  37,  39 

,  Grito  de,  40,  109,  116,  164,  297 

Dominguez,  Miguel,  98 
Dominicans,  8-11 
Dunlop,  Commodore,  240,  245 
Duran,  General,  127 
Durango,  82,  252 

EcHAVAKRiA,  Javier,  138,  139 

El  Cinco  de  Mayo,  see  Cinco  de  Mayo 

El  Monitor  Republicano,  158 

El  Tiempo,  158,  159 

Elba,  28 

Empire,  First,  established,  89-90 

, ,  overthrown,  96-97 

,  Second,  established,  256-258 

,  ,  overthrown,  280 

Enchanted  Lake,  see  Laguna  Encan- 

tada 
England,  4,  28,  58,  103,  108,  163, 175, 

232-236,  238,  240 
Es  muv  Rej',  18 

Escobedo,  221,  246,  273,  274,  276,  277 
Estanca  de  las  Vacas,  211,  216 
Estrada,  Jose  Maria  Gutierrez  de,  159, 

175,  189,  239,  250,  254 
Executive  Power,  see  Poder  Ejecutivo 

Farias,  Gomez,  103,  123,  125,  127- 
131,  136,  137,  153,  156,  165-167, 
192,  197,  208,  210,  220,  303 

Ferdinand  YII.,  25-31,  35,  36,  38,  40, 
45,  48,  52,  53,  56,  57,  61-03,  66,  67, 
74,  75,  79-81,  91,  106 

Fernandez,  Felix,  see  "Victoria,  Gua- 
dalupe 

Fernando,  Prince  of  Asturias,  see 
Ferdinand  VII. 

Flag  of  Mexico,  National,  101 

Florida,  91 

Forey,  General,  248-251 

France,  4,  25,  26,  28,  29,  56,  66,  136, 
163,  175,  232,  235-238,  240,  243, 
245,  246,  248,  249,  253,  263,  264, 
266-268,  273,  287 

Francis  Joseph,  253 

Franciscans,  8-10,  206 

Freemasonry,  110,  111 

French  Revolution,  24 


Gaceta,  20 

Gachupines,  13 

Gadsden  Purchase,  174 

Galeana,  72,  93 

Gallardo,  246 

Galvez,  Matfas  de,  6 

Garibay,  Pedro  de,  33,  34 

Godoy,"  Manuel,  25,  26 

Gonzalez,  Manuel,  271,  300 

Granaditas,  Castle,  see  Alhondiga 

Graviere,  Jurien  de  la,  240 

Grito  de  Dolores,  see  Dolores,  Grito 

de 
Guadalajara,  47,  48,  68,  82,  125,  148, 

171,  211,  212,  214,  215,  220,  223, 

251 
Guadalupe,  36,  37,  148,  247 

,  Order  of,  175 

,  Virgin  of,  40 

Guadalupe-Hidalgo,  169,  173 
Guanajuato,  13,  37,  39,  41-43,  45-47, 

49,  50,  68,  148,  153,  211,  274,  296 
Guarantees,  Three,  see  Plan  de  Iguala 
Guatemala,  91,  129 
Guerrero,  80,  176 
,  Vicente,  73,  78,  81,  88,  95,  98, 

102,  112-117,  119,  121 

Habana,  154,  282 

Haro   y  Tamaris,  Antonio  de,   152- 

154, 178,  180,  185,  203,  239,  244 
Havana,  210,  213,  216,  245 
Heras,  Count  of,  88 
Herrera,  Jos^  Juaqnin  de,  82,  84, 150, 

151,  155-157,  161,  163,  168-170,297 
Hidalgo   y   Costilla,  Miguel,  37-50, 

52-54,  61,  69,  72,  76,  77,  93,  109, 

116,  125,  181,  190 
Holland,  27 

Holy  Office,  see  Inquisition 
Houston,  Samuel,  134,  155 
Huasteca,  95 

Iglesias,  296 
Iguala,  80,  192 

,  Plan  de,  see  Plan  de  Iguala 

Ildefonso,  Treaty  of,  25 
Independence,  Declaration  of,  05-08 
Independencia,  194 


332 


INDEX 


Indians,  9,  10,  13-16,  21,  22,  37-44, 
47,  48,  51,  58,  123,  143,  181,  207, 
254 

,  Slavery  of,  15, 16 

Inquisition, '9,  12,  20,  43,  69;  sus- 
pended, 57;  reestablished,  66; 
finally  abolished,  74 

Italy,  98,  99 

Iturbide,  Agustin,  76,  78-102,  107, 
113-115,  120,  123,  124,  175,  185 

,  Teatro  de,  see  Teatro  de  Iturbide 

Iturrigaray,  Jo9(5  de,  29-32,  34,  36, 
37,  43,  53, 115 

Ixtlan,  205 

Jalapa,  95,  123,  126,  152,  210,  246 

,  Plan  de,  .^ee  Plan  de  Jalapa 

Jalisco,  148, 149,  171,  220,  251 

Jeeker  claim,  236,  237,  245,  257 

Jesuits,  9,  101 

Jimenez,  49,  93 

Juarez,  Benito,  180,  181,  183,  192, 
198,  199,  200,  204-213,  216,  217, 
219,  221-223,  225-230,  234,  235, 
237,  241-246,  248,  249,  252,  259- 
265,  268,  269,  270,  272-274,  277- 
293,  298,  301,  303,  304 

Judges,  Resident,  3 

Junta  Americana,  56 

Junta  of  Jauaxilla,  55 

of  Madrid,  29 

of  Notables,  93,  94, 139, 140, 157, 

201,  204 

of  Queretaro,  149 

of  Sevilla,  30,  33,  34 

of  Zitacuaro,  52.  53,  55,  61 

Kearney,  General,  160 

La  Cruz,  Church  of,  278 

La  Noria,  298 

Labastida,  Antonio  Pelagio  de,  182, 

198,  249 
Lagos,  148,  228 
Laguna  Encantada,  205 
Laguna,  Seca,  288 
Las    Siete     Leyes,    see    Laws,    The 

Seven 


Las   Tres    Garantias,    see    Plan    de 

Iguala 
Laurencez,  General,  243,  248 
Laws,  The  Seven,  131,  132 
Leon,  202,  252 

,  Manuel  Vasquez  de,  85 

Lej'    de    Desamortizacion,    see   Ley 

Lerdo 
Ley  Juarez,  181,  182,  187 

Lerdo,  183,  184,  186,  191,  193 

Liceaga,  Jos6  Maria,  52,  56,  61,  65, 

73 
Lisbon,  Portugal,  171 
Literature,  21 
Lithuania,  248 
Lizana,  Archbishop,  42 

,  Francisco  Javier  de,  34,  36 

Lombardini,  Manuel  Maria,  138,  168, 

172,  173 
Lombardy,  255 
London,  99,  101 
,   Treaty  of,   232,  235-237,  239, 

245,  246,  250,  263 
Lopez,  Miguel,  277 
Loretto,  247 
Louisiana,  91 
purchase,  25 

Madrid,  5,   12,  25,  27,  66,  74,  81, 

233 
Mango  de  Clava,  126,  128, 129, 147 
Manzanillo,  212 
Mapimi,  260 
Marcha,  Pio,  89 
Maria  Luisa  of  Parma,  25,  20 
Marquez,  General,  214-216,  221-224, 

227.  229,  234,   243,  246,  249,  251, 

275-277,  282,  288 
Jlatamoras,  160 
Matamoras,  Mariano,  54,  68,  72,  93, 

190 
Maximilian,  Ferdinand,  250-259,  262, 

263,    268,   271-276,    278-283,   286, 

287 
Mazatlan,  213 
Mejia,  Tomas,  198,  211,  215,  216,  222, 

224,  229,  246,  251,  276-278,  280 
Mendez,  General,  271,  276,  278 
Mendoza,  Antonio  de,  6 


INDEX 


333 


Mexia,  General,  136, 137 

Mexican  Independence,  Birthday  of, 

39 

,  Father  of,  37 

Mexico,  City  of,  3,  13,  33,  36,  41,  43, 

45,  46,  49^  55,  56,  61,  64,  65,  76,  77, 

81,  84,  89,  100,  102,  115,  133,  148, 

150,  163,   164,  109,  193,  212,  220, 

223,  224,  249,  252,  258,  272,  277, 

282,  298 

,  Gulf  of,  167,  234 

,  University  of,  20,  21 

Meztizos,  14, 21, 32, 35-38, 54,71,  76,77 
Michelena,  Mariano,  98 
jMichoacan,  34,  45,  177,  183,  222,  251, 

271,  274     • 

,  Bishop  of,  42 

Mier  v  Teran,  Manuel  de,  55,  68-71, 

73,  103,  122 
Mina,  Francisco  Javier,  72,  73 
Miraraar,  Palace  of,  250,  255,  256 

,  Treatv  of,  256,  257,  263,  274 

Miramon,  Miguel,  198,  201-203,  214- 

217,  220,   221,  227,  228,  230,  234, 

235,   237,   239,  245,  246,  274-278, 

280,  288 
Miranda,  Francisco  J.,  239,  244 
Molino  del  Re.v,  203 
Mon-Almonte  Treaty,  230,  238 
Monclova,  49 
Monroe  Doctrine,  106-108,  239,  264, 

267,  268 
Monte  de  las  Cruces,  45,  46,  224 
Monterev,  160,  252,  260,  274 
Morelia,'  76,  183,  222,  223,  251,  276 ; 

see  also  Yalladolid 
Morelos,  192,  300 
,  Jose  Maria,  52-55,  59,  60,  61, 

64,   65,   67-70,  72,  73,  76,  78,  93, 

176,  183,  190,  206 
Mugica  y  Osorio,  Juan,  172 
Murat,  2"5,  26 
Musquiz,  Melchor,  121 

Napoleon  I.,  24-29,  52,  66,  91,  133, 

137 
III.,  239,  246,  249-251,  253,  254, 

256,  257,  263,  265,  267,  268,  273, 

274,  280 


National  Palace,  113,  138,  146,  149, 

150,  157,  290 
Navarete,  55,  72,  102 
Nazas,  260 
Negrete,  Pedro  Celestino,  82,  8<),  97, 

102 
New  Granada,  173 

Mexico,  160,  169 

Orleans,  210,  211,  213, 

Novella,  Francisco  de,  83,  84 
Nueces  River,  155 
Nuevo  Leon,  103,  177 

Oaxaca,   13,  59,  60,  82,   119,   171, 

205-210,   215,   252,   295,  297,   298, 

300 

University  of,  207,  208 

Ocampo,  Melchor,  179,  180,  183,  192, 

222,  223,  224,  283,  303 
O'Donoju,  Juan,  83-85 
O'Horan,  Toinas,  224,  283 
Orizaba,  59,  242,  243,  245-249,  275 
Ortega,    Jesus    Gonzalez,   216,    220, 

221,  225,  229,  234,  248,  261 
Otomies,  13 
Otumba,  110 

Pachuca,  229 

Padilla,  100 

Palacio,  Mariano  Riva,  258,  279 

Palmar,  68 

Palo  Alto,  160 

Panama,  211,  213 

Panteon  de  San  Fernando,  223 

Paredes   y  Arrillaga,    Mariano,  138, 

147-15i,    154,    156,    157,    159-163, 

170,  189 
Paris,  233,  240,  242,  244,  250 
Paruaran,  72 

Paso  del  Norte,  260,  273,  287,  289 
Pavon,  Josd  Ignacio,  202 
Pedraza,  Manuel  Gomez,  95,  96,  113- 

115,  121 
Peiia  y  Peiia,  Manuel  de  la,  168 
Perez,  Antonio,  71 
Perote,  152,  178 

Castle  of,  114,  162 

Peru,  4 

Pezuela,  Robles,  201 


334 


INDEX 


Philip  II.,  11, 12 

"Pie  claim"  139 

Pius  IX.,  Pope,  197 

Plan  Casa  Mata,  95 

Plan  de  Ayotla,   169-186,   192,  201, 

211,  217,' 223 

Cuernavaca,  129,  130 

Iguala,  79-87,    101,    104,    105, 

115,  207 

Jalapa,  117 

Navidad,  201 

Noria,  292,  293,  298 

San  Agustin,  127 

Tacubaya,  139,  140, 148, 154,  201 

Toluca,"'l31 

Tuxtepec,  295,  296,  298,  299,  302, 

303 
Plan  del  Hospicio,  171 
Plan  Napoleon,  258,  264 
Plan  of  1828,  111 
Poblanos,  152 
Poder  Ejecutivo,  65,  67,  68,  70,  71, 

97-99,  106 
Poinsett,  Mr.  110,  11],  113 
Polk,  James  K.,  160 
Polkos  Pronunciamento,  167 
Pomoca,  222,  223 
Portugal,  8,  25 
Printing-press,  20 
Profesa,  Church  of  the,  76,  77,  78 
Prussia,  273 
Puebla,  13,  68,  82,  121,  122,  136,  148, 

150,  152,  172,  177,   185,   186,  200, 

203,   210,   218,   220,  247-249,  252, 

258,  264,  277,  282,  287 

Bishop  of,  249 

de  Zaragoza,  247 

Puente  de  Calderon,  49,  54,  60 

QUAXIMALPA,  46 

Queretaro,  37-39,  82,  148,  149,  168, 
169,  177,  204,  222,  229,  251,  274, 
276-278,  282,  298 

,  Junta  of,  see  Junta  of  Queretaro 

Quintanar,  Luis,  118 

Ramirez,  Ignacio,  221 

Rayon,  Francisco,  72 

,  Ignacio,  52-56,  61,  72,  73 


Reform,  War  of  the,  204-231,  244, 

287,  297 
Reform  laws,  218,  263,  293-294 
Remedios,  Virgin  de  los,  40 
Republic  established,  104-106 

restored,  280 

Resaca  de  la  Palma,  160,  170 

Revillagigedo,  Count  of,  6,  14 

Rianon,  43,  44 

Richmond,  264 

Rio  Grande  del  Norte,  91 

Rio  Grande  River,  155,  156,  160,  189, 

260,  295 
Rio  Verde,  222 
Rivera,  Payo  de,  6 
Robles,  General,  242,  244,  287 
Rome,  257 
Royal  Audience,  see  Audiencia 

Officers,  3 

Russia,  91,  248 

Salamanca,  211,  212 

Salas,    Mariano,   161-165,   167,   178, 

249 
Salazar,  271 

Saligny,  Count  of,  240,  243,  249-251 
Salm-Salm,  Princess,  279 
San  Antonio  de  Bexar,  134 
San  Augustin  Monastery,  221 
San  Bartolo,  220 
San  Carlos  Academy  of   Fine  Arts, 

221  - 

San  Cristobal  Ecatepec,  69 
San  Felipe  de  Jesus,  Chapel  of,  100 
San  Fernando,  Panteon  of,  289 
San  Gregorio,  277 
San  Hipolito,  89 
San  Hipolito's  Day,  2 
San  Jacinto,  135,  137,  155,  274,  276 

River,  134 

San  Juan  de  Ulua,  32,  83,  84,  210, 

223 
San  Juan  del  Rio,  211 
San   Luis   Potosf,  10,  115,  150,  165, 

171,  177,  214,   246,  249,  252,  274, 

276,  279 
San  Miguel,  41 
San  Nicolas  Obispo,  222 
San  Pablo  Guelatao,  205,  206 


INDEX 


Sanchez,  Epitacio,  89 

Santa  Ana  Acatlan,  213 

Santa  Anna,  Antonio  Lopez  de,  82, 
83,  95,  113,  114,  116,  117,  121-130, 
133,  134, 137-140, 143,  146-155, 157, 
158, 161-168, 173-179, 183,  200,  203, 
209,  210,  223,  230,  286,  288,  297, 
300 

Santa  F^,  160,  269 

Santo  Domingo,  Convent  of,  198 

Saragossa,  74 

Scott,  General,  162,  168 

Sedan,  273 

Sevilla,  Spain,  19,  28 

Seward,  William  H.,  266 

Sierra  Madre,  Proposed  Republic  of, 
136 

Sierra  Madre  Mountains,  55,  215 

Siete  Leyes,  209 

Silao,  220 

Sinaloa,  148,  251 

Sisters  of  Charity,  294 

Slaves,  African,  imported,  14 

,  liberated,  109 

Sloat,  Commodore,  160 

Soledad,  242,  249 

Sombrerete,  274 

Sonora,  148,  239,  251,  265 

Soto  de  la  Marina,  100 

South  America,  106 

Southampton,  England,  99 

Spaniards,  1,  8,  9,  13,  14,  21,  22,  26, 
28,  32-35,  39,  40,  43,  46,  48,  50,  55- 
57,  60,  63,  68,  84,  87,  94,  110,  115 
117,  120,  302 

Spain,  2-8,  11,  12,  15-20,  22,  24-28, 
30,  32-36,  38,  45,  49,  52,  53,  55-58, 
61,  62,  64,  66,  67,  71-75,  77,  80,  81, 
83,  84,  88,  91,  106,  108,  125,  135, 
163,  175,  232,  235,  236,  238,  240, 
241 

Sultepec,  55,  56 

Tabasco,  252 
Tacambaro,  271 
Tacubaya,  92,  139,  200,  215 

,  Plan  de,  see  Plan  de  Tacubaya 

,  Tiger  of,  see  Marquez,  Leonardo 

Tamaulipas,  177,  252 


Tampico,  10,  100,  117,  156,  213,  230, 

301 
Tarascans,  13 
Taylor,  Zachary,  156,  160 
Teatro  de  Iturbide,  278 
Tecoac,  296 
Tehuacau,  59,  68,  70 
Tejada,  Miguel  Lerdo  de,  180,   183, 

192,  198,  225,  260,  292,  303 
,  Sebastian  Lerdo  de,  260,  280, 

289,  292,  294,  296 
Tenochtitlan,  1 
Tepeji  del  liio,  223 
Texas,  116,  132-134,  146,  147,  155, 

160,  209,  273 
Texcoco,  Lake,  1 
Texmalaca,  69 
Tlacotepec,  65 
Tlalpa,  177 
Tlalpujahua,  55 
Tolototlan,  214 
Toluca,  45,  82,  168,  220 

,  Plan  de,  see  Plan  de  Toluca 

Torres,  Padre,  55 
Trieste,  Gulf  of,  255,  256 
Truxillo,  General,  45,  46 
Tulancingo,  112,  222 
Turkey,  275 

United  States,  25,  31,  48,  49,  63, 
91,  97,  103,  104,  106-108,  134,  loo, 
156, 158,  160-162, 165-107, 1G9, 170, 
172,  174,  200,  203,  213,  216,  2:]3, 
238,  239,  260,  263-2G8,  280,  284, 
294,  296,  297,  300,  301 

University  of  Mexico,  see  Mexico, 
University  of 

Uruapan,  271 

Valenoay,  26 

Valencia,  28 

,  General,  138,  151,  157 

Valentin,  Miguel,  88 

Valez,  Pedro,  118 

Valladolid,  13,  34,  37,  39,  45,  52,  07, 

68,    76,    82,    119,    222;     see    also 

Morelia 
Valle,  Leandro,  224 
Velasco,  6,  16 


336 


INDEX 


Venadito,  72 

Venegas,  Francisco  Javier,  36,  37,  42, 
43,  59,  60 

Venice,  255 

Vera  Cruz,  3,  19,  32,  42,  83,  94,  95, 
98,  114,  121,  123,  126,  137-139, 
147,  148,  150,  152,  154,  162,  163, 
167,  177,  184,  185,  187,  210,  213, 
215-217,  219,  220,  221,  225,  230, 
240,  242,  247,  251,  252,  257,  272, 
273 

Verdad,  Licenciado,  33 

Verduzco,  Dr.,  52,  56,  61,  73 

Viceregal  government,  4-7,  10, 12, 13 

Victoria,  Guadalupe,  73,  82,  86,  88, 
95,  97,  102,  106,  109,  110,  112, 
113,  114,  116,  122,  207 

Vidaurri,  Santiago,  179,  214,  246, 
252,  277,  282 

Vienna,  254,  256,  283 

Viesca,  260 

Villa  del  Carbon,  222 

Villagoniez,  Trinidad,  271 

Vireinate,  36 

Visitors,  3 


"Washington,  107,    108,   232,  233, 
239,  263-267 

,  George,  91 

Wyke,  Charles,  229,  240 


YaSez,  Jos^  Isideo,  85 
Yucatan,  252 


Zacatecas,  52,  82,  125,  131,  148, 
214,  216,  352,  274 

Zambos,  14 

Zapotecans,  Zapotecas,  Zapotecs,  13, 
205,  206,  285 

Zaragoza,  Ignacio,  220,  246-248 

Zavaleta,  121,  122 

Zitacuaro,  52,  55 

,  Junta  of,  see  Junta  of  Zita- 
cuaro 

Zuloaga,  Felix,  180,  192,  198,  200- 
204,  221,  222,  228,  229,  235,  237, 
246,  288 

Zumarraga,  9 


By  the  Author  of  '■'■From  Empire  to  Republic" 

A  SHORT  HISTORY 
OF  MEXICO 

By  ARTHUR    HOWARD    NOLL 

NEW  EDITION  THOROUGHLY  RE- 
VISED, AND  WITH  NEW  MATTER 

THIS  excellent  little  book  was  the 
standard  short  history  of  Mexico 
in  its  earlier  form,  and  it  has  been  in 
much  demand  during  the  several  years 
it  has  been  out  of  print.  The  new  edi- 
tion will  be  most  welcome,  especially  as 
Dr.  Noll  has  extended  it  to  include  the 
more  recent  years  in  which  President 
Diaz  has  succeeded  in  making  of  Mex- 
ico a  real  self-governing  nation,  as  could 
hardly  be  said  of  it  when  the  book  was 
first  written. 

i6mo.     75  cents  net 

A.  C.  McCLURG   &  CO.,  Publishers